Japanese Grammar Guide - Tae Kim`s Guide to Learning Japanese

Transcription

Japanese Grammar Guide - Tae Kim`s Guide to Learning Japanese
Japanese Grammar Guide
Tae Kim
November 21, 2012
Contents
1 Introduction
1.1 The problem with conventional textbooks . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
1.2 A Japanese guide to learning Japanese grammar . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
1.3 Suggestions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
11
11
12
13
2 The Writing System
2.1 The Scripts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
2.2 Intonation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
2.3 Hiragana . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
2.3.1 The Muddied Sounds . . . . . . . . . .
2.3.2 The Small 「や」、「ゆ」、and 「よ」
2.3.3 The Small 「つ」 . . . . . . . . . . . .
2.3.4 The Long Vowel Sound . . . . . . . . .
2.4 Katakana . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
2.4.1 The Long Vowel Sound . . . . . . . . .
2.4.2 The Small 「ア、イ、ウ、エ、オ」 . .
2.4.3 Some examples of words in Katakana .
2.5 Kanji . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
2.5.1 What is Kanji? . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
2.5.2 Learning Kanji . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
2.5.3 Reading Kanji . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
2.5.4 Why Kanji? . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
15
15
16
16
18
19
20
20
21
23
24
25
26
26
26
27
28
3 Basic Grammar
3.1 Basic Grammatical Structures . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.2 Expressing State-of-Being . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.2.1 Declaring something is so and so using 「だ」
3.2.2 Conjugating to the negative state-of-being . . .
3.2.3 Conjugating to the past state-of-being . . . . .
3.2.4 Conjugation summary . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.3 Introduction to Particles . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.3.1 Defining grammatical functions with particles .
3.3.2 The 「は」 topic particle . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.3.3 The 「も」 inclusive topic particle . . . . . . .
3.3.4 The 「が」 identifier particle . . . . . . . . . .
3.4 Adjectives . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.4.1 Properties of Adjectives . . . . . . . . . . . . .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
29
29
29
29
31
32
32
33
33
33
35
36
38
38
3
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
3.5
3.6
3.7
3.8
3.9
3.10
3.11
3.12
3.4.2 The na-adjective . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.4.3 The i-adjective . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.4.4 An annoying exception . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Verb Basics . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.5.1 Role of Verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.5.2 Classifying verbs into ru-verbs and u-verbs . . .
3.5.3 Appendix: iru/eru u-verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Negative Verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.6.1 Conjugating verbs into the negative . . . . . . .
Past Tense . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.7.1 Past tense for ru-verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.7.2 Past tense for u-verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.7.3 Past-negative tense for all verbs . . . . . . . . .
Particles used with verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.8.1 The direct object 「を」 particle . . . . . . . . .
3.8.2 The target 「に」 particle . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.8.3 The directional 「へ」 particle . . . . . . . . . .
3.8.4 The contextual 「で」 particle . . . . . . . . . .
3.8.5 When location is the topic . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.8.6 When direct object is the topic . . . . . . . . . .
Transitive and Intransitive Verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.9.1 Pay attention to particles! . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Relative Clauses and Sentence Order . . . . . . . . . .
3.10.1 Treating verbs and state-of-being like adjectives
3.10.2 Using state-of-being clauses as adjectives . . .
3.10.3 Using relative verb clauses as adjectives . . . .
3.10.4 Japanese Sentence Order . . . . . . . . . . . .
Noun-related Particles . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.11.1 The last three particles . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.11.2 The Inclusive 「と」 particle . . . . . . . . . . .
3.11.3 The Vague Listing 「や」 and 「とか」 particles
3.11.4 The 「の」 particle . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.11.5 The 「の」 particle as explanation . . . . . . . .
Adverbs and Sentence-ending particles . . . . . . . . .
3.12.1 Properties of Adverbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.12.2 Sentence-ending particles . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.12.3 「ね」 sentence ending . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.12.4 「よ」 sentence ending . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
3.12.5 Combining both to get 「よね」 . . . . . . . . .
4 Essential Grammar
4.1 Polite Form and Verb Stems . . . . . . . . . .
4.1.1 Not being rude in Japan . . . . . . . .
4.1.2 The stem of verbs . . . . . . . . . . .
4.1.3 Using 「〜ます」 to make verbs polite
4.1.4 Using 「です」 for everything else . .
4.1.5 「です」 is NOT the same as 「だ」
4
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
38
40
42
43
43
45
46
47
47
50
50
51
52
53
54
55
57
58
60
61
62
62
63
63
64
65
66
68
68
68
69
70
73
77
77
79
79
80
81
.
.
.
.
.
.
83
84
84
84
87
88
90
4.2 Addressing People . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.2.1 Referring to yourself . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.2.2 Referring to others by name . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.2.3 Referring to others with "you" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.2.4 Referring to others in third person . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.2.5 Referring to family members . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.3 The Question Marker . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.3.1 Questions in polite form . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.3.2 The question marker in casual speech . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.3.3 「か」 used in relative clauses . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.3.4 Using question words . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.4 Compound Sentences . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.4.1 Expressing a sequence of states . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.4.2 Expressing a sequence of verbs with the te-form . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.4.3 Expressing reason or causation using 「から」 and 「ので」 . . . . . . .
4.4.4 Using 「のに」 to mean "despite" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.4.5 Expressing contradiction using 「が」 and 「けど」 . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.4.6 Expressing multiple reasons using 「し」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.4.7 Expressing multiple actions or states using 「〜たりする」 . . . . . . . .
4.5 Other uses of the te-form . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.5.1 Using 「〜ている」 for enduring states . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.5.2 Enduring state-of-being vs enduring state of action . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.5.3 Using 「〜てある」 for resultant states . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.5.4 Using the 「〜ておく」 form as preparation for the future . . . . . . . . .
4.5.5 Using motion verbs (⾏く、来る) with the te-form . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.6 Potential Form . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.6.1 Expressing the ability to do something . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.6.2 The Potential Form . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.6.3 Potential forms do not have direct objects . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.6.4 Are 「⾒える」 and 「聞こえる」 exceptions? . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.6.5 「ある」, yet another exception . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.7 Using する and なる with the に particle . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.7.1 Using 「なる」 and 「する」 for nouns and na-adjectives . . . . . . . . .
4.7.2 Using 「なる」 with i-adjectives . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.7.3 Using 「なる」 and 「する」 with verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.8 Conditionals . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.8.1 How to say "if" in Japanese . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.8.2 Expressing natural consequence using 「と」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.8.3 Contextual conditionals using 「なら (ば)」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.8.4 General conditionals using 「ば」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.8.5 Past conditional using 「たら (ば)」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.8.6 How does 「もし」 fit into all of this? . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.9 Expressing "must" or "have to" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.9.1 When there's something that must or must not be done . . . . . . . . . .
4.9.2 Using 「だめ」, 「いけない」, and 「ならない」 for things that must not
be done . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.9.3 Expressing things that must be done . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5
92
92
93
93
94
95
96
96
97
98
99
103
103
105
106
109
110
112
113
114
114
117
119
120
121
123
123
123
125
126
127
128
128
130
131
132
132
132
134
135
137
139
140
140
140
142
4.10
4.11
4.12
4.13
4.14
4.15
4.16
4.17
4.9.4 Various short-cuts for the lazy . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.9.5 Saying something is ok to do or not do . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Desire and Suggestions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.10.1 How to get your way in Japan . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.10.2 Verbs you want to do with 「たい」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.10.3 Indicating things you want or want done using 「欲しい」 . .
4.10.4 Making a motion to do something using the volitional form . .
4.10.5 Making a motion to do something using the volitional form . .
4.10.6 Making Suggestions using the 「ば」 or 「たら」 conditional
Performing an action on a relative clause . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.11.1 The direct quote . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.11.2 The interpreted quote . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.11.3 Using 「って」 as a casual version of 「と」 . . . . . . . . .
Defining and Describing . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.12.1 The various uses of 「いう」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.12.2 Using 「いう」 to define . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.12.3 Using 「いう」 to describe anything . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.12.4 Rephrasing and making conclusions with 「という」 . . . .
4.12.5 Using 「って」 or 「て」 for 「という」 . . . . . . . . . . .
4.12.6 Saying 「ゆう」 instead of 「いう」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Trying something out or attempting to do something . . . . . . . . .
4.13.1 Let's try some stuff . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.13.2 To try something out . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.13.3 To attempt to do something . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Giving and Receiving . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.14.1 Japanese people like gifts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.14.2 When to use 「あげる」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.14.3 When to use 「くれる」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.14.4 When to use 「もらう」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.14.5 Asking favors with 「くれる」 or 「もらえる」 . . . . . . . .
Making requests . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.15.1 Politely (and not so politely) making requests . . . . . . . . .
4.15.2 「〜ください」- a special conjugation of 「くださる」 . .
4.15.3 Using 「〜ちょうだい」 as a casual request . . . . . . . . .
4.15.4 Using 「〜なさい」 to make firm but polite requests . . . . .
4.15.5 The Command Form . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.15.6 Negative Command . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Numbers and Counting . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.16.1 The Number System . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.16.2 Counting and Counters . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.16.3 Using 「⽬」 to show order . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Casual Patterns and Slang . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.17.1 Basic Principles of Slang . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.17.2 Sentence ordering and particles . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.17.3 Using 「じゃん」 instead of 「じゃない」 to confirm . . . .
4.17.4 Using 「つ」 for 「という」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.17.5 Using 「ってば」 and 「ったら」to show exasperation . . .
6
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
143
145
146
146
146
148
149
151
152
153
153
154
156
158
158
158
159
161
163
165
166
166
166
167
169
169
170
171
174
175
177
177
177
179
180
181
183
184
184
187
192
192
192
194
195
197
199
4.17.6 Using 「なんか」 just about everywhere . . . . .
4.17.7 Showing contempt for an action with 「〜やがる」
4.18 More sentence-ending particles . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
4.18.1 「な」 and 「さ」 sentence-ending particles . . .
4.18.2 「かい」 and 「だい」 sentence-ending particles
4.18.3 Gender-specific sentence-ending particles . . . .
4.18.4 That's a wrap! . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
5 Special Expressions
5.1 Causative and Passive Verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.1.1 Causative Verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.1.2 Passive Verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.1.3 Using passive form to show politeness . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.1.4 Causative-Passive Forms . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.2 Honorific and Humble Forms . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.2.1 Set Expressions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.2.2 Other substitutions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.2.3 Honorific and Humble Conjugations . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.2.4 Making honorific requests . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.3 Things that happen unintentionally . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.3.1 Using 「しまう」 with other verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.3.2 Using the casual version of 「〜てしまう」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.3.3 Another meaning of 「しまう」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.4 Expressions with generic nouns . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.4.1 Using 「こと」 to say whether something has happened . . . . . . . . .
5.4.2 Using 「ところ」 as an abstract place . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.4.3 Using 「もの」 as a casual feminine way to emphasize . . . . . . . . . .
5.5 Expressing levels of certainty . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.5.1 Using 「かもしれない」 to express uncertainty . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.5.2 Using 「でしょう」 to express a fair amount of certainty . . . . . . . . .
5.5.3 Using 「でしょう」 and 「だろう」 to express strong amount of certainty
5.6 Expressing amounts . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.6.1 Indicating that's all there is using 「だけ」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.6.2 Using 「のみ」 as a formal version of 「だけ」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.6.3 Indication that there's nothing else using 「しか」 . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.6.4 Expressing the opposite of 「だけ」 with 「ばかり」 . . . . . . . . . . .
5.6.5 Saying there's too much of something using 「すぎる」 . . . . . . . . . .
5.6.6 Adding the 「も」 particle to express excessive amounts . . . . . . . . .
5.6.7 Using 「ほど」 to express the extent of something . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.6.8 Using 「〜さ」 with adjectives to indicate an amount . . . . . . . . . . .
5.7 Express similarity and hearsay . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.7.1 Expressing similarity with よう . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.7.2 Using 「みたい」 to say something looks like something else . . . . . . .
5.7.3 Guessing at an outcome using 「〜そう」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.7.4 Expressing hearsay using 「〜そうだ」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.7.5 Expressing hearsay or behavior using 「〜らしい」 . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.7.6 「っぽい」: Slang expression of similarity . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
7
199
201
202
202
204
205
206
211
211
211
216
218
219
222
222
225
227
230
232
232
233
235
235
235
237
238
238
239
240
241
243
244
246
246
249
250
253
254
256
258
258
260
261
264
266
267
5.8 Using ⽅ and よる for comparisons, etc . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.8.1 Using 「⽅」 for comparisons . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.8.2 Using 「より」 for comparisons . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.8.3 Using 「⽅」 to express a way to do something . . . . . . . . .
5.8.4 Using 「によって」 to express dependency . . . . . . . . . . .
5.8.5 Indicating a source of information using 「によると」 . . . . . .
5.9 Saying something is easy or difficult to do . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.9.1 Variations of 「〜にくい」 with 「〜がたい」 and 「〜づらい」
5.10 More negative verbs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.10.1 Doing something without doing something else . . . . . . . . . .
5.10.2 A casual masculine type of negative that ends in 「ん」 . . . . .
5.10.3 A classical negative verb that ends in 「ぬ」 . . . . . . . . . . .
5.11 Hypothesizing and Concluding . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.11.1 Coming to a conclusion with 「わけ」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.11.2 Making hypotheses with 「とする」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.12 Expressing time-specific actions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.12.1 Expressing what just happened with 「〜ばかり」 . . . . . . . .
5.12.2 Express what occurred immediately after with 「とたん」 . . . .
5.12.3 Using 「ながら」 for two concurrent actions . . . . . . . . . . .
5.12.4 Using 「ながら」 with state-of-being . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.12.5 To repeat something with reckless abandon using 「まくる」 . .
5.13 Leaving something the way it is . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.13.1 Using 「まま」 to express a lack of change . . . . . . . . . . . .
5.13.2 Using 「っぱなし」 to leave something the way it is . . . . . . .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
268
268
270
272
273
274
275
277
278
278
281
282
284
284
286
288
288
290
291
293
295
296
296
297
6 Advanced Topics
6.1 Formal Expressions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.1.1 What do you mean by formal expressions? . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.1.2 Using 「である」 for formal state-of-being . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.1.3 Negative of 「である」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.1.4 Sequential relative clauses in formal language . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.2 Things that should be a certain way . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.2.1 Using 「はず」 to describe an expectation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.2.2 Using 「べき」 to describe actions one should do . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.2.3 Using 「べく」 to describe what one tries to do . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.2.4 Using 「べからず」 to describe things one must not do . . . . . . . . . .
6.3 Expressing the minimum expectation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.3.1 Using 「(で)さえ」 to describe the minimum requirement . . . . . . . . .
6.3.2 「(で)すら」 - Older version of 「(で)さえ」 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.3.3 「おろか」 - It's not even worth considering . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.4 Showing signs of something . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.4.1 Showing outward signs of an emotion using 「〜がる」 . . . . . . . . . .
6.4.2 Using 「ばかり」 to act as if one might do something . . . . . . . . . . .
6.4.3 Using 「めく」 to indicate an atmosphere of a state . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.5 Formal expressions of non-feasibility . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
6.5.1 Expressing the inability to not do using 「〜ざるを得ない」 . . . . . . . .
6.5.2 Expressing the inability to stop doing something using 「やむを得ない」
299
299
299
299
301
302
304
304
306
309
311
312
312
314
316
317
317
320
321
323
324
325
8
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
6.6
6.7
6.8
6.9
6.10
6.5.3 Expressing what cannot be done with 「〜かねる」 . . . . . . . . . . . . 327
Tendencies . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 328
6.6.1 Saying something is prone to occur using 「〜がち」 . . . . . . . . . . . 328
6.6.2 Describing an ongoing occurrence using 「〜つつ」 . . . . . . . . . . . . 330
6.6.3 Describing a negative tendency using 「きらいがある」 . . . . . . . . . 333
Advanced Volitional . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 334
6.7.1 Negative Volitional . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 334
6.7.2 Using the volitional to express a lack of relation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 337
6.7.3 Using 「であろう」 to express likelihood . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 338
6.7.4 Using 「かろう」 as volitional for 「い」 endings . . . . . . . . . . . . . 340
Covered by something . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 342
6.8.1 Using 「だらけ」 when an object is riddled everywhere with something . 342
6.8.2 Using 「まみれ」 to describe a covering . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 343
6.8.3 「ずくめ」 to express entirety . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 344
Advanced proximity of actions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 346
6.9.1 Using 「が早いか」 to describe the instant something occurred . . . . . . 346
6.9.2 Using 「や/や否や」 to describe what happened right after . . . . . . . 347
6.9.3 Using 「そばから」 to describe an event that repeatedly occurs soon after 349
Others . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 350
6.10.1 Using 「思いきや」 to describe something unexpected . . . . . . . . . . 350
6.10.2 Using 「〜がてら」 to do two things at one time . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 351
6.10.3 Using 「〜あげく (挙句)」 to describe a bad result . . . . . . . . . . . . . 352
9
10
Chapter 1
Introduction
1.1
The problem with conventional textbooks
The problem with conventional textbooks is that they often have the following goals.
1. They want readers to be able to use functional and polite Japanese as quickly as possible.
2. They don't want to scare readers away with terrifying Japanese script and Chinese characters.
3. They want to teach you how to say English phrases in Japanese.
Traditionally with romance languages such as Spanish, these goals present no problems or are
nonexistent due to the similarities to English. However, because Japanese is different in just
about every way down to the fundamental ways of thinking, these goals create many of the
confusing textbooks you see today. They are usually filled with complicated rules and countless
number of grammar for specific English phrases. They also contain almost no Kanji and so
when you finally arrive in Japan, lo and behold, you discover you can't read menus, maps, or
essentially anything at all because the book decided you weren't smart enough to memorize
Chinese characters.
The root of this problem lies in the fact that these textbooks try to teach you Japanese with
English. They want to teach you on the first page how to say, "Hi, my name is Smith," but they
don't tell you about all the arbitrary decisions that were made behind your back. They probably
decided to use the polite form even though learning the polite form before the dictionary form
makes no sense. They also might have decided to include the subject even though it's not
necessary and omitted most of the time. In fact, the most common way to say something like
"My name is Smith" in Japanese is to say "Smith". That's because most of the information is
understood from the context and is therefore omitted. But does most textbooks explain the way
things work in Japanese fundamentally? No, because they're too busy trying to push you out
11
1.2. A JAPANESE GUIDE TO LEARNING JAPANESE GRAMMAR
CHAPTER 1. INTRODUCTION
the door with "useful" phrases right off the bat. The result is a confusing mess of "use this if you
want to say this" type of text and the reader is left with a feeling of confusion about how things
actually work.
The solution to this problem is to explain Japanese from a Japanese point of view. Take
Japanese and explain how it works and forget about trying to force what you want to say in
English into Japanese. To go along with this, it is also important to explain things in an order
that makes sense in Japanese. If you need to know [A] in order to understand [B], don't cover
[B] first just because you want to teach a certain phrase.
Essentially, what we need is a Japanese guide to learning Japanese grammar.
1.2
A Japanese guide to learning Japanese grammar
This guide is an attempt to systematically build up the grammatical structures that make up the
Japanese language in a way that makes sense in Japanese. It may not be a practical tool for
quickly learning immediately usable phrases such as for travel. However, it will logically create
successive building blocks that will result in a solid grammatical foundation. For those of you who
have learned Japanese from textbooks, you may see some big differences in how the material
is ordered and presented. This is because this guide does not seek to forcibly create artificial
ties between English and Japanese by presenting the material in a way that makes sense in
English. Instead, examples with translations will show how ideas are expressed in Japanese
resulting in simpler explanations that are easier to understand.
In the beginning, the English translations for the examples will also be as literal as possible
to convey the Japanese sense of the meaning. This will often result in grammatically incorrect translations in English. For example, the translations might not have a subject because
Japanese does not require one. In addition, since the articles "the" and "a" do not exist in
Japanese, the translations will not have them as well. And since Japanese does not distinguish between a future action and a general statement (such as "I will go to the store" vs. "I
go to the store"), no distinction will necessarily be made in the translation. It is my hope that
the explanation of the examples will convey an accurate sense of what the sentences actually
mean in Japanese. Once the reader becomes familiar and comfortable thinking in Japanese,
the translations will be less literal in order to make the sentences more readable and focused
on the more advanced topics.
Be aware that there are advantages and disadvantages to systematically building a grammatical
foundation from the ground up. In Japanese, the most fundamental grammatical concepts are
often the most difficult to truly understand. This means that the hardest part of the language will
come first. Textbooks usually don't take this approach; afraid that this will scare away or frustrate those interested in the language. Instead, they try to delay going deeply into the hardest
conjugation rules with patchwork and gimmicks so that they can start teaching useful expressions right away. This is a fine approach for some, however; it can create more confusion and
trouble along the way, much like building a house on a poor foundation. The hard parts must be
12
CHAPTER 1. INTRODUCTION
1.3. SUGGESTIONS
covered no matter what. However, if you cover them in the beginning, the easier parts will be
all that much easier because they'll fit nicely on top of the foundation you have built. Japanese
is syntactically much more consistent than English. If you learn the hardest conjugation rules,
most of remaining grammar builds upon similar or identical rules. The only difficult part from
there on is sorting out and remembering all the various possible expressions and combinations
in order to use them in the correct situations.
�Note: You will see half brackets like these: 「」 in the text. These are the Japanese version
of quotation marks.
1.3
Suggestions
Here's my advice for practicing Japanese: if you find yourself trying to figure out how to say an
English thought in Japanese, save yourself the trouble and stop because you won't get it right
most of the time. You should always keep in mind that if you don't know how to say it already,
then you don't know how to say it. Instead, if you can, ask someone how to say it in Japanese
including a full explanation of the answer and start practicing from Japanese. Language is not
a math problem; you don't have to figure out the answer. If you practice from the answer, you
will develop good habits that will help you formulate correct and natural Japanese sentences.
This is why I'm a firm believer of learning by example. Examples and experience will be your
main tools in mastering Japanese. Therefore, even if you don't understand something completely the first time, just move on and keep referring back as you see more examples. This will
allow you to get a better sense of how it's used in many different contexts. Even this guide will
not have all the examples to cover every situation. But lucky for you, Japanese is everywhere,
especially on the web. I recommend practicing Japanese as much as possible and referring to
this guide only when you cannot understand the grammar.
The Internet alone has a rich variety of reading materials including websites, bulletin boards,
and online chat. Buying Japanese books or comic books is also an excellent (and fun) way to
increase your vocabulary and practice reading skills. It's also important to keep in mind that it is
impossible to learn good speaking and listening skills without actually conversing in Japanese.
Practicing listening and speaking skills with fluent speakers of Japanese is a must if you wish
to master conversational skills. While audio listening material can be very educational, there
is nothing better than interacting with a real human for learning pronunciation, intonation, and
natural conversation flow. If you have specific questions that are not addressed in this guide,
you can ask them on my online forum at http://www.guidetojapanese.org/forum.
Don't feel discouraged by the vast amount of material that you will need to master. Remember
that every new word or grammar learned is one step closer to mastering the language!
13
1.3. SUGGESTIONS
CHAPTER 1. INTRODUCTION
14
Chapter 2
The Writing System
2.1
The Scripts
Japanese consists of two scripts (referred to as kana) called Hiragana and Katakana, which are
two versions of the same set of sounds in the language. Hiragana and Katakana consist of a
little less than 50 "letters", which are actually simplified Chinese characters adopted to form a
phonetic script.
Chinese characters, called Kanji in Japanese, are also heavily used in the Japanese writing.
Most of the words in the Japanese written language are written in Kanji (nouns, verbs, adjectives). There exists over 40,000 Kanji where about 2,000 represent over 95% of characters
actually used in written text. There are no spaces in Japanese so Kanji is necessary in distinguishing between separate words within a sentence. Kanji is also useful for discriminating
between homophones, which occurs quite often given the limited number of distinct sounds in
Japanese.
Hiragana is used mainly for grammatical purposes. We will see this as we learn about particles.
Words with extremely difficult or rare Kanji, colloquial expressions, and onomatopoeias are also
written in Hiragana. It's also often used for beginning Japanese students and children in place
of Kanji they don't know.
While Katakana represents the same sounds as Hiragana, it is mainly used to represent newer
words imported from western countries (since there are no Kanji associated with words based
on the roman alphabet). The next three sections will cover Hiragana, Katakana, and Kanji.
15
2.2. INTONATION
2.2
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
Intonation
As you will find out in the next section, every character in Hiragana (and the Katakana equivalent)
corresponds to a [vowel] or [consonant + vowel] syllable sound with the single exception of the
「ん」 and 「ン」 characters (more on this later). This system of letter for each syllable sound
makes pronunciation absolutely clear with no ambiguities. However, the simplicity of this system
does not mean that pronunciation in Japanese is simple. In fact, the rigid structure of the fixed
syllable sound in Japanese creates the challenge of learning proper intonation.
Intonation of high and low pitches is a crucial aspect of the spoken language. For example, homophones can have different pitches of low and high tones resulting in a slightly different sound
despite sharing the same pronunciation. The biggest obstacle for obtaining proper and natural
sounding speech is incorrect intonation. Many students often speak without paying attention to
the correct enunciation of pitches making speech sound unnatural (the classic foreigner's accent). It is not practical to memorize or attempt to logically create rules for pitches, especially
since it can change depending on the context or the dialect. The only practical approach is to
get the general sense of pitches by mimicking native Japanese speakers with careful listening
and practice.
2.3
Hiragana
Hiragana is the basic Japanese phonetic script. It represents every sound in the Japanese
language. Therefore, you can theoretically write everything in Hiragana. However, because
Japanese is written with no spaces, this will create nearly indecipherable text.
Here is a table of Hiragana and similar-sounding English consonant-vowel pronunciations. It is
read up to down and right to left, which is how most Japanese books are written. In Japanese,
writing the strokes in the correct order and direction is important, especially for Kanji. Because
handwritten letters look slightly different from typed letters (just like how 'a' looks totally different
when typed), you will want to use a resource that uses handwritten style fonts to show you
how to write the characters (see below for links). I must also stress the importance of correctly
learning how to pronounce each sound. Since every word in Japanese is composed of these
sounds, learning an incorrect pronunciation for a letter can severely damage the very foundation
on which your pronunciation lies.
16
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
n
ん
(n)
2.3. HIRAGANA
Hiragana - Click for stroke order and sound
w
r
y m
h
n
t
s
k
わ
ら や ま は な
た
さ
か
あ
a
ゐ*
り
る
ゑ*
を
(o)
れ
ろ
み
ひ
に
ゆ
む
ぬ
よ
め
も
ふ
(fu)
へ
ほ
ね
の
ち
(chi)
つ
(tsu)
て
と
し
(shi)
す
き
い
i
く
う
u
せ
そ
け
こ
え
お
e
o
* = no longer used
You can listen to the pronunciation for each character by clicking on it in chart. If your browser
doesn't support audio, you can also download them. There are also other free resources with
audio samples.
Hiragana is not too tough to master or teach and as a result, there are a variety of web sites
and free programs that are already available on the web. I also suggest recording yourself and
comparing the sounds to make sure you're getting it right.
When practicing writing Hiragana by hand, the important thing to remember is that the stroke
order and direction of the strokes matter. There, I underlined, italicized, bolded, and highlighted
it to boot. Trust me, you'll eventually find out why when you read other people's hasty notes that
are nothing more than chicken scrawls. The only thing that will help you is that everybody writes
in the same order and so the "flow" of the characters is fairly consistent. I strongly recommend
that you pay close attention to stroke order from the beginning starting with Hiragana to avoid
falling into bad habits. While there are many tools online that aim to help you learn Hiragana,
the best way to learn how to write it is the old fashioned way: a piece of paper and pen/pencil.
Below are handy PDFs for Hiragana writing practice.
• Hiragana trace sheets
• japanese-lesson.com
• Hiroshi & Sakura
� As an aside, an old Japanese poem called「いろは」was often used as the base for ordering
of Hiragana until recent times. The poem contains every single Hiragana character except for
「ん」 which probably did not exist at the time it was written. You can check out this poem for
yourself in this wikipedia article. As the article mentions, this order is still sometimes used in
ordering lists so you may want to spend some time checking it out.
17
2.3. HIRAGANA
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
Notes
1. Except for 「し」、「ち」、「つ」、and 「ん」、you can get a sense of how each letter is
pronounced by matching the consonant on the top row to the vowel. For example, 「き」
would become / ki / and 「ゆ」 would become / yu / and so on.
2. As you can see, not all sounds match the way our consonant system works. As written in
the table, 「ち」 is pronounced "chi" and 「つ」 is pronounced "tsu".
3. The / r / or / l / sound in Japanese is quite different from any sound in English. It involves
more of a roll and a clip by hitting the roof of your mouth with your tongue. Pay careful
attention to that whole column.
4. Pay careful attention to the difference between
/ tsu / and / su /.
.
5. The 「ん」 character is a special character because it is rarely used by itself and does not
have a vowel sound. It is attached to another character to add a / n / sound. For example,
「かん」 becomes 'kan' instead of 'ka', 「まん」 becomes 'man' instead of 'ma', and so on
and so forth.
6. You must learn the correct stroke order and direction! Use either of the following pdf
practice sheets.
• Hiragana trace sheets
• japanese-lesson.com
• Hiroshi & Sakura
2.3.1
The Muddied Sounds
Once you memorize all the characters in Hiragana, there are still some additional sounds left
to be learned. There are five more consonant sounds that are written by either affixing two tiny
lines similar to a double quotation mark called dakuten (濁点) or a tiny circle called handakuten
(半濁点). This essentially creates a "muddy" or less clipped version of the consonant (technically
called a voiced consonant or 「濁り」, which literally means to become muddy).
All the voiced consonant sounds are shown in the table below.
18
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
2.3. HIRAGANA
Voiced Hiragana - Click for Sound
p
b
d
z
g
ぱ ば
だ
ざ が
a
ぴ び
ぢ
じ ぎ
i
(ji)
(ji)
ぷ ぶ
づ
ず ぐ
u
(dzu)
ぺ べ
で
ぜ げ
e
ぽ ぼ
ど
ぞ ご
o
Note
• Notice that 「ぢ」 sounds essentially identical
to 「じ」 and both are pronounced as / ji
.
/, while 「づ」 is pronounced like / dzu /.
2.3.2
The Small 「や」、「ゆ」、and 「よ」
You can also combine a consonant with a / ya / yu / yo / sound by attaching a small 「や」 、
「ゆ」、or 「よ」 to the / i / vowel character of each consonant.
All small や、ゆ、and よ combinations in Hiragana - Click for Sound
p
b
j
g
r
m
h
n
c
s
k
ぴゃ びゃ じゃ ぎゃ りゃ みゃ ひゃ にゃ ちゃ しゃ きゃ ya
ぴゅ びゅ じゅ ぎゅ りゅ みゅ ひゅ にゅ ちゅ しゅ きゅ yu
ぴょ びょ じょ ぎょ りょ みょ ひょ にょ ちょ しょ きょ yo
Notes
1. The above table is the same as before. Match the top consonants to the vowel sound on
the right. Ex: きゃ= kya.
2. Also note that since 「じ」 is pronounced / ji /, all the small 「や」、「ゆ」、「よ」 sounds
. / jyo /.
are also based off of that, namely: / jya / jyu
3. The same thing also applies to 「ち」 which becomes / cha / chu / cho / and 「し」 which
becomes / sha / shu / sho /. (Though arguably, you can still think of it as / sya / syu / syo
/.)
19
2.3. HIRAGANA
2.3.3
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
The Small 「つ」
A small 「つ」 is inserted between two characters to carry the consonant sound of the second
character to the end of the first. For example, if you inserted a small 「つ」 between 「び」
and 「く」 to make 「びっく」, the / k / consonant sound is carried back to the end of the first
character to produce "bikku". Similarly, 「はっぱ」 becomes "happa", 「ろっく」 becomes
"rokku" and so on and so forth.
Examples
1. ざっし (zas-shi) - magazine
2. カップ (kap-pu) - cup
Notes
1. A small 「つ」 is used to carry the consonant sound of the second character to the end of
the first. Ex: 「がっき」 = "gakki".
.
2. The addition of another consonant almost always creates the characteristic clipping sound.
But make sure you're clipping with the right consonant (the consonant of the second character).
2.3.4
The Long Vowel Sound
Whew! You're almost done. In this last portion, we will go over the long vowel sound which is
simply extending the duration of a vowel sound. You can extend the vowel sound of a character
by adding either 「あ」 、 「い」 、 or 「う」 depending on the vowel in accordance to the
following chart.
Extending Vowel Sounds
Vowel Sound Extended by
/a/
あ
/i/e/
い
/u/o/
う
For example, if you wanted to create an extended vowel sound from 「か」 , you would add
「あ」 to create 「かあ」. Other examples would include: 「き → きい」, 「く → くう」, 「け
20
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
2.4. KATAKANA
→ けい」, 「こ → こう」, 「さ → さあ」 and so on. The reasoning for this is quite simple. Try
saying 「か」 and 「あ」 separately. Then say them in succession as fast as you can. You'll
notice that soon enough, it sounds like you're dragging out the / ka / for a longer duration than
just saying / ka / by itself. When pronouncing long vowel sounds, try to remember that they are
really two sounds merged together.
It's important to make sure you hold the vowel sound long enough because you can be saying
things like "here" (ここ) instead of "high school" (こうこう) or "middle-aged lady" (おばさん)
instead of "grandmother" (おばあさん) if you don't stretch it out correctly!
Examples
1. がくせい (ga-ku-se) - student
2. せんせい (sen-se) - teacher
3. きょう (kyo) - today
4. おはよう (o-ha-yo) - good morning
5. おかあさん (o-ka-san) - mother
There are rare exceptions where an / e / vowel sound is extended by adding 「え」 or an / o /
vowel sound is extended by 「お」. Some examples of this include 「おねえさん」、 「おお
い」、and 「おおきい」. Pay careful attention to these exceptions but don't worry, there aren't
too many of them.
2.4
Katakana
As mentioned before, Katakana is mainly used for words imported from foreign languages. It can
also be used to emphasize certain words similar to the function of italics. For a more complete
list of usages, refer to the Wikipedia entry on katakana.
Katakana represents the same set of phonetic sounds as Hiragana except all the characters are
different. Since foreign words must fit into this limited set of [consonants+vowel] sounds, they
undergo many radical changes resulting in instances where English speakers can't understand
words that are supposed to be derived from English! As a result, the use of Katakana is extremely difficult for English speakers because they expect English words to sound like... well...
English. Instead, it is better to completely forget the original English word, and treat the word
as an entirely separate Japanese word, otherwise you can run into the habit of saying English
words with English pronunciations (whereupon a Japanese person may or may not understand
what you are saying).
21
2.4. KATAKANA
n
ン
(n)
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
Katakana - Click for stroke order and sound
w
r
y m
h
n
t
s
k
ワ
ラ ヤ マ ハ ナ
タ
サ
カ
ア
a
ヰ*
リ
ル
ヱ*
ヲ*
(o)
レ
ロ
ミ
ヒ
ニ
ユ
ム
ヌ
ヨ
メ
モ
フ
(fu)
ヘ
ホ
ネ
ノ
チ
(chi)
ツ
(tsu)
テ
ト
シ
(shi)
ス
キ
イ
i
ク
ウ
u
セ
ソ
ケ
コ
エ
オ
e
o
* = obsolete or rarely used
Katakana is significantly tougher to master compared to Hiragana because it is only used for
certain words and you don't get nearly as much practice as you do with Hiragana. To learn the
proper stroke order (and yes, you need to), here are links to practice sheets for Katakana.
• Katakana trace sheets
• japanese-lesson.com
• Hiroshi & Sakura
Also, since Japanese doesn't have any spaces, sometimes the symbol 「・」 is used to show
the spaces like 「ロック・アンド・ロール」 for "rock and roll". Using the symbol is completely
optional so sometimes nothing will be used at all.
22
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
2.4. KATAKANA
Notes
1. All the sounds are identical to what they were for Hiragana.
2. As we will learn later,「を」is only ever used as a particle and all particles are in Hiragana.
Therefore, you will almost never need to use 「ヲ」 and it can be safely ignored. (Unless
you are reading very old telegrams or something.)
3. The four characters 「シ」、「ン」、「ツ」、and 「ソ」 are fiendishly similar to each
other. Basically, the difference is that the first two are more "horizontal" than the second
two. The little lines are slanted more horizontally and the long line is drawn in a curve from
bottom to top. The second two have almost vertical little lines and the long line doesn't
curve as much as it is drawn from top to bottom. It is almost like a slash while the former
is more like an arc. These characters are hard to sort out and require some patience and
practice.
.
4. The characters 「ノ」、「メ」、and 「ヌ」 are also something to pay careful attention
to, as well as, 「フ」、「ワ」、 and 「ウ」. Yes, they all look very similar. No, I can't do
anything about it.
5. You must learn the correct stroke order and direction! Use the following pdf practice sheets
to practice.
• Katakana trace sheets
• japanese-lesson.com
• Hiroshi & Sakura
6. Sometimes 「・」 is used to denote what would be spaces in English.
2.4.1
The Long Vowel Sound
Long vowels have been radically simplified in Katakana. Instead of having to muck around
thinking about vowel sounds, all long vowel sounds are denoted by a simple dash like so: ー.
Examples
1. ツアー (tsu-a) - tour
2. メール (me-ru) - email
3. ケーキ (ke-ki) - cake
23
2.4. KATAKANA
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
Summary
• All long vowel sounds in Katakana are denoted
by a dash. For example, "cute" would be
.
written in Katakana like so: 「キュート」.
2.4.2
The Small 「ア、イ、ウ、エ、オ」
Due to the limitations of the sound set in Hiragana, some new combinations have been devised
over the years to account for sounds that were not originally in Japanese. Most notable is the
lack of the / ti / di / and / tu / du / sounds (because of the / chi / tsu / sounds), and the lack of the
/ f / consonant sound except for 「ふ」. The / sh / j / ch / consonants are also missing for the / e
/ vowel sound. The decision to resolve these deficiencies was to add small versions of the five
vowel sounds. This has also been done for the / w / consonant sound to replace the obsolete
characters. In addition, the convention of using the little double slashes on the 「ウ」vowel (ヴ)
with the small 「ア、イ、エ、オ」 to designate the / v / consonant has also been established but
it's not often used probably due to the fact that Japanese people still have difficulty pronouncing
/ v /. For instance, while you may guess that "volume" would be pronounced with a / v / sound,
the Japanese have opted for the easier to pronounce "bolume" (ボリューム). In the same way,
vodka is written as "wokka" (ウォッカ) and not「ヴォッカ」. You can write "violin" as either「バ
イオリン」 or 「ヴァイオリン」. It really doesn't matter however because almost all Japanese
people will pronounce it with a / b / sound anyway. The following table shows the added sounds
that were lacking with a highlight. Other sounds that already existed are reused as appropriate.
v
ヴァ
ヴィ
ヴ
ヴェ
ヴォ
w
ワ
ウィ
ウ
ウェ
ウォ
f
ファ
フィ
フ
フェ
フォ
Additional sounds
ch
d
t
チャ ダ
タ
チ
ディ ティ
チュ ドゥ トゥ
チェ
デ
テ
チョ ド
ト
24
j
sh
ジャ シャ a
ジ
シ
i
ジュ シュ u
ジェ シェ e
ジョ ショ o
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
2.4. KATAKANA
Notes
1. Notice that there is no / wu / sound. For example, the Katakana for "woman" is written as
"u-man" (ウーマン).
2. While the / tu / sound (as in "too") can technically be produced given the rules as 「トゥ」,
foreign words that have become popular before these sounds were available simply used
/ tsu / to make do. For instance, "tool" is .still 「ツール」 and "tour" is similarly still 「ツ
アー」.
3. Back in the old days, without these new sounds, there was no choice but to just take
characters off the regular table without regard for actual pronunciation. On old buildings,
you may still see 「ビルヂング」 instead of the modern spelling 「ビルディング」.
2.4.3
Some examples of words in Katakana
Translating English words into Japanese is a knack that requires quite a bit of practice and
luck. To give you a sense of how English words become "Japanified", here are a few examples
of words in Katakana. Sometimes the words in Katakana may not even be correct English or
have a different meaning from the English word it's supposed to represent. Of course, not all
Katakana words are derived from English.
Sample Katakana Words
English
Japanese
America
アメリカ
Russia
ロシア
cheating
カンニング (cunning)
tour
ツアー
company employee
サラリーマン (salary man)
Mozart
モーツァルト
car horn
クラクション (klaxon)
sofa
ソファor ソファー
Halloween
ハロウィーン
French fries
フライドポテト (fried potato)
25
2.5. KANJI
2.5
2.5.1
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
Kanji
What is Kanji?
In Japanese, nouns and stems of adjectives and verbs are almost all written in Chinese characters called Kanji. Adverbs are also fairly frequently written in Kanji as well. This means that
you will need to learn Chinese characters to be able to read most of the words in the language.
(Children's books or any other material where the audience is not expected to know a lot of Kanji
is an exception to this.) Not all words are always written in Kanji however. For example, while
the verb "to do" technically has a Kanji associated with it, it is always written in Hiragana.
This guide begins using Kanji from the beginning to help you read "real" Japanese as quickly
as possible. Therefore, we will go over some properties of Kanji and discuss some strategies of
learning it quickly and efficiently. Mastering Kanji is not easy but it is by no means impossible.
The biggest part of the battle is mastering the skills of learning Kanji and time. In short, memorizing Kanji past short-term memory must be done with a great deal of study and, most importantly,
for a long time. And by this, I don't mean studying five hours a day but rather reviewing how
to write a Kanji once every several months until you are sure you have it down for good. This
is another reason why this guide starts using Kanji right away. There is no reason to dump the
huge job of learning Kanji at the advanced level. By studying Kanji along with new vocabulary
from the beginning, the immense job of learning Kanji is divided into small manageable chunks
and the extra time helps settle learned Kanji into permanent memory. In addition, this will help
you learn new vocabulary, which will often have combinations of Kanji you already know. If you
start learning Kanji later, this benefit will be wasted or reduced.
2.5.2
Learning Kanji
All the resources you need to begin learning Kanji are on the web for free. You can use dictionaries online such as Jim Breen's WWWJDIC or jisho.org. They both have great Kanji dictionaries
and stroke order diagrams for most Kanji. Especially for those who are just starting to learn, you
will want to repeatedly write out each Kanji to memorize the stroke order. Another important skill
is learning how to balance the character so that certain parts are not too big or small. So make
sure to copy the characters as close to the original as possible. Eventually, you will naturally
develop a sense of the stroke order for certain types of characters allowing you to bypass the
drilling stage. All the Kanji used in this guide can be easily looked up by copying and pasting to
an online dictionary.
26
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
2.5.3
2.5. KANJI
Reading Kanji
Almost every character has two different readings called ⾳読み (おんよみ) and 訓読み (くん
よみ). ⾳読み is the original Chinese reading while 訓読み is the Japanese reading. Kanji that
appear in a compound or 熟語 is usually read with ⾳読み while one Kanji by itself is usually
read with 訓読み. For example, 「⼒」(ちから) is read with the 訓読み while the same character
in a compound word such as 「能⼒」 is read with the ⾳読み (which is 「りょく」 in this case).
Certain characters (especially the most common ones) can have more than one ⾳読み or 訓読
み. For example, in the word 「怪⼒」, 「⼒」 is read here as 「りき」 and not 「りょく」.
Certain compound words also have special readings that have nothing to do with the readings
of the individual characters. These readings must be individually memorized. Thankfully, these
readings are few and far in between.
訓読み is also used in adjectives and verbs in addition to the stand-alone characters. These
words often have a string of kana (called okurigana) that come attached to the word. This is
so that the reading of the Chinese character stays the same even when the word is conjugated
to different forms. For example, the past form of the verb 「⾷べる」 is 「⾷べた」 . Even
though the verb has changed, the reading for 「⾷」 remain untouched. (Imagine how difficult
things could get if readings for Kanji changed with conjugation or even worse, if the Kanji itself
changed.) Okurigana also serves to distinguish between intransitive and transitive verbs (more
on this later).
Another concept that is difficult to grasp at first is that the actual readings of Kanji can change
slightly in a compound word to make the word easier to say. The more common transformations
include the / h / sounds changing to either / b / or / p / sounds or 「つ」 becoming 「っ」 .
Examples include: 「⼀本」、「徹底」、and 「格好」.
Yet another fun aspect of Kanji you'll run into are words that practically mean the same thing
and use the same reading but have different Kanji to make just a slight difference in meaning.
For example 「聞く」(きく) means to listen and so does 「聴く」(きく). The only difference is
that 「聴く」 means to pay more attention to what you're listening to. For example, listening to
music almost always prefers 「聴く」 over 「聞く」. 「聞く」 can also mean 'to ask', as well
as, "to hear" but 「訊く」(きく) can only mean "to ask". Yet another example is the common
practice of writing 「⾒る」 as 「観る」 when it applies to watching a show such as a movie. Yet
another interesting example is 「書く」(かく) which means "to write" while 描く (かく) means
"to draw". However, when you're depicting an abstract image such as a scene in a book, the
reading of the same word 「描く」 becomes 「えがく」 . There's also the case where the
meaning and Kanji stays the same but can have multiple readings such as 「今⽇」 which can
be either 「きょう」、「こんじつ」, or 「こんにち」. In this case, it doesn't really matter which
reading you choose except that some are preferred over others in certain situations.
Finally, there is one special character 々that is really not a character. It simply indicates that the
previous character is repeated. For example, 「時時」、「様様」、「⾊⾊」、「⼀⼀」 can
and usually are written as 「時々」、「様々」、「⾊々」、「⼀々」.
27
2.5. KANJI
CHAPTER 2. THE WRITING SYSTEM
In addition to these "features" of Kanji, you will see a whole slew of delightful perks and surprises
Kanji has for you as you advance in Japanese. You can decide for yourself if that statement is
sarcasm or not. However, don't be scared into thinking that Japanese is incredibly hard. Most
of the words in the language usually only have one Kanji associated with it and a majority of
Kanji do not have more than two types of readings.
2.5.4
Why Kanji?
Some people may think that the system of using separate, discrete symbols instead of a sensible
alphabet is overly complicated. In fact, it might not have been a good idea to adopt Chinese
into Japanese since both languages are fundamentally different in many ways. But the purpose
of this guide is not to debate how the language should work but to explain why you must learn
Kanji in order to learn Japanese. And by this, I mean more than just saying, "That's how it's
done so get over it!".
You may wonder why Japanese didn't switched from Chinese to romaji to do away with having to
memorize so many characters. In fact, Korea adopted their own alphabet for Korean to greatly
simplify their written language with great success. So why shouldn't it work for Japanese? I
think anyone who has learned Japanese for a while can easily see why it won't work. At any
one time, when you convert typed Hiragana into Kanji, you are presented with almost always at
least two choices (two homophones) and sometimes even up to ten. (Try typing "kikan"). The
limited number of set sounds in Japanese makes it hard to avoid homophones. Compare this
to the Korean alphabet which has 14 consonants and 10 vowels. Any of the consonants can be
matched to any of the vowels giving 140 sounds. In addition, a third and sometimes even fourth
consonant can be attached to create a single letter. This gives over 1960 sounds that can be
created theoretically. (The number of sounds that are actually used is actually much less but it's
still much larger than Japanese.)
Since you want to read at a much faster rate than you talk, you need some visual cues to
instantly tell you what each word is. You can use the shape of words in English to blaze through
text because most words have different shapes. Try this little exercise: Hi, enve thgouh all teh
wrods aer seplled icorrenctly, can you sltil udsternand me?" Korean does this too because it
has enough characters to make words with distinct and different shapes. However, because the
visual cues are not distinct as Kanji, spaces needed to be added to remove ambiguities. (This
presents another problem of when and where to set spaces.)
With Kanji, we don't have to worry about spaces and much of the problem of homophones is
mostly resolved. Without Kanji, even if spaces were to be added, the ambiguities and lack of
visual cues would make Japanese text much more difficult to read.
28
Chapter 3
Basic Grammar
3.1
Basic Grammatical Structures
Now that we have learned how to write Japanese, we can begin going over the basic grammatical structure of the language. This section primarily covers all the parts of speech: nouns,
adjectives, verbs, and adverbs. It will also describe how to integrate the various parts of speech
into a coherent sentence by using particles. By the end of this section, you should have an
understanding of how basic sentences are constructed.
3.2
3.2.1
Expressing State-of-Being
Declaring something is so and so using 「だ」
Vocabulary
1. ⼈【ひと】- person
2. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
3. 元気【げん・き】- healthy; lively
* Used as a greeting to indicate whether one is well
One of the trickiest part of Japanese is that there is no verb for the state-of-being like the verb
"to be" in English. You can, however, declare what something is by attaching the Hiragana
character 「だ」 to a noun or na-adjective only. (We will learn about na-adjectives in the
section on adjectives later.)
29
3.2. EXPRESSING STATE-OF-BEING
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Declaring that something is so using 「だ」
• Attach 「だ」 to the noun or na-adjective .
Example: ⼈+だ=⼈だ
Examples
1. ⼈だ。
Is person.
2. 学⽣だ。
Is student.
3. 元気だ。
Is well.
Seems easy enough. Here's the real kicker though.
Note
. 「だ」!
A state-of-being can be implied without using
You can say you're doing well or someone is a student without using 「だ」 at all. For example,
below is an example of a very typical greeting among friends. Also notice how the subject isn't
even specified when it's obvious from the context.
Typical casual greeting
A:元気?
A: (Are you) well?
B:元気。
B: (I'm) well.
So you may be wondering, "What's the point of using 「だ」?" Well, the main difference is that a
declarative statement makes the sentence sound more emphatic and forceful in order to make
it more... well declarative. Therefore, it is more common to hear men use 「だ」 at the end of
sentences.
30
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.2. EXPRESSING STATE-OF-BEING
The declarative 「だ」 is also needed in various grammatical structures where a state-of-being
must be explicitly declared. There are also times when you cannot attach it. It's all quite a pain
in the butt really but you don't have to worry about it yet.
3.2.2
Conjugating to the negative state-of-being
Vocabulary
1. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
2. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
3. 元気【げん・き】- healthy; lively
* Used as a greeting to indicate whether one is well
In Japanese, negative and past tense are all expressed by conjugation. We can conjugate a
noun or adjective to either its negative or past tense to say that something is not [X] or that
something was [X]. This may be a bit hard to grasp at first but none of these state-of-being
conjugations make anything declarative like 「だ」 does. We'll learn how to make these tenses
declarative by attaching 「だ」 to the end of the sentence in a later lesson.
First, for the negative, attach 「じゃない」 to the noun or na-adjective.
Conjugation rules for the negative state-of-being
• Attach 「じゃない」 to the noun or na-adjective
.
Example: 学⽣+じゃない=学⽣じゃない
Examples
1. 学⽣じゃない。
Is not student.
2. 友達じゃない。
Is not friend.
3. 元気じゃない。
Is not well.
31
3.2. EXPRESSING STATE-OF-BEING
3.2.3
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Conjugating to the past state-of-being
Vocabulary
1. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
2. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
3. 元気【げん・き】- healthy; lively
* Used as a greeting to indicate whether one is well
We will now learn the past tense of the state-of-being. To say something was something, attach
「だった」 to the noun or na-adjective.
In order to say the negative past (was not), conjugate the negative to the negative past tense
by dropping the 「い」 from 「じゃない」 and adding 「かった」.
Conjugation rules for the past state-of-being
1. Past state-of-being: Attach 「だった」 to the noun or na-adjective Example: 友達+だっ
た =友達だった
.
2. Negative past state-of-being: Conjugate the noun or na-adjective to the negative first
and then replace the 「い」 of 「じゃない」 with 「かった」
Example: 友達じゃない → 友達じゃなかった=友達じゃなかった
Examples
1. 学⽣だった。
Was student.
2. 友達じゃなかった。
Was not friend.
3. 元気じゃなかった。
Was not well.
3.2.4
Conjugation summary
We've now learned how to express state-of-being in all four tenses. Next we will learn some
particles, which will allow us assign roles to words. Here is a summary chart of the conjugations
we learned in this section.
32
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Non-Past
Past
3.3. INTRODUCTION TO PARTICLES
Summary of state-of-being
Positive
Negative
学⽣ (だ)
Is student 学⽣じゃない Is not student
学⽣だった Was student 学⽣じゃなかった Was not student
3.3
Introduction to Particles (は、も、が)
3.3.1
Defining grammatical functions with particles
We want to now make good use of what we learned in the last lesson by associating a noun with
another noun. This is done with something called particles. Particles are one or more Hiragana
characters that attach to the end of a word to define the grammatical function of that word in the
sentence. Using the correct particles is very important because the meaning of a sentence can
completely change just by changing the particles. For example, the sentence "Eat fish." can
become "The fish eats." simply by changing one particle.
3.3.2
The 「は」 topic particle
Vocabulary
1. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
2. うん - yes (casual)
3. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
4. ううん - no (casual)
5. 今⽇【きょう】- today
6. 試験【しけん】- exam
The first particle we will learn is the topic particle. The topic particle identifies what it is that you're
talking about, essentially the topic of your sentence. Let's say a person says, "Not student." This
is a perfectly valid sentence in Japanese but it doesn't tell us much without knowing what the
person is talking about. The topic particle will allow us to express what our sentences are about.
The topic particle is the character 「は」. Now, while this character is normally pronounced as
/ha/, it is pronounced /wa/ only when it is being used as the topic particle.
33
3.3. INTRODUCTION TO PARTICLES
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Example 1
ボブ:アリスは学⽣?
Bob: Is Alice (you) student?
アリス:うん、学⽣。
Alice: Yeah, (I) am.
Here, Bob is indicating that his question is about Alice. Notice that once the topic is established,
Alice does not have to repeat the topic to answer the question about herself.
Example 2
ボブ:ジョンは明⽇?
Bob: John is tomorrow?
アリス:ううん、明⽇じゃない。
Alice: No, not tomorrow.
Since we have no context, we don't have enough information to make any sense of this conversation. It obviously makes no sense for John to actually be tomorrow. Given a context, as
long as the sentence has something to do with John and tomorrow, it can mean anything. For
instance, they could be talking about when John is taking an exam.
Example 3
アリス:今⽇は試験だ。
Alice: Today is exam.
ボブ:ジョンは?
Bob: What about John?
アリス:ジョンは明⽇。
Alice: John is tomorrow. (As for John, the exam is tomorrow.)
The last example shows how generic the topic of a sentence is. A topic can be referring to
any action or object from anywhere even including other sentences. For example, in the last
sentence from the previous example, even though the sentence is about when the exam is for
John, the word "exam" doesn't appear anywhere in the sentence!
We'll see a more specific particle that ties more closely into the sentence at the end of this lesson
with the identifier particle.
34
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.3.3
3.3. INTRODUCTION TO PARTICLES
The 「も」 inclusive topic particle
Vocabulary
1. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
2. うん - yes (casual)
3. でも - but
4. ううん - no (casual)
Another particle that is very similar to the topic particle is the inclusive topic particle. It is essentially the topic particle with the additional meaning of "also". Basically, it can introduce another
topic in addition to the current topic. The inclusive topic particle is the 「も」 character and its
use is best explained by an example.
Example 1
ボブ:アリスは学⽣?
Bob: Is Alice (you) student?
アリス:うん、トムも学⽣。
Alice: Yeah, and Tom is also student.
The inclusion of 「も」 must be consistent with the answer. It would not make sense to say, "I
am a student, and Tom is also not a student." Instead, use the 「は」 particle to make a break
from the inclusion as seen in the next example.
Example 2
ボブ:アリスは学⽣?
Bob: Is Alice (you) student?
アリス:うん、でもトムは学⽣じゃない。
Alice: Yeah, but Tom is not student.
Below is an example of inclusion with the negative.
35
3.3. INTRODUCTION TO PARTICLES
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Example 3
ボブ:アリスは学⽣?
Bob: Is Alice (you) student?
アリス:ううん、トムも学⽣じゃない。
Alice: No, and Tom is also not student.
3.3.4
The 「が」 identifier particle
Vocabulary
1. 誰【だれ】- who
2. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
3. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
Ok, so we can make a topic using the 「は」 and 「も」 particle. But what if we donʼt know
what the topic is? What if I wanted to ask, “Who is the student?”What I need is some kind of
identifier because I don't know who the student is. If I use the topic particle, the question would
become, “Is who the student?”and that doesn't make any sense because "who" is not an actual
person.
This is where the 「が」 particle comes into play. It is also referred to as the subject particle
but I hate that name since "subject" means something completely different in English grammar.
Instead, I call it the identifier particle because the particle indicates that the speaker wants to
identify something unspecified.
Example 1
ボブ:誰が学⽣?
Bob: Who is the one that is student?
アリス:ジョンが学⽣。
Alice: John is the one who is student.
Bob wants to identify who among all the possible candidates is a student. Alice responds that
John is the one. Notice, Alice could also have answered with the topic particle to indicate that,
speaking of John, she knows that he is a student (maybe not the student). You can see the
difference in the next example.
36
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.3. INTRODUCTION TO PARTICLES
Example 2
1. 誰が学⽣?
Who is the one that is student?
2. 学⽣は誰?
(The) student is who?
The first sentence seeks to identify a specific person for "student" while the second sentence is
simply talking about the student. You cannot replace 「が」 with 「は」 in the first sentence
because "who" would become the topic and the question would become, "Is who a student?"
The two particles 「は」 and 「が」 may seem very similar only because it is impossible
to translate them directly into English. For example, the two sentences below have the same
English translation.*
Example 3
1. 私は学⽣。
I (am) student.
2. 私が学⽣。
I (am) student.
However, they only seem similar because English cannot express information about the context
as succinctly as Japanese sometimes can. In the first sentence, since 「私」 is the topic, the
sentence means, "Speaking about me, I am a student".
However, the second sentence is specifying who the 「学⽣」 is. If we want to know who the
student is, the 「が」 particle tells us it's 「私」. You can also think about the 「が」 particle as
always answering a silent question. The second sentence might be answering a question, "Who
is the student?" I often translate the topic particle as "as for; about" and the identifier particle as
"the one; the thing" to illustrate the difference.
1. 私は学⽣。
As for me, (I am) student.
2. 私が学⽣。
I (am) the one (that is) student.
The 「は」 and 「が」 particles are actually quite different if you think of it the right way. The
「が」 particle identifies a specific property of something while the 「は」 particle is used only to
bring up a new topic of conversation. This is why, in longer sentences, it is common to separate
37
3.4. ADJECTIVES
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
the topic with commas to remove ambiguity about which part of the sentence the topic applies
to.
*Well technically, it's the most likely translation given the lack of context.
3.4
3.4.1
Adjectives
Properties of Adjectives
Now that we can connect two nouns together in various ways using particles, we want to describe our
nouns with adjectives. An adjective can directly modify a noun that immediately follows it. It can also be
connected in the same way we did with nouns using particles. All adjectives fall under two categories:
na-adjectives and i-adjectives.
3.4.2
The na-adjective
Vocabulary
1. 静か【しず・か】(na-adj) - quiet
2. ⼈【ひと】- person
3. きれい (na-adj) - pretty; clean
4. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
5. 親切【しん・せつ】(na-adj) - kind
6. ⿂【さかな】- fish
7. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
8. ⾁【にく】- meat
9. 野菜【や・さい】- vegetables
The na-adjective is very simple to learn because it acts essentially like a noun. All the conjugation rules
for both nouns and na-adjectives are the same. One main difference is that a na-adjective can directly
modify a noun following it by sticking 「な」 between the adjective and noun. (Hence the name, naadjective.)
38
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.4. ADJECTIVES
Examples
1. 静かな⼈。
Quiet person.
2. きれいな⼈。
Pretty person.
You can also use adjectives with particles just like we did in the last lesson with nouns.
Examples
1. 友達は親切。
Friend is kind.
2. 友達は親切な⼈だ。
Friend is kind person.
As shown by the following examples, the conjugation rules for na-adjectives are the same as nouns.
Examples
1. ボブは⿂が好きだ。
Bob likes fish.
2. ボブは⿂が好きじゃない。
Bob does not like fish.
3. ボブは⿂が好きだった。
Bob liked fish.
4. ボブは⿂が好きじゃなかった。
Bob did not like fish.
If it bothers you that "like" is an adjective and not a verb in Japanese, you can think of 「好き」 as
meaning "desirable". Also, you can see a good example of the topic and identifier particle working in
harmony. The sentence is about the topic "Bob" and "fish" identifies specifically what Bob likes.
You can also use the last three conjugations to directly modify the noun. (Remember to attach 「な」 for
positive non-past tense.)
Examples
1. ⿂が好きな⼈。
Person that likes fish.
39
3.4. ADJECTIVES
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
2. ⿂が好きじゃない⼈。
Person that does not like fish.
3. ⿂が好きだった⼈。
Person that liked fish.
4. ⿂が好きじゃなかった⼈。
Person that did not like fish.
Here, the entire clause 「⿂が好き」、「⿂が好きじゃない」、etc. is modifying "person" to talk about
people that like or dislike fish. You can see why this type of sentence is useful because 「⼈は⿂が好
きだ」 would mean "People like fish", which isn't always the case.
We can even treat the whole descriptive noun clause as we would a single noun. For instance, we can
make the whole clause a topic like the following example.
Examples
1. ⿂が好きじゃない⼈は、⾁が好きだ。
Person who does not like fish like meat.
2. ⿂が好きな⼈は、野菜も好きだ。
Person who likes fish also like vegetables.
3.4.3
The i-adjective
Vocabulary
1. 嫌い【きら・い】(na-adj) - distasteful, hateful
2. ⾷べ物【た・べ・もの】- food
3. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
4. ⾼い【たか・い】(i-adj) - high; tall; expensive
5. ビル - building
6. 値段【ね・だん】- price
7. レストラン - restaurant
8. あまり/あんまり - not very (when used with negative)
9. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
10. いい (i-adj) - good
40
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.4. ADJECTIVES
All i-adjectives always end in the Hiragana character: 「い」. However, you may have noticed that some
na-adjectives also end in 「い」 such as 「きれい (な)」. So how can you tell the difference? There are
actually very few na-adjectives that end with 「い」 that is usually not written in Kanji. Two of the most
common include: 「きれい」 and 「嫌い」. Almost all other na-adjectives that end in 「い」 are usually
written in Kanji and so you can easily tell that it's not an i-adjective. For instance, 「きれい」 written in
Kanji looks like 「綺麗」 or 「奇麗」. Since the 「い」 part of 「麗」 is part of a Kanji character, you
know that it can't be an i-adjective. That's because the whole point of the 「い」 in i-adjectives is to allow
conjugation without changing the Kanji. In fact, 「嫌い」 is one of the rare na-adjectives that ends in
「い」 without a Kanji. This has to do with the fact that 「嫌い」 is actually derived from the verb 「嫌う」.
Unlike na-adjectives, you do not need to add 「な」 to directly modify a noun with an i-adjective.
Examples
1. 嫌いな⾷べ物。
Hated food.
2. おいしい⾷べ物。
Tasty food.
Remember how the negative state-of-being for nouns also ended in 「い」 (じゃない)? Well, just like
the negative state-of-being for nouns, you can never attach the declarative 「だ」 to i-adjectives.
Do NOT attach 「だ」 to i-adjectives.
Now that we got that matter cleared up, below are the rules for conjugating i-adjectives. Notice that the
rule for conjugating to negative past tense is the same as the rule for the past tense.
Conjugation rules for i-adjectives
Negative: First remove the trailing 「い」 from the i-adjective and then attach 「くない」
Example: ⾼い → ⾼くない
Past-tense: First remove the trailing 「い」 from the i-adjective or negative i-adjective and then
attach 「かった」
Examples
.
1. ⾼い → ⾼かった
2. ⾼くない → ⾼くなかった
Summary of i-adjective conjugations
Positive
Negative
Non-Past
⾼い
⾼くない
Past
⾼かった ⾼くなかった
41
3.4. ADJECTIVES
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Examples
1. ⾼いビル。
Tall building.
2. ⾼くないビル。
Not tall building.
3. ⾼かったビル。
Building that was tall.
4. ⾼くなかったビル。
Building that was not tall.
Note that you can make the same type of descriptive noun clause as we have done with na-adjectives.
The only difference is that we don't need 「な」 to directly modify the noun.
Example
• 値段が⾼いレストランはあまり好きじゃない。
Don't like high price restaurants very much.
In this example, the descriptive clause 「値段が⾼い」 is directly modifying 「レストラン」.
3.4.4
An annoying exception
Vocabulary
1. 値段【ね・だん】- price
2. あまり/あんまり - not very (when used with negative)
3. いい (i-adj) - good
4. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
5. かっこいい (i-adj) - cool; handsome
There is one i-adjective meaning "good" that acts slightly differently from all other i-adjectives. This is
a classic case of how learning Japanese is harder for beginners because the most common and useful
words also have the most exceptions. The word for "good" was originally 「よい (良い)」 . However,
with time, it soon became 「いい」. When it is written in Kanji, it is usually read as 「よい」 so 「いい」
is almost always Hiragana. That's all fine and good. Unfortunately, all the conjugations are still derived
from 「よい」 and not 「いい」. This is shown in the next table.
42
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.5. VERB BASICS
Another adjective that acts like this is 「かっこいい」 because it is an abbreviated version of two words
merged together: 「格好」 and 「いい」. Since it uses the same 「いい」, you need to use the same
conjugations.
Conjugation for 「いい」
Positive
Negative
Non-Past
いい
よくない
Past
よかった よくなかった
Conjugation for 「かっこいい」
Positive
Negative
Non-Past
かっこいい
かっこよくない
Past
かっこよかった かっこよくなかった
Take care to make all the conjugations from 「よい」 not 「いい」.
Examples
1. 値段があんまりよくない。
Price isn't very good.
2. 彼はかっこよかった!
He looked really cool!
3.5
Verb Basics
3.5.1
Role of Verbs
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
3. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
4. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
5. 起きる【お・きる】(ru-verb) - to wake; to occur
6. 考える【かんが・える】(ru-verb) - to think
7. 教える【おし・える】(ru-verb) - to teach; to inform
43
3.5. VERB BASICS
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
8. 出る【で・る】(ru-verb) - to come out
9. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
10. 着る【き・る】(ru-verb) - to wear
11. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
12. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
13. 泳ぐ【およ・ぐ】(u-verb) - to swim
14. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
15. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
16. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
17. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
18. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
19. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
20. する (exception) - to do
21. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
22. お⾦【お・かね】- money
23. 私【わたし】- me, myself, I
24. 猫【ねこ】- cat
We've now learned how to describe nouns in various ways with other nouns and adjectives. This gives
us quite a bit of expressive power. However, we still cannot express actions. This is where verbs come
in. Verbs, in Japanese, always come at the end of clauses. Since we have not yet learned how to create
more than one clause, for now it means that any sentence with a verb must end with the verb. We will
now learn the three main categories of verbs, which will allow us to define conjugation rules. Before
learning about verbs, there is one important thing to keep in mind.
Note
.
A grammatically complete sentence requires a verb
only (including state-of-being).
Or to rephrase, unlike English, the only thing you need to make a grammatically complete sentence is a
verb and nothing else! That's why even the simplest, most basic Japanese sentence cannot be translated
into English!
A grammatically complete sentence:
• ⾷べる。
Eat. (possible translations include: I eat/she eats/they eat)
44
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.5.2
3.5. VERB BASICS
Classifying verbs into ru-verbs and u-verbs
Before we can learn any verb conjugations, we first need to learn how verbs are categorized. With the
exception of only two exception verbs, all verbs fall into the category of ru-verb or u-verb.
All ru-verbs end in 「る」 while u-verbs can end in a number of u-vowel sounds including 「る」 .
Therefore, if a verb does not end in 「る」, it will always be an u-verb. For verbs ending in 「る」, if the
vowel sound preceding the 「る」 is an /a/, /u/ or /o/ vowel sound, it will always be an u-verb. Otherwise,
if the preceding sound is an /i/ or /e/ vowel sound, it will be a ru-verb in most cases. A list of common
exceptions are at the end of this section.
Examples
1. ⾷べる - 「べ」 is an e-vowel sound so it is a ru-verb
2. 分かる - 「か」 is an a-vowel sound so it is an u-verb
If you're unsure which category a verb falls in, you can verify which kind it is with most dictionaries. There
are only two exception verbs that are neither ru-verbs nor u-verbs as shown in the table below.
Examples of different verb types
ru-verb u-verb
exception
⾒る
話す
する
⾷べる
聞く
来る
寝る
泳ぐ
起きる
遊ぶ
考える
待つ
教える
飲む
出る
買う
いる
ある
着る
死ぬ
Examples
Here are some example sentences using ru-verbs, u-verbs, and exception verbs.
1. アリスは⾷べる。
As for Alice, eat.
2. ジムが来る。
Jim is the one that comes.
3. ボブもする。
Bob also do.
45
3.5. VERB BASICS
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
4. お⾦がある。
There is money. (lit: Money is the thing that exists.)
5. 私は買う。
As for me, buy.
6. 猫はいる。
There is cat. (lit: As for cat, it exists.)
3.5.3
Appendix: iru/eru u-verbs
Vocabulary
1. 要る【い・る】(u-verb) - to need
2. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
3. 切る【き・る】(u-verb) - to cut
4. しゃべる (u-verb) - to talk
5. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
6. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
7. ⾛る【はし・る】(u-verb) - to run
8. 減る【へ・る】(u-verb) - to decrease
9. 焦る【あせ・る】(u-verb) - to be in a hurry
10. 限る【かぎ・る】(u-verb) - to limit
11. 蹴る【け・る】(u-verb) - to kick
12. 滑る【すべ・る】(u-verb) - to be slippery
13. 握る【にぎ・る】(u-verb) - to grasp
14. 練る【ね・る】(u-verb) - to knead
15. 参る【まい・る】(u-verb) - to go; to come
16. 交じる【まじ・る】(u-verb) - to mingle
17. 嘲る【あざけ・る】(u-verb) - to ridicule
18. 覆る【くつがえ・る】(u-verb) - to overturn
19. 遮る【さえぎ・る】(u-verb) - to interrupt
20. 罵る【ののし・る】(u-verb) - to abuse verbally
21. 捻る【ひね・る】(u-verb) - to twist
22. 翻る【ひるが・える】(u-verb) - to turn over; to wave
46
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.6. NEGATIVE VERBS
23. 滅⼊る【めい・る】(u-verb) - to feel depressed
24. 蘇る【よみがえ・る】(u-verb) - to be resurrected
Below is a list of u-verbs with a preceding vowel sound of /i/ or /e/ ("iru" or "eru" sound endings). The list
is not comprehensive but it does include many of the more common verbs categorized roughly into three
levels.
iru/eru u-verbs grouped (roughly) by level
Basic
Intermediate
Advanced
要る
焦る
嘲る
帰る
限る
覆る
切る
蹴る
遮る
しゃべる
滑る
罵る
知る
握る
捻る
⼊る
練る
翻る
⾛る
参る
滅⼊る
減る
交じる
蘇る
3.6
Negative Verbs
Now that we've seen how to declare things and perform actions with verbs, we want to be able to say the
negative. In other words, we want to say that such-and-such action was not performed. This is done by
conjugating the verb to the negative form just like the state-of-being for nouns and adjectives. However,
the rules are a tad more complicated.
3.6.1
Conjugating verbs into the negative
Vocabulary
1. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
2. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
3. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
4. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
5. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
6. する (exception) - to do
7. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
8. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
47
3.6. NEGATIVE VERBS
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
9. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
10. 起きる【お・きる】(ru-verb) - to wake; to occur
11. 考える【かんが・える】(ru-verb) - to think
12. 教える【おし・える】(ru-verb) - to teach; to inform
13. 出る【で・る】(ru-verb) - to come out
14. 着る【き・る】(ru-verb) - to wear
15. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
16. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
17. 泳ぐ【およ・ぐ】(u-verb) - to swim
18. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
19. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
20. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
21. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
22. お⾦【お・かね】- money
23. 私【わたし】- me, myself, I
24. 猫【ねこ】- cat
We will now make use of the verb classifications we learned in the last section to define the rules for
conjugation. But before we get into that, we need to cover one very important exception to the negative
conjugation rules: 「ある」.
• ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
• いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
「ある」 is an u-verb used to express existence of inanimate objects. The equivalent verb for animate
objects (such as people or animals) is 「いる」, which is a normal ru-verb. For example, if you wanted
to say that a chair is in the room, you would use the verb 「ある」, but if you wanted to say that a person
is in the room, you must use the verb 「いる」 instead. These two verbs 「ある」 and 「いる」 are
quite different from all other verbs because they describe existence and are not actual actions. You also
need to be careful to choose the correct one based on animate or inanimate objects.
Anyway, the reason I bring it up here is because the negative of 「ある」 is 「ない」 (meaning that
something does not exist). The conjugation rules for all other verbs are listed below as well as a list of
example verbs and their negative forms.
* = exceptions particular to this conjugation
48
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.6. NEGATIVE VERBS
Conjugation rules for negative verbs
• For ru-verbs: Drop the 「る」 and attach 「ない」
Example: ⾷べ る + ない = ⾷べない
• * For u-verbs that end in 「う」: Replace 「う」 with 「わ」 and attach 「ない」
Example: 買 う + わ + ない = 買わない
• For all other u-verbs: Replace the u-vowel sound with the a-vowel equivalent and attach 「な
い」
.
Example: 待 つ + た = 待たない
• Exceptions:
1. する → しない
2. くる → こない
3. *ある → ない
Negative form conjugation examples
ru-verb
u-verb
exception
⾒る → ⾒ない
話す → 話さない
する → しない
⾷べる → ⾷べない
聞く → 聞かない
くる → こない
寝る → 寝ない
泳ぐ → 泳がない
*ある → ない
起きる → 起きない
遊ぶ → 遊ばない
考える → 考えない
待つ → 待たない
教える → 教えない
飲む → 飲まない
出る → 出ない
*買う → 買わない
着る → 着ない
帰る → 帰らない
いる → いない
死ぬ → 死なない
Examples
Here are the example sentences from the last section conjugated to the negative form.
1. アリスは⾷べない。
As for Alice, does not eat.
2. ジムが遊ばない。
Jim is the one that does not play.
3. ボブもしない。
Bob also does not do.
4. お⾦がない。
There is no money. (lit: Money is the thing that does not exist.)
49
3.7. PAST TENSE
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
5. 私は買わない。
As for me, not buy.
6. 猫はいない。
There is no cat. (lit: As for cat, does not exist.)
3.7
Past Tense
We will finish defining all the basic properties of verbs by learning how to express the past and pastnegative tense of actions. I will warn you in advance that the conjugation rules in this section will be the
most complex rules you will learn in all of Japanese. On the one hand, once you have this section nailed,
all other rules of conjugation will seem simple. On the other hand, you might need to refer back to this
section many times before you finally get all the rules. You will probably need a great deal of practice
until you can become familiar with all the different conjugations.
3.7.1
Past tense for ru-verbs
Vocabulary
1. 出る【で・る】(ru-verb) - to come out
2. 捨てる【す・てる】(ru-verb) - to throw away
3. ご飯【ご・はん】- rice; meal
4. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
5. 映画【えい・が】- movie
6. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
7. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
We will start off with the easy ru-verb category. To change a ru-verb from the dictionary form into the past
tense, you simply drop the 「る」 and add 「た」.
To change ru-verbs into the past tense
Drop the 「る」 part of the ru-verb and add 「た」
Examples
.
1. 出る → 出た
2. 捨てる → 捨てた
50
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.7. PAST TENSE
Examples
1. ご飯は、⾷べた。
As for meal, ate.
2. 映画は、全部⾒た。
As for movie, saw them all.
3.7.2
Past tense for u-verbs
Vocabulary
1. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
2. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
3. 泳ぐ【およ・ぐ】(u-verb) - to swim
4. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
5. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
6. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
7. 切る【き・る】(u-verb) - to cut
8. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
9. 持つ【も・つ】(u-verb) - to hold
10. する (exception) - to do
11. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
12. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
13. 今⽇【きょう】- today
14. ⾛る【はし・る】(u-verb) - to run
15. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
16. 私【わたし】- me, myself, I
17. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
Changing a u-verb from dictionary form to the past tense is difficult because we must break up u-verbs
into four additional categories. These four categories depend on the last character of the verb. The table
below illustrates the different sub-categories. In addition, there is one exception to the rules, which is the
verb 「⾏く」. I've bundled it with the regular exception verbs 「する」 and 「来る」 even though 「⾏
く」 is a regular u-verb in all other conjugations.
51
3.7. PAST TENSE
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Past tense conjugations for u-verbs
Ending Non-Past changes to...
Past
す
話す
す → した
話した
く
書く
く → いた
書いた
ぐ
泳ぐ
ぐ → いだ
泳いだ
む
飲む
む → んだ
飲んだ
ぬ
死ぬ
ぬ → んだ
死んだ
ぶ
遊ぶ
ぶ → んだ
遊んだ
る
切る
る →った
切った
つ
持つ
つ →った
持った
う
買う
う →った
買った
* exceptions particular to this conjugation
Examples
1. 今⽇は、⾛った。
As for today, ran.
2. 友達が来た。
Friend is the one that came.
3. 私も遊んだ。
I also played.
4. 勉強は、した。
About study, did it.
3.7.3
Past-negative tense for all verbs
Vocabulary
1. 捨てる【す・てる】(ru-verb) - to throw away
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. ⾷べる【たべ・る】(ru-verb) - to eat
4. する (exception) - to do
5. お⾦【お・かね】- money
6. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
7. 私【わたし】- me, myself, I
8. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
9. 猫 【ねこ】- cat
52
Exceptions
Non-Past
Past
する
した
くる
きた
⾏く
⾏った*
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.8. PARTICLES USED WITH VERBS
10. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
The conjugation rules for the past-negative tense are the same for all verbs. You might have noticed that
the negative of just about everything always end in 「ない」. The conjugation rule for the past-negative
tense of verbs is pretty much the same as all the other negatives that end in 「ない」. You simply take
the negative of any verb, remove the 「い」 from the 「ない」 ending, and replace it with 「かった」.
To change verbs into the past-negative tense
Change the verb to the negative and replace the 「い」 with 「かった」
Examples
.
1. 捨てる → 捨てない → 捨てなかった
2. ⾏く → ⾏かない → ⾏かなかった
Examples
1. アリスは⾷べなかった。
As for Alice, did not eat.
2. ジムがしなかった。
Jim is the one that did not do.
3. ボブも⾏かなかった。
Bob also did not go.
4. お⾦がなかった。
There was no money. (lit: As for money, did not exist.)
5. 私は買わなかった。
As for me, did not buy.
6. 猫はいなかった。
There was no cat. (lit: As for cat, did not exist.)
3.8
Particles used with verbs (を、に、へ、で)
In this section, we will learn some new particles essential for using verbs. We will learn how to specify
the direct object of a verb and the location where a verb takes place whether it's physical or abstract.
53
3.8. PARTICLES USED WITH VERBS
3.8.1
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
The direct object 「を」 particle
Vocabulary
1. ⿂【さかな】- fish
2. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
3. ジュース - juice
4. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
5. 街【まち】- town
6. ぶらぶら - wandering; aimlessly
7. 歩く【ある・く】(u-verb) - to walk
8. ⾼速【こう・そく】- high-speed
9. 道路【どう・ろ】- route
10. ⾛る【はし・る】(u-verb) - to run
11. 毎⽇【まい・にち】- everyday
12. ⽇本語【に・ほん・ご】- Japanese (language)
13. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
14. する (exception) - to do
15. メールアドレス - email address
16. 登録【とう・ろく】- register
The first particle we will learn is the object particle because it is a very straightforward particle. The
「を」 character is attached to the end of a word to signify that that word is the direct object of the verb.
This character is essentially never used anywhere else. That is why the katakana equivalent 「ヲ」 is
almost never used since particles are always written in hiragana. The 「を」 character, while technically
pronounced as /wo/ essentially sounds like /o/ in real speech. Here are some examples of the direct
object particle in action.
Examples
1. ⿂を⾷べる。
Eat fish.
2. ジュースを飲んだ。
Drank juice.
54
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.8. PARTICLES USED WITH VERBS
Unlike the direct object we're familiar with in English, places can also be the direct object of motion verbs
such as 「歩く」 and 「⾛る」 . Since the motion verb is done to the location, the concept of direct
object is the same in Japanese. However, as you can see by the next examples, it often translates to
something different in English due to the slight difference of the concept of direct object.
1. 街をぶらぶら歩く。
Aimlessly walk through town. (Lit: Aimlessly walk town)
2. ⾼速道路を⾛る。
Run through expressway. (Lit: Run expressway)
When you use 「する」 with a noun, the 「を」 particle is optional and you can treat the whole [noun+
する] as one verb.
1. 毎⽇、⽇本語を勉強する。
Study Japanese everyday.
2. メールアドレスを登録した。
Registered email address.
3.8.2
The target 「に」 particle
Vocabulary
1. ⽇本【に・ほん】- Japan
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. 家【1) うち; 2) いえ】- 1) one's own home; 2) house
4. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
5. 部屋【へ・や】- room
6. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
7. アメリカ - America
8. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
9. 今⽇【きょう】- today
10. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
11. 猫【ねこ】- cat
12. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
13. いす - chair
55
3.8. PARTICLES USED WITH VERBS
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
14. 台所【だい・どころ】- kitchen
15. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
16. いい (i-adj) - good
17. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
18. 会う【あう】(u-verb) - to meet
19. 医者【い・しゃ】- doctor
20. なる (u-verb) - to become
21. 先週【せん・しゅう】- last week
22. 図書館【と・しょ・かん】- library
23. 来年【らい・ねん】- next year
The 「に」 particle can specify a target of a verb. This is different from the 「を」 particle in which the
verb does something to the direct object. With the 「に」 particle, the verb does something toward the
word associated with the 「に」 particle. For example, the target of any motion verb is specified by the
「に」 particle.
Examples
1. ボブは⽇本に⾏った。
Bob went to Japan.
2. 家に帰らない。
Not go back home.
3. 部屋にくる。
Come to room.
As you can see in the last example, the target particle always targets "to" rather than "from". If you wanted
to say, "come from" for example, you would need to use 「から」, which means "from". If you used 「に」
, it would instead mean "come to". 「から」 is also often paired with 「まで」, which means "up to".
1. アリスは、アメリカからきた。
Alice came from America.
2. 宿題を今⽇から明⽇までする。
Will do homework from today to tomorrow.
The idea of a target in Japanese is very general and is not restricted to motion verbs. For example, the
location of an object is defined as the target of the verb for existence (ある and いる). Time is also a
common target. Here are some examples of non-motion verbs and their targets
56
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.8. PARTICLES USED WITH VERBS
1. 猫は部屋にいる。
Cat is in room.
2. いすが台所にあった。
Chair was in the kitchen.
3. いい友達に会った。
Met good friend.
4. ジムは医者になる。
Jim will become doctor.
5. 先週に図書館に⾏った。
Went to library last week.
Note: Don't forget to use 「ある」 for inanimate objects such as the chair and 「いる」 for animate
objects such as the cat.
While the 「に」 particle is not always required to indicate time, there is a slight difference in meaning
between using the target particle and not using anything at all. In the following examples, the target
particle makes the date a specific target emphasizing that the friend will go to Japan at that time. Without
the particle, there is no special emphasis.
1. 友達は、来年、⽇本に⾏く。
Next year, friend go to Japan.
2. 友達は、来年に⽇本に⾏く。
Friend go to Japan next year.
3.8.3
The directional 「へ」 particle
Vocabulary
1. ⽇本【に・ほん】- Japan
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. 家【1) うち; 2) いえ】- 1) one's own home; 2) house
4. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
5. 部屋【へ・や】- room
6. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
7. 医者【い・しゃ】- doctor
8. なる (u-verb) - to become
9. 勝ち【か・ち】- victory
57
3.8. PARTICLES USED WITH VERBS
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
10. 向かう【むか・う】(u-verb) - to face; to go towards
While 「へ」 is normally pronounced /he/, when it is being used as a particle, it is always pronounced
/e/ (え). The primary difference between the 「に」 and 「へ」 particle is that 「に」 goes to a target
as the final, intended destination (both physical or abstract). The 「へ」 particle, on the other hand, is
used to express the fact that one is setting out towards the direction of the target. As a result, it is only
used with directional motion verbs. It also does not guarantee whether the target is the final intended
destination, only that one is heading towards that direction. In other words, the 「に」 particle sticks to
the destination while the 「へ」 particle is fuzzy about where one is ultimately headed. For example, if
we choose to replace 「に」 with 「へ」 in the first three examples of the previous section, the nuance
changes slightly.
Examples
1. ボブは⽇本へ⾏った。
Bob headed towards Japan.
2. 家へ帰らない。
Not go home toward house.
3. 部屋へくる。
Come towards room.
Note that we cannot use the 「へ」 particle with verbs that have no physical direction. For example, the
following is incorrect.
• 医者へなる。
(Grammatically incorrect version of 「医者になる」.)
This does not mean to say that 「へ」 cannot set out towards an abstract concept. In fact, because of
the fuzzy directional meaning of this particle, the 「へ」 particle can also be used to talk about setting
out towards certain future goals or expectations.
• 勝ちへ向かう。
Go towards victory.
3.8.4
The contextual 「で」 particle
Vocabulary
1. 映画館【えい・が・かん】- movie theatre
2. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
58
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.8. PARTICLES USED WITH VERBS
3. バス - bus
4. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
5. レストラン - restaurant
6. 昼ご飯【ひる・ご・はん】- lunch
7. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
8. 何【なに/なん】- what
9. 暇【ひま】- free (as in not busy)
The 「で」 particle will allow us to specify the context in which the action is performed. For example, if a
person ate a fish, where did he eat it? If a person went to school, by what means did she go? With what
will you eat the soup? All of these questions can be answered with the 「で」 particle. Here are some
examples.
Examples
1. 映画館で⾒た。
Saw at movie theater.
2. バスで帰る。
Go home by bus.
3. レストランで昼ご飯を⾷べた。
Ate lunch at restaurant.
It may help to think of 「で」 as meaning "by way of". This way, the same meaning will kind of translate
into what the sentence means. The examples will then read: "Saw by way of movie theater", "Go home
by way of bus", and "Ate lunch by way of restaurant."
Using 「で」 with 「何」
The word for "what" (何) is quite annoying because while it's usually read as 「なに」, sometimes it is
read as 「なん」 depending on how it's used. And since it's always written in Kanji, you can't tell which
it is. I would suggest sticking with 「なに」 until someone corrects you for when it should be 「なん」.
With the 「で」 particle, it is read as 「なに」 as well. (Hold the mouse cursor over the word to check
the reading.)
1. 何できた?
Came by the way of what?
2. バスできた。
Came by the way of bus.
59
3.8. PARTICLES USED WITH VERBS
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Here's the confusing part. There is a colloquial version of the word "why" that is used much more often
than the less colloquial version 「どうして」 or the more forceful 「なぜ」. It is also written as 「何で」
but it is read as 「なんで」 . This is a completely separate word and has nothing to do with the 「で」
particle.
1. 何できた?
Why did you come?
2. 暇だから。
Because I am free (as in have nothing to do).
The 「から」 here meaning "because" is different from the 「から」 we just learned and will be covered
later in the compound sentence section. Basically the point is that the two sentences, while written the
same way, are read differently and mean completely different things. Don't worry. This causes less
confusion than you think because 95% of the time, the latter is used rather than the former. And even
when 「なにで」 is intended, the context will leave no mistake on which one is being used. Even in this
short example snippet, you can tell which it is by looking at the answer to the question.
3.8.5
When location is the topic
Vocabulary
1. 学校【がっ・こう】- school
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. 図書館【と・しょ・かん】- library
4. どこ - where
5. イタリア - Italy
6. レストラン - restaurant
7. どう - how
There are times when the location of an action is also the topic of a sentence. You can attach the topic
particle (「は」 and 「も」) to the three particles that indicate location (「に」、「へ」、「で」) when
the location is the topic. We'll see how location might become the topic in the following examples.
Example 1
ボブ:学校に⾏った?
Bob: (Did you) go to school?
60
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.8. PARTICLES USED WITH VERBS
アリス:⾏かなかった。
Alice: Didn't go.
ボブ:図書館には?
Bob: What about library?
アリス:図書館にも⾏かなかった。
Alice: Also didn't go to library.
In this example, Bob brings up a new topic (library) and so the location becomes the topic. The sentence
is actually an abbreviated version of 「図書館には⾏った?」 which you can ascertain from the context.
Example 2
ボブ:どこで⾷べる?
Bob: Eat where?
アリス:イタリアレストランではどう?
Alice: How about Italian restaurant?
Bob asks, "Where shall we eat?" and Alice suggests an Italian restaurant. A sentence like, "How about..."
usually brings up a new topic because the person is suggesting something new. In this case, the location
(restaurant) is being suggested so it becomes the topic.
3.8.6
When direct object is the topic
Vocabulary
1. ⽇本語【に・ほん・ご】- Japanese (language)
2. 習う【なら・う】(u-verb) - to learn
The direct object particle is different from particles related to location in that you cannot use any other
particles at the same time. For example, going by the previous section, you might have guessed that you
can say 「をは」 to express a direct object that is also the topic but this is not the case. A topic can be
a direct object without using the 「を」 particle. In fact, putting the 「を」 particle in will make it wrong.
Examples
1. ⽇本語を習う。
Learn Japanese.
2. ⽇本語は、習う。
About Japanese, (will) learn it.
61
3.9. TRANSITIVE AND INTRANSITIVE VERBS
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Please take care to not make this mistake.
• ⽇本語をは、習う。
(This is incorrect.)
3.9
Transitive and Intransitive Verbs
In Japanese, sometimes there are two types of the same verb often referred to as transitive and intransitive verbs. The difference between the two is that one verb is an action done by an active agent while
the other is something that occurs without a direct agent. In English, this is sometimes expressed with
the same verb, such as: "The ball dropped" vs "I dropped the ball" but in Japanese it becomes 「ボー
ルが落ちた」 vs 「ボールを落とした」. Sometimes, the verbs changes when translated into English
such as "To put it in the box" (箱に⼊れる) vs "To enter the box" (箱に⼊る) but this is only from the
differences in the languages. If you think in Japanese, intransitive and transitive verbs have the same
meaning except that one indicates that someone had a direct hand in the action (direct object) while the
other does not. While knowing the terminology is not important, it is important to know which is which in
order to use the correct particle for the correct verb.
Since the basic meaning and the kanji is the same, you can learn two verbs for the price of just one kanji!
Let's look at a sample list of intransitive and transitive verbs.
Transitive and Intransitive Verbs
Transitive
Intransitive
落とす
to drop 落ちる to fall
出す
to take out 出る to come out; to leave
⼊れる
to insert ⼊る to enter
開ける
to open 開く to be opened
閉める
to close 閉まる to be closed
つける
to attach つく to be attached
消す
to erase 消える to disappear
抜く
to extract 抜ける to be extracted
3.9.1
Pay attention to particles!
The important lesson to take away here is to learn how to use the correct particle for the correct type of
verb. It might be difficult at first to grasp which is which when learning new verbs or whether there even
is a transitive/intransitive distinction. If you're not sure, you can always check whether a verb is transitive
or intransitive by using an online dictionary such as jisho.org
62
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.10. RELATIVE CLAUSES AND SENTENCE ORDER
Examples
1. 私が電気をつけた。
I am the one that turned on the lights.
2. 電気がついた。
The lights turned on.
3. 電気を消す。
Turn off the lights.
4. 電気が消える。
Lights turn off.
5. 誰が窓を開けた?
Who opened the window?
6. 窓がどうして開いた?
Why has the window opened?
The important thing to remember is that intransitive verbs cannot have a direct object because there is
no direct acting agent. The following sentences are grammatically incorrect.
1. 電気をついた。
(「を」 should be replaced with 「が」 or 「は」)
2. 電気を消える。
(「を」 should be replaced with 「が」 or 「は」)
3. どうして窓を開いた?
(「を」 should be replaced with 「が」 or 「は」)
The only time you can use the 「を」 particle for intransitive verbs is when a location is the direct object
of a motion verb as briefly described in the previous section.
1. 部屋を出た。
I left room.
3.10 Relative Clauses and Sentence Order
3.10.1
Treating verbs and state-of-being like adjectives
Have you noticed how, many forms of verbs and the state-of-being conjugate in a similar manner to iadjectives? Well, that is because, in a sense, they are adjectives. For example, consider the sentence:
"The person who did not eat went to bank." The "did not eat" describes the person and in Japanese, you
can directly modify the noun 'person' with the clause 'did not eat' just like a regular adjective. This very
simple realization will allow us to modify a noun with any arbitrary verb phrase!
63
3.10. RELATIVE CLAUSES AND SENTENCE ORDER
3.10.2
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Using state-of-being clauses as adjectives
Vocabulary
1. 国際【こく・さい】- international
2. 教育【きょう・いく】- education
3. センター- center
4. 登場【とう・じょう】- entry (on stage)
5. ⼈物【じん・ぶつ】- character
6. ⽴⼊【たち・いり】- entering
7. 禁⽌【きん・し】- prohibition, ban
8. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
9. ⼈【ひと】- person
10. 学校【がっ・こう】- school
11. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
12. ⼦供【こ・ども】- child
13. ⽴派【りっ・ぱ】(na-adj) - fine, elegant
14. ⼤⼈【おとな】- adult
15. なる (u-verb) - to become
16. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
17. いい (i-adj) - good
18. 先週【せん・しゅう】- last week
19. 医者【い・しゃ】- doctor
20. 仕事【し・ごと】- job
21. 辞める【や・める】(ru-verb) - to quit
The negative, past, and negative past conjugations of verbs can be used just like adjectives to directly
modify nouns. However, we cannot do this with the plain non-past state-of-being using 「だ」 . (I told
you this was a pain in the butt.) The language has particles for this purpose, which will be covered in the
next section.
Note
You cannot use 「だ」 to directly modify a noun .with a noun like you can with 「だった」、「じゃ
ない」、and 「じゃなかった」.
You can, however, have a string of nouns placed together when they're not meant to modify each other.
64
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.10. RELATIVE CLAUSES AND SENTENCE ORDER
For example, in a phrase such as "International Education Center" you can see that it is just a string
of nouns without any grammatical modifications between them. It's not an "Education Center that is International" or a "Center for International Education", etc., it's just "International Education Center". In
Japanese, you can express this as simply 「国際教育センタ」 (or 「センター」 ). You will see this
chaining of nouns in many combinations. Sometimes a certain combination is so commonly used that it
has almost become a separate word and is even listed as a separate entry in some dictionaries. Some
examples include: 「登場⼈物」、 「⽴⼊禁⽌」、or 「通勤⼿当」. If you have difficulties in figuring
out where to separate the words, you can paste them into the WWWJDICs Translate Words in Japanese
Text function and it'll parse the words for you (most of the time).
Examples
Here are some examples of direct noun modifications with a conjugated noun clause. The noun clause
has been highlighted.
1. 学⽣じゃない⼈は、学校に⾏かない。
Person who is not student do not go to school.
2. ⼦供だったアリスが⽴派な⼤⼈になった。
The Alice that was a child became a fine adult.
3. 友達じゃなかったアリスは、いい友達になった。
Alice who was not a friend, became a good friend.
4. 先週医者だったボブは、仕事を辞めた。
Bob who was a doctor last week quit his job.
3.10.3
Using relative verb clauses as adjectives
Vocabulary
1. 先週【せん・しゅう】- last week
2. 映画【えい・が】- movie
3. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
4. ⼈【ひと】- person
5. 誰【だれ】- who
6. いつも - always
7. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
8. する (exception) - to do
9. ⾚い【あか・い】(i-adj) - red
65
3.10. RELATIVE CLAUSES AND SENTENCE ORDER
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
10. ズボン - pants
11. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
12. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
13. 晩ご飯【ばん・ご・はん】- dinner
14. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
15. 銀⾏【ぎん・こう】- bank
Verbs clauses can also be used just like adjectives to modify nouns. The following examples show us
how this will allow us to make quite detailed and complicated sentences. The verb clause is highlighted.
Examples
1. 先週に映画を⾒た⼈は誰?
Who is person who watched movie last week?
2. ボブは、いつも勉強する⼈だ。
Bob is a person who always studies.
3. ⾚いズボンを買う友達はボブだ。
Friend who buy red pants is Bob.
4. 晩ご飯を⾷べなかった⼈は、映画で⾒た銀⾏に⾏った。
Person who did not eat dinner went to the bank she saw at movie.
3.10.4
Japanese Sentence Order
Vocabulary
1. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
2. 公園【こう・えん】- (public) park
3. お弁当【お・べん・とう】- box lunch
4. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
5. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
6. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
Now that we've learned the concept of relative clauses and how they are used as building blocks to make
sentences, I can go over how Japanese sentence ordering works. There's this myth that keeps floating
around about Japanese sentence order that continues to plague many hapless beginners to Japanese.
Here's how it goes.
66
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.10. RELATIVE CLAUSES AND SENTENCE ORDER
The most basic sentence structure in English can be described as consisting of the following elements
in this specific order: [Subject] [Verb] [Object]. A sentence is not grammatically correct if any of those
elements are missing or out of order.
Japanese students will tell you that Japanese, on the other hand, while frothing at the mouth, is completely
backwards!! Even some Japanese teacher might tell you that the basic Japanese sentence order is
[Subject] [Object] [Verb]. This is a classic example of trying to fit Japanese into an English-based type
of thinking. Of course, we all know (right?) that the real order of the fundamental Japanese sentence is:
[Verb]. Anything else that comes before the verb doesn't have to come in any particular order and nothing
more than the verb is required to make a complete sentence. In addition, the verb must always come
at the end. That's the whole point of even having particles so that they can identify what grammatical
function a word serves no matter where it is in the sentence. In fact, nothing will stop us from making a
sentence with [Object] [Subject] [Verb] or just [Object] [Verb]. The following sentences are all complete
and correct because the verb is at the end of the sentence.
Grammatically complete and correctly ordered sentences
1. 私は公園でお弁当を⾷べた。
2. 公園で私はお弁当を⾷べた。
3. お弁当を私は公園で⾷べた。
4. 弁当を⾷べた。
5. ⾷べた。
So don't sweat over whether your sentence is in the correct order. Just remember the following rules.
Japanese sentence order
• A complete sentence requires a main verb that must come at the end. This also includes the implied
state-of-being.
Examples
1. ⾷べた
2. 学⽣ (だ)
.
• Complete sentences (relative clauses) can be used to modify nouns to make sentences with nested
relative clauses except in the case of 「だ」.
Example
お弁当を⾷べた学⽣が公園に⾏った。
Student who ate lunch went to the park.
67
3.11. NOUN-RELATED PARTICLES
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.11 Noun-related Particles (と、や、とか、の)
3.11.1 The last three particles (Not!)
We have already gone over very powerful constructs that can express almost anything we want. We will
see the 「の」 particle will give us even more power by allowing us to define a generic, abstract noun.
We will also learn how to modify nouns directly with nouns. The three particles we will cover can group
nouns together in different ways.
This is the last lesson that will be specifically focused on particles but that does not mean that there are
no more particles to learn. We will learn many more particles along the way but they may not be labeled
as such. As long as you know what they mean and how to use them, it is not too important to know
whether they are particles or not.
3.11.2 The Inclusive 「と」 particle
Vocabulary
1. ナイフ - knife
2. フォーク - fork
3. ステーキ - steak
4. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
5. 本【ほん】- book
6. 雑誌【ざっ・し】- magazine
7. 葉書【はがき】- postcard
8. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
9. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
10. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
11. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
12. 会う【あ・う】(u-verb) - to meet
The「と」particle is similar to the「も」particle in that it contains a meaning of inclusion. It can combine
two or more nouns together to mean "and".
1. ナイフとフォークでステーキを⾷べた。
Ate steak by means of knife and fork.
68
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.11. NOUN-RELATED PARTICLES
2. 本と雑誌と葉書を買った。
Bought book, magazine, and post card.
Another similar use of the 「と」 particle is to show an action that was done together with someone or
something else.
1. 友達と話した。
Talked with friend.
2. 先⽣と会った。
Met with teacher.
3.11.3 The Vague Listing 「や」 and 「とか」 particles
Vocabulary
1. 飲み物【の・み・もの】- beverage
2. カップ - cup
3. ナプキン - napkin
4. いる (u-verb) - to need
5. 靴【くつ】- shoes
6. シャツ - shirt
7. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
The 「や」 particle, just like the 「と」 particle, is used to list one or more nouns except that it is much
more vague than the 「と」 particle. It implies that there may be other things that are unlisted and that
not all items in the list may apply. In English, you might think of this as an "and/or, etc." type of listing.
1. 飲み物やカップやナプキンは、いらない?
You don't need (things like) drink, cup, or napkin, etc.?
2. 靴やシャツを買う。
Buy (things like) shoes and shirt, etc...
「とか」 also has the same meaning as 「や」 but is a slightly more colloquial expression.
1. 飲み物とかカップとかナプキンは、いらない?
You don't need (things like) drink, cup, or napkin, etc.?
2. 靴とかシャツを買う。
Buy (things like) shoes and shirt, etc...
69
3.11. NOUN-RELATED PARTICLES
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.11.4 The 「の」 particle
Vocabulary
1. 本【ほん】- book
2. アメリカ - America
3. ⼤学【だい・がく】- college
4. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
5. それ - that
6. その - abbreviation of 「それの」
7. シャツ - shirt
8. 誰【だれ】- who
9. これ - this
10. この - abbreviation of 「これの」
11. あれ - that (over there)
12. あの - abbreviation of 「あれの」
13. ⽩い【し・ろい】(i-adj) - white
14. かわいい (i-adj) - cute
15. 授業【じゅ・ぎょう】- class
16. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
17. 忘れる【わす・れる】(ru-verb) - to forget
18. こと - event, matter
19. 毎⽇【まい・にち】- every day
20. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
21. する (exception) - to do
22. ⼤変【たい・へん】(na-adj) - tough, hard time
23. 同じ【おな・じ】- same
24. 物【もの】- object
25. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
26. ⾯⽩い【おも・し・ろい】(i-adj) - interesting
27. 静か【しず・か】(na-adj) - quiet
28. 部屋【へ・や】- room
70
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.11. NOUN-RELATED PARTICLES
29. ⼈【ひと】- person
30. 学校【がっ・こう】- school
The「の」 particle has many uses and it is a very powerful particle. It is introduced here because like the
「と」 and 「や」 particle, it can be used to connect one or more nouns. Let's look at a few examples.
1. ボブの本。
Book of Bob.
2. 本のボブ。
Bob of book.
The first sentence essentially means, "Bob's book." (not a lost bible chapter). The second sentence
means, "Book's Bob" which is probably a mistake. I've translated the first example as "book of Bob"
because the 「の」 particle doesn't always imply possession as the next example shows.
1. ボブは、アメリカの⼤学の学⽣だ。
Bob is student of college of America.
In normal English, this would translate to, "Bob is a student of an American college." The order of modification is backwards so Bob is a student of a college that is American. 「学⽣の⼤学のアメリカ」 means
"America of college of student" which is probably an error and makes little sense. (America of student's
college?)
The noun that is being modified can be omitted if the context clearly indicates what is being omitted. The
following highlighted redundant words can be omitted.
1. そのシャツは誰のシャツ?
Whose shirt is that shirt?
2. ボブのシャツだ。
It is shirt of Bob.
to become:
1. そのシャツは誰の?
Whose shirt is that?
2. ボブのだ。
It is of Bob.
71
3.11. NOUN-RELATED PARTICLES
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
(「その」 is an abbreviation of 「それ + の」 so it directly modifies the noun because the 「の」 particle
is intrinsically attached. Other words include 「この」 from 「これの」 and 「あの」 from 「あれの」.)
The 「の」 particle in this usage essentially replaces the noun and takes over the role as a noun itself.
We can essentially treat adjectives and verbs just like nouns by adding the 「の」 particle to it. The
particle then becomes a generic noun, which we can treat just like a regular noun.
1. ⽩いのは、かわいい。
Thing that is white is cute.
2. 授業に⾏くのを忘れた。
Forgot the event of going to class.
Now we can use the direct object, topic, and identifier particle with verbs and adjectives. We don't necessarily have to use the 「の」 particle here. We can use the noun 「物」, which is a generic object or
「こと」 for a generic event. For example, we can also say:
1. ⽩い物は、かわいい。
Thing that is white is cute.
2. 授業に⾏くことを忘れた。
Forgot the thing of going to class.
However, the 「の」 particle is very useful in that you don't have to specify a particular noun. In the next
examples, the 「の」 particle is not replacing any particular noun, it just allows us to modify verb and
adjective clauses like noun clauses. The relative clauses are highlighted.
1. 毎⽇勉強するのは⼤変。
The thing of studying every day is tough.
2. 毎⽇同じ物を⾷べるのは、⾯⽩くない。
It's not interesting to eat same thing every day.
Even when substituting「の」for a noun, you still need the「な」to modify the noun when a na-adjective
is being used.
• 静かな部屋が、アリスの部屋だ。
Quiet room is room of Alice.
becomes:
• 静かなのが、アリスの部屋だ。
Quiet one is room of Alice.
72
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.11. NOUN-RELATED PARTICLES
*Warning: This may make things seem like you can replace any arbitrary nouns with 「の」 but this is
not so. It is important to realize that the sentence must be about the clause and not the noun that was
replaced. For example, in the last section we had the sentence, 「学⽣じゃない⼈は、 学校に⾏かな
い」. You may think that you can just replace 「⼈」 with 「の」 to produce 「学⽣じゃないのは、学
校に⾏かない」 . But in fact, this makes no sense because the sentence is now about the clause "Is
not student". The sentence becomes, "The thing of not being student does not go to school" which is
complete gibberish because not being a student is a state and it doesn't make sense for a state to go
anywhere much less school.
3.11.5 The 「の」 particle as explanation
Vocabulary
1. 今【いま】- now
2. 忙しい【いそが・しい】(i-adj) - busy
3. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
4. 飲む【のむ】- to drink
5. どこ - where
6. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
7. 授業【じゅ・ぎょう】- class
8. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
9. ううん - casual word for "no" (nah, uh-uh)
10. その - that (abbr. of それの)
11. ⼈【ひと】- person
12. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
13. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
14. 朝ご飯【あさ・ご・はん】- breakfast
15. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
16. どうして - why
The 「の」 particle attached at the end of the last clause of a sentence can also convey an explanatory
tone to your sentence. For example, if someone asked you if you have time, you might respond, "The
thing is I'm kind of busy right now." The abstract generic noun of "the thing is..." can also be expressed
with the 「の」 particle. This type of sentence has an embedded meaning that explains the reason(s) for
something else.
The sentence would be expressed like so:
73
3.11. NOUN-RELATED PARTICLES
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
• 今は忙しいの。
The thing is that (I'm) busy now.
This sounds very soft and feminine. In fact, adult males will almost always add a declarative「だ」unless
they want to sound cute for some reason.
• 今は忙しいのだ。
The thing is that (I'm) busy now.
However, since the declarative 「だ」 cannot be used in a question, the same 「の」 in questions do
not carry a feminine tone at all and is used by both males and females.
• 今は忙しいの?
Is it that (you) are busy now? (gender-neutral)
To express state-of-being, when the 「の」 particle is used to convey this explanatory tone, we need to
add 「な」 to distinguish it from the 「の」 particle that simply means "of".
1. ジムのだ。
It is of Jim. (It is Jim's.)
2. ジムなのだ。
It is Jim (with explanatory tone).
Besides this one case, everything else remains the same as before.
In actuality, while this type of explanatory tone is used all the time, 「のだ」 is usually substituted by 「ん
だ」. This is probably due to the fact that 「んだ」 is easier to say than 「のだ」. This grammar can have
what seems like many different meaning because not only can it be used with all forms of adjectives,
nouns, and verbs it itself can also be conjugated just like the state-of-being. A conjugation chart will
show you what this means.
There's really nothing new here. The first chart is just adding 「んだ」 (or 「なんだ」) to a conjugated
verb, noun, or adjective. The second chart adds 「んだ」 (or 「なんだ」 ) to a non-conjugated verb,
noun, adjective and then conjugates the 「だ」 part of 「んだ」 just like a regular state-of-being for
nouns and na-adjectives. Just don't forget to attach the 「な」 for nouns as well as na-adjectives.
「んだ」 attached to different conjugations (Substitute 「の」 or 「のだ」 for 「んだ」)
Noun/Na-Adj
Verb/I-Adj
Plain
学⽣なんだ
飲むんだ
Negative
学⽣じゃないんだ
飲まないんだ
Past
学⽣だったんだ
飲んだんだ
Past-Neg 学⽣じゃなかったんだ
飲まなかったんだ
74
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
3.11. NOUN-RELATED PARTICLES
「んだ」 is conjugated (Substitute 「の」 for 「ん」 and 「の」 or 「のだ」 for 「んだ」)
Noun/Na-Adj
Verb/I-Adj
Plain
学⽣なんだ
飲むんだ
Negative
学⽣なんじゃない
飲むんじゃない
Past
学⽣なんだった
飲むんだった
Past-Neg 学⽣なんじゃなかった
飲むんじゃなかった
I would say that the past and past-negative forms for noun/na-adjective in the second chart are almost
never used (especially with 「の」) but they are presented for completeness.
The crucial difference between using the explanatory 「の」 and not using anything at all is that you
are telling the listener, "Look, here's the reason" as opposed to simply imparting new information. For
example, if someone asked you, "Are you busy now?" you can simply answer, 「今は忙しい」. However,
if someone asked you, "How come you can't talk to me?" since you obviously have some explaining to
do, you would answer, 「今は忙しいの」 or 「今は忙しいんだ」 . This grammar is indispensable for
seeking explanations in questions. For instance, if you want to ask, "Hey, isn't it late?" you can't just ask,
「遅くない?」 because that means, "It's not late?" You need to indicate that you are seeking explanation
in the form of 「遅いんじゃない?」.
Let's see some examples of the types of situations where this grammar is used. The examples will
have literal translation to make it easier to see how the meaning stays the same and carries over into
what would be very different types of sentences in normal English. A more natural English translation is
provided as well because the literal translations can get a bit convoluted.
Example 1
アリス:どこに⾏くの?
Alice: Where is it that (you) are going?
ボブ:授業に⾏くんだ。
Bob: It is that (I) go to class.
Alice: Where are you going? (Seeking explanation)
Bob: I'm going to class. (Explanatory)
Example 2
アリス:今、授業があるんじゃない?
Alice: Isn't it that there is class now?
ボブ:今は、ないんだ。
Bob: Now it is that there is no class.
Alice: Don't you have class now? (Expecting that there is class)
Bob: No, there is no class now. (Explanatory)
75
3.11. NOUN-RELATED PARTICLES
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Example 3
アリス:今、授業がないんじゃない?
Alice: Isn't it that there isn't class now?
ボブ:ううん、ある。
Bob: No, there is.
Alice: Don't you not have class now? (Expecting that there is no class)
Bob: No, I do have class.
Example 4
アリス:その⼈が買うんじゃなかったの?
Alice: Wasn't it that that person was the one to buy?
ボブ:ううん、先⽣が買うんだ。
Bob: No, it is that teacher is the one to buy.
Alice: Wasn't that person going to buy? (Expecting that the person would buy)
Bob: No, the teacher is going to. (Explanatory)
Example 5
アリス:朝ご飯を⾷べるんじゃなかった。
Alice: It is that breakfast wasn't to eat.
ボブ:どうして?
Bob: Why?
Alice: Should not have eaten breakfast, you know. (Explaining that breakfast wasn't to be eaten)
Bob: How come?
Don't worry if you are thoroughly confused by now, we will see many more examples along the way. Once
you get the sense of how everything works, it's better to forget the English because the double and triple
negatives can get quite confusing such as Example 3. However, in Japanese it is a perfectly normal
expression, as you will begin to realize once you get accustomed to Japanese.
76
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR 3.12. ADVERBS AND SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
3.12 Adverbs and Sentence-ending particles
3.12.1
Properties of Adverbs
Vocabulary
1. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
2. きれい (na-adj) - pretty; clean
3. 朝ご飯【あさ・ご・はん】- breakfast
4. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
5. ⾃分【じ・ぶん】- oneself
6. 部屋【へ・や】- room
7. 映画【えい・が】- movie
8. たくさん - a lot (amount)
9. ⾒る【み・る】- to see; to watch
10. 最近【さい・きん】- recent; lately
11. 全然【ぜん・ぜん】- not at all (when used with negative)
12. 声【こえ】- voice
13. 結構【けっ・こう】- fairly, reasonably
14. ⼤きい【おお・きい】(i-adj) - big
15. この - this (abbr. of これの)
16. 町【まち】- town
17. 変わる【か・わる】(u-verb) - to change
18. 図書館【と・しょ・かん】- library
19. 中【なか】- inside
20. 静か【しず・か】(na-adj) - quiet
Unlike English, changing adjectives to adverbs is a very simple and straightforward process. In addition,
since the system of particles make sentence ordering flexible, adverbs can be placed anywhere in the
clause that it applies to as long as it comes before the verb that it refers to. As usual, we have two
separate rules: one for i-adjectives, and one for na-adjectives.
77
3.12. ADVERBS AND SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
How to change an adjective to an adverb
• For i-adjectives: Substitute the 「い」 with 「く」.
Example: 早い → 早く
.
• For na-adjectives: Attach the target particle 「に」.
Example: きれい → きれいに
• ボブは朝ご飯を早く⾷べた。
Bob quickly ate breakfast.
The adverb 「早く」 is a little different from the English word 'fast' in that it can mean quickly in terms of
speed or time. In other words, Bob may have eaten his breakfast early or he may have eaten it quickly
depending on the context. In other types of sentences such as 「早く⾛った」, it is quite obvious that it
probably means quickly and not early. (Of course this also depends on the context.)
• アリスは⾃分の部屋をきれいにした。
Alice did her own room toward clean.
The literal translation kind of gives you a sense of why the target particle is used. There is some argument
against calling this an adverb at all but it is convenient for us to do so because of the grouping of iadjectives and na-adjectives. Thinking of it as an adverb, we can interpret the sentence to mean: "Alice
did her room cleanly." or less literally: "Alice cleaned her room." (「きれい」 literally means "pretty" but
if it helps, you can think of it as, "Alice prettied up her own room.")
Note: Not all adverbs are derived from adjectives. Some words like 「全然」 and 「たくさん」 are
adverbs in themselves without any conjugation. These words can be used without particles just like
regular adverbs.
1. 映画をたくさん⾒た。
Saw a lot of movies.
2. 最近、全然⾷べない。
Lately, don't eat at all.
Examples
Here are some more examples of using adverbs.
1. ボブの声は、結構⼤きい。
Bob's voice is fairly large.
78
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR 3.12. ADVERBS AND SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
2. この町は、最近⼤きく変わった。
This town had changed greatly lately.
3. 図書館の中では、静かにする。
Within the library, [we] do things quietly.
3.12.2
Sentence-ending particles
Vocabulary
1. いい (i-adj) - good
2. 天気【てん・き】- weather
3. そう - (things are) that way
4. ⾯⽩い【おも・しろ・い】(i-adj) - interesting
5. 映画【えい・が】- movie
6. 全然【ぜん・ぜん】- not at all (when used with negative)
7. 時間【じ・かん】- time
8. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
9. ⼤丈夫【だい・じょう・ぶ】(na-adj) - ok
10. 今⽇【きょう】- today
11. うん - yes (casual)
12. でも - but
13. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
14. ⾬【あめ】- rain
15. 降る【ふ・る】(u-verb) - to precipitate
16. ⿂【さかな】- fish
17. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable
Sentence-ending particles are particles that always come at the end of sentences to change the "tone" or
"feel" of a sentence. In this section, we will cover the two most commonly used sentence-ending particles.
3.12.3
「ね」 sentence ending
People usually add「ね」to the end of their sentence when they are looking for (and expecting) agreement
to what they are saying. This is equivalent to saying, "right?" or "isn't it?" in English.
79
3.12. ADVERBS AND SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
Example 1
ボブ:いい天気だね。
Bob: Good weather, huh?
アリス:そうね。
Alice: That is so, isn't it?
The literal translation of 「そうね」 sounds a bit odd but it basically means something like, "Sure is".
Males would probably say, 「そうだね」.
Example 2
アリス:おもしろい映画だったね。
Alice: That was interesting movie, wasn't it?
ボブ:え?全然おもしろくなかった。
Bob: Huh? No, it wasn't interesting at all.
Since Alice is expecting agreement that the movie was interesting Bob is surprised because he didn't find
the movie interesting at all. (「え」 is a
sound of surprise and confusion.)
3.12.4
「よ」 sentence ending
When 「よ」 is attached to the end of a sentence, it means that the speaker is informing the listener of
something new. In English, we might say this with a, "You know..." such as the sentence, "You know, I'm
actually a genius."
Example 1
アリス:時間がないよ。
Alice: You know, there is no time.
ボブ:⼤丈夫だよ。
Bob: It's ok, you know.
80
CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR 3.12. ADVERBS AND SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
Example 2
アリス:今⽇はいい天気だね。
Alice: Good weather today, huh?
ボブ:うん。でも、明⽇⾬が降るよ。
Bob: Yeah. But it will rain tomorrow, you know.
3.12.5
Combining both to get 「よね」
You can also combine the two particles we just learned to create 「よね」 . This is essentially used
when you want to inform the listener of some new point you're trying to make and when you're seeking
agreement on it at the same time. When combining the two, the order must always be 「よね」 . You
cannot reverse the order.
Example
アリス:ボブは、⿂が好きなんだよね。
Alice: You know, you like fish, dontcha?
ボブ:そうだね。
Bob: That is so, huh?
81
3.12. ADVERBS AND SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES CHAPTER 3. BASIC GRAMMAR
82
Chapter 4
Essential Grammar
We have learned the basic foundation of the Japanese language. Now that we have a general knowledge
of how Japanese works, we can now extend that by learning specific grammar for various situations. This
section will go over what is considered to be essential grammar for basic practical Japanese. You will
begin to see fewer literal translations in order to emphasize the new grammar now that you (should) have
a good understanding of the basic fundamental grammar. For example, in sentences where the subject
has not been specified, I might simply specify the subject in the translation as 'he' even though it may
very well be "we" or "them" depending on the context.
This section starts with transforming what we have learned so far into a more unassuming and politer
form. In any language, there are ways to word things differently to express a feeling of deference or
politeness. Even English has differences such as saying, "May I..." vs "Can I...". You may speak one way
to your professor and another way to your friends. However, Japanese is different in that not only does
the type of vocabulary change, the grammatical structure for every sentence changes as well. There is a
distinct and clear line differentiating polite and casual types of speech. On the one hand, the rules clearly
tell you how to structure your sentences for different social contexts. On the other hand, every sentence
you speak must be conjugated to the proper level of politeness. In section 3, we will cover the polite
version of Japanese, which is required for speaking to people of higher social position or to people you
are unfamiliar with.
This section will then continue to cover the most useful major types of grammar in Japanese. For this
reason, we will learn the most common conjugations such as the te-form, potential, conditional, and
volitional. The latter sections are in no particular order and neither does it need to be. The grammar that
is presented here is essential which means that you have to learn it all anyway and learn them well.
83
4.1. POLITE FORM AND VERB STEMS
4.1
4.1.1
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Polite Form and Verb Stems (〜です、〜ます)
Not being rude in Japan
Vocabulary
1. 丁寧語【てい・ねい・ご】- polite language
2. 尊敬語【そん・けい・ご】- honorific language
3. 謙譲語【けん・じょう・ご】- humble language
4. はい - yes (polite)
5. いいえ - no (polite)
The Japanese we have learned so far is all well and good if you're 5-years old. Unfortunately, adults
are expected to use a politer version of the language (called 丁寧語) when addressing certain people.
People you will probably use 丁寧語 with are: 1) people of higher social rank, and 2) people you are not
familiar with. Deciding when to use which language is pretty much a matter of "feel". However, it is a
good idea to stick with one form for each person.
Later (probably much later), we will learn an even politer version of the language called honorific (尊敬語)
and humble (謙譲語) form. It will be more useful than you may think because store clerks, receptionists,
and such will speak to you in those forms. But for now, let's concentrate on just 丁寧語, which is the base
for 尊敬語 and 謙譲語.
Fortunately, it is not difficult to change casual speech to polite speech. There may be some slight changes
to the vocabulary (for example, "yes" and "no" become 「はい」 and 「いいえ」 respectively in polite
speech), and very colloquial types of sentence endings are not used in polite speech. (We will learn about
sentence endings in a later section.) Essentially, the only main difference between polite and casual
speech comes at the very end of the sentence. You cannot even tell whether a person is speaking in
polite or casual speech until the sentence is finished.
4.1.2
The stem of verbs
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. 泳ぐ【およ・ぐ】(u-verb) - to swim
3. する (exception) - to do
4. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
5. 怒る【おこ・る】(u-verb) - to get angry
84
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.1. POLITE FORM AND VERB STEMS
6. 鉄拳【てっ・けん】- fist
7. 休み【やす・み】- rest; vacation
8. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
9. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
10. 映画【えい・が】- movie
11. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
12. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
13. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
14. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
15. 楽しむ【たの・しむ】(u-verb) - to enjoy
16. 出す【だ・す】(u-verb) - to bring out
17. ⾛る【はし・る】(u-verb) - to run
18. ⾛り出す【はし・り・だ・す】(u-verb) - to break into a run
19. 着る【き・る】(ru-verb) - to wear
20. 替える【か・える】(ru-verb) - to switch
21. 着替える【き・が・える】(ru-verb) - to change (clothes)
22. 付ける【つ・ける】(ru-verb) - to attach
23. 加える【くわ・える】(ru-verb) - to add
24. 付け加える【つ・け・くわ・える】(ru-verb) - to add one thing to another
25. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
26. ⾔い出す【い・い・だ・す】(u-verb) - to start talking
In order to conjugate all u-verbs and ru-verbs into their respective polite forms, we will first learn about the
stem of verbs. This is often called the masu-stem in Japanese textbooks but we will call it just the stem
because it is used in many more conjugations than just its masu-form. The stem is really great because
it's very easy to produce and is useful in many different types of grammar.
85
4.1. POLITE FORM AND VERB STEMS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Rules for extracting the stem of verbs
• For ru-verbs: Remove the 「る」
Example: ⾷べる → ⾷べ
• For u-verbs: The last vowel sound changes from an / u / vowel sound to an / i / vowel sound.
Example: 泳ぐ → 泳ぎ
.
• Exceptions:
1. 「する」 becomes 「し」
2. 「くる」 becomes 「き」
The stem when used by itself can be a very specialized and limited way of creating nouns from verbs.
While the「の」particle allows you to talk about verbs as if they were nouns, the stem actually turns verbs
into nouns. In fact, in very rare cases, the stem is used more often than the verb itself. For example, the
stem of 「怒る」(いかる) is used more often than the verb itself. The movie, "Fists of Fury" is translated
as 「怒りの鉄拳」 and not 「怒る鉄拳」. In fact, 「怒る」 will most likely be read as 「おこる」, a
completely different verb with the same meaning and kanji! There are a number of specific nouns (such
as 「休み」) that are really verb stems that are used like regular nouns. However, in general we cannot
take any verb and make it into a noun. For example, the following sentence is wrong.
• 飲みをする。
(This sentence makes sense but no one talks like this)
However, a useful grammar that works in general for stems of all verbs is using the stem as a target with
a motion verb (almost always 「⾏く」 and 「来る」 in this case). This grammar means, "to go or to
come to do [some verb]". Here's an example.
1. 明⽇、映画を⾒に⾏く。- Tomorrow, go to see movie.
「⾒に」 is the stem of 「⾒る」 combined with the target particle 「に」.
The motion target particle 「へ」 sounds like you're literally going or coming to something while the 「に」
particle implies that you are going or coming for the purpose of doing something.
1. 昨⽇、友達が遊びへきた。
Yesterday, friend came to a playing activity. (Sounds a bit strange)
2. 昨⽇、友達が遊びにきた。
Yesterday, friend came to play.
The expression 「楽しみにする」 meaning "to look forward to" is formed from grammar similar to this
but is a special case and should be considered a set expression.
86
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.1. POLITE FORM AND VERB STEMS
Other verbs are also sometimes attached to the stem to create new verbs. For example, when 「出す」
is attached to the stem of 「⾛る」, which is 「⾛り」, you get 「⾛り出す」 meaning "to break out into a
run". Other examples include 「切り替える」, which means "to switch over to something else", and 「付
け加える」, which means "to add something by attaching it". You can see how the separate meanings
of the two verbs are combined to create the new combined verb. For example, 「⾔い出す」 means "to
start talking", combining the meaning, "to speak" and "to bring out". There are no general rules here, you
need to just memorize these combined verbs as separate verbs in their own right.
Things that are written in a formal context such as newspaper articles also use the stem as a conjunctive
verb. We will come back to this later in the formal expression lesson.
4.1.3
Using 「〜ます」 to make verbs polite
Vocabulary
1. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
2. ⼤学【だい・がく】- college
3. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
4. 先週【せん・しゅう】- last week
5. 会う【あ・う】(u-verb) - to meet
6. 晩ご飯【ばん・ご・はん】- dinner
7. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
8. ⾯⽩い【おも・しろ・い】(i-adj) - interesting
9. 映画【えい・が】- movie
10. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
Of course, the reason I introduced the verb stem is to learn how to conjugate verbs into their polite form...
the masu-form! The masu-form must always come at the end of a complete sentence and never inside
a modifying relative clause. When we learn compound sentences, we will see that each sub-sentence of
the compound sentence can end in masu-form as well.
To conjugate verbs into the masu-form, you attach different conjugations of「ます」to the stem depending
on the tense. Here is a chart.
A conjugation chart with sample stem 「遊び」
ます conjugations
Stem+ ます
Plain
ます
遊びます
Negative
ません
遊びません
Past
ました
遊びました
Past-Neg
ませんでした
遊びませんでした
87
4.1. POLITE FORM AND VERB STEMS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Examples
1. 明⽇、⼤学に⾏きます。
Tomorrow, go to college.
2. 先週、ボブに会いましたよ。
You know, met Bob last week.
3. 晩ご飯を⾷べませんでしたね。
Didn't eat dinner, huh?
4. ⾯⽩くない映画は⾒ません。
About not interesting movies, do not see (them).
4.1.4
Using 「です」 for everything else
Vocabulary
1. かわいい (i-adj) - cute
2. 静か【しず・か】(na-adj) - quiet
3. ⼦⽝【こ・いぬ】- puppy
4. とても - very
5. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
6. 昨⽇【きのう】- yesterday
7. 時間【じ・かん】- time
8. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
9. その - that (abbr of 「それの」)
10. 部屋【へ・や】- room
11. 先週【せん・しゅう】- last week
12. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
13. 映画【えい・が】- movie
14. ⾯⽩い【おも・しろ・い】(i-adj) - interesting
For any sentence that does not end in a ru-verb or u-verb, the only thing that needs to be done is to add
「です」 or 「でした」. You can also do this for substituted nouns (both 「の」 and 「ん」) by just treating
them like regular nouns. Another important thing to remember is that if there is a declarative 「だ」, it
must be removed. In being polite, I guess you can't be so bold as to forwardly declare things the way
「だ」 does. Just like the masu-form, this must also go at the end of a complete sentence. Here is a chart
illustrating the conjugations.
88
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Plain
Negative
Past
Past-Neg
4.1. POLITE FORM AND VERB STEMS
i-adjective (だ cannot be used)
Casual
Polite
かわいい
かわいいです
かわいくない
かわいくないです
かわいかった
かわいかったです
かわいくなかった かわいくなかったです
na-adjective/noun (might have to remove だ)
Casual
Polite
Plain
静か (だ)
静かです
Negative
静かじゃない
静かじゃないです
Past
静かだった
� 静かでした
Past-Neg 静かじゃなかった 静かじゃなかったです
� Notice in the case of noun/na-adjective only, the past tense becomes 「でした」 . A very common
mistake is to do the same for i-adjectives. Remember 「かわいいでした」 is wrong!
Examples
1. ⼦⽝はとても好きです。
About puppies, like very much. (The most natural translation is that someone likes puppies very
much but there is not enough context to rule out that the puppies like something very much.)
2. 昨⽇、時間がなかったんです。
It was that there was no time yesterday.
3. その部屋はあまり静かじゃないです。
That room is not very quiet.
4. 先週に⾒た映画は、とても⾯⽩かったです。
Movie saw last week was very interesting.
� Reality Check
I have heard on a number of occasions that the negative non-past conjugation as given here is not an
"officially" correct conjugation. Instead what's considered to be a more "correct" conjugation is to actually
replace the 「ないです」 part with 「ありません」. The reasoning is that the polite negative form of the
verb 「ある」 is not 「ないです」 but 「ありません」. Therefore, 「かわいくない」 actually becomes
「かわいくありません」 and 「静かじゃない」 becomes 「静かじゃありません」.
The reality of today's Japanese is that what's supposed to be the "official" conjugation sounds rather stiff
and formal. In normal everyday conversations, the conjugation presented here will be used almost every
time. While you should use the more formal conjugations for written works using the polite form, you'll
rarely hear it in actual speech. In conclusion, I recommend studying and becoming familiar with both
types of conjugations.
89
4.1. POLITE FORM AND VERB STEMS
Negative
Past-Neg
Negative
Past-Neg
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
A more formal negative conjugation
Casual
Polite
かわいくない
かわいくありません
かわいくなかった かわいくありませんでした
静かじゃない
静かじゃありません
静かじゃなかった 静かじゃありませんでした
Examples
1. その部屋はあまり静かじゃないですよ。
You know, that room is not very quiet.
2. その部屋はあまり静かじゃありませんよ。
You know, that room is not very quiet.
4.1.5
「です」 is NOT the same as 「だ」
Vocabulary
1. そう - so
2. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
3. はい - yes (polite)
4. 答える【こた・える】(ru-verb) - to answer
Many of you who have taken Japanese classes have probably been taught that 「です」 is the polite
version of 「だ」 . However, I want to point some several key differences here and the reasons why
they are in fact completely different things. It is impossible to fully explain the reasons why they are
fundamentally different without discussing grammar that have yet to be covered so I would like to target
this toward those who have already started learning Japanese and have been incorrectly misinformed
that 「だ」 is the casual version of 「です」. For the rest of you new to this, you can easily skip this part.
I'm sure most of you have learned the expression 「そう」 by now. Now, there are four ways to make a
complete sentence using the state-of-being with 「そう」 to produce a sentence that says, "That is so."
Different ways to say, "That is so."
1. そう。
2. そうだ。
3. そうです。
4. そうでございます。
90
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.1. POLITE FORM AND VERB STEMS
The first 「そう」 is the implied state-of-being and 「そうだ」 is the declarative. As I've stated before,
the non-assuming soft spoken 「そう」 is often used by females while the more confident 「そうだ」 is
often used by males.
「そうです」 is the polite version of 「そう」, created by attaching 「です」 to the noun. 「そうです」
is not the polite version of 「そうだ」 where the 「だ」 is replaced by 「です」 and I'll explain why.
Perhaps we wanted to make that sentence into a question instead to ask, "Is that so?" There are several
ways to do this but some possibilities are given in the following. (This grammar is covered in a later
section.)
Different ways to ask, "Is that so?"
1. そう?
2. そうか?
3. そうですか?
As I've explained before, the 「だ」 is used to declare what one believes to be a fact. Therefore, 「そう
だか?」 is not a valid way to ask a question because it is declaring a fact and asking a question at the
same time. But the fact that 「そうですか」 is a valid question shows that 「です」 and 「だ」 are
essentially different. 「そうです」, in showing respect and humbleness, is not as assertive and is merely
the polite version of 「そう」.
Besides the difference in nuance between 「だ」 and 「です」, another key difference is that 「だ」 is
used in many different types of grammar to delineate a relative clause. 「です」, on the other hand, is
only used at the end of a sentence to designate a polite state-of-being. For instance, consider the two
following sentences. (This grammar is covered in a later section.)
• そうだと思います
I think that is so.
• そうですと思います
(Incorrect sentence)
「そうだと思います」 is valid while 「そうですと思います」 is not because 「です」 can only go at the
end of the sentence. 「です」 can only be in a relative clause when it is a direct quote of what someone
said such as the following.
• 「はい、そうです」と答えた。
In conclusion, replacing「です」with「だ」, thinking one is the polite equivalent of the other or vice-versa
will potentially result in grammatically incorrect sentences. It is best to think of them as totally separate
things (because they are).
91
4.2. ADDRESSING PEOPLE
4.2
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Addressing People
Not only is it important to use the right type of language with the right people, it is also important to
address them by the right name. It is also important to address yourself with the proper level of politeness.
Japanese is special in that there are so many ways of saying the simple words, "I" and "you". We will go
over some of ways to refer to yourself and others.
4.2.1
Referring to yourself
Vocabulary
• 名前【な・まえ】- name
There are many ways to say "I" in Japanese. Some of these words are not as common and others are
hopelessly outdated. We will go over the most common ones that are in use today. The usages of all
the different words for "I" is separated into two categories: gender and politeness. In other words, there
are words that are usually used by males and words that are usually only used by females and they all
depend on the social context.
Before going into this: a note about the word 「私」. The official reading of the kanji is 「わたくし」.
This is the reading you is used in a formal context (for example, a speech by the president of a company).
This reading will probably be accompanied with honorific and humble forms, which we will cover later. In
all other situations, it is usually read as 「わたし」. This is the most generic reference to "I" in terms of
politeness and gender; therefore it is usually one of the first words taught to students of Japanese.
Here is a list of the most common words for "I" and how they are used:
1. 私【わたくし】- Used by both males and females for formal situations.
2. 私【わたし】- Used by both males and females for normal polite situations.
3. 僕【ぼく】- Used primarily by males from fairly polite to fairly casual situations.
4. 俺【おれ】- A very rough version of "I" used almost exclusively by males in very casual situations.
5. あたし - A very feminine and casual way to refer to oneself. Many girls have decided to opt for
「わたし」 instead because 「あたし」 has a cutesy and girly sound.
6. One's own name - Also a very feminine and kind of childish way to refer to oneself.
7. わし - Usually used by older men well in their middle-ages.
Let's see how different types of sentences use the appropriate version of "I". 「わたくし」 is left out
because we have yet to go over very formal grammatical expressions.
92
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.2. ADDRESSING PEOPLE
1. 私の名前はキムです。
My name is Kim. (Neutral, polite)
2. 僕の名前はキムです。
My name is Kim. (Masculine, polite)
3. 僕の名前はボブだ。
My name is Bob. (Masculine, casual)
4. 俺の名前はボブだ。
My name is Bob. (Masculine, casual)
5. あたしの名前はアリス。
My name is Alice. (Feminine, casual)
4.2.2
Referring to others by name
Vocabulary
1. 社⻑【しゃ・ちょう】- company president
2. 課⻑【か・ちょう】- section manager
3. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
4. ⽥中【た・なか】- Tanaka (last name)
Japanese does not require the use of "you" nearly as much as English does. I hope that the examples
with Bob, Alice, and Jim have shown that people refer to other people by their names even when they
are directly addressing that person. Another common way to address people is by their title such as
「社⻑」 、 「課⻑」 、 「先⽣」 , etc. The word 「先⽣」 is used to generally mean any person who
has significant knowledge and expertise in something. For example, people usually use 「先⽣」 when
directly addressing doctors or teachers (obviously). You can also include the person's last name such
as 「⽥中先⽣」 (teacher Tanaka). In the case where your relationship with the person doesn't involve
any title, you can use their name (usually their last name) attached with 「さん」 to show politeness. If
calling them by their last name seems a little too polite and distant, the practice of attaching 「さん」 to
their first name also exists. More endearing and colloquial versions of 「さん」 include 「くん」 and
「ちゃん」. 「くん」 is usually attached to the name of males who are of equal or lower social position.
(For example, my boss sometimes calls me 「キムくん」). 「ちゃん」 is a very endearing way to refer
to usually females of equal or lower social position.
4.2.3
Referring to others with "you"
Please do not use 「あなた」 just like you would use the word "you" in English. In directly addressing
people, there are three levels of politeness: 1) Using the person's name with the appropriate suffix, 2)
Not using anything at all, 3) Using 「あなた」. In fact, by the time you get to three, you're dangerously in
the area of being rude. Most of the time, you do not need to use anything at all because you are directly
93
4.2. ADDRESSING PEOPLE
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
addressing the person. Constantly pounding the listener with "you" every sentence sounds like you are
accusing the person of something.
「あなた」 is also an old-fashioned way for women to refer to their husband or lover. Unless you are a
middle-aged women with a Japanese husband, I doubt you will be using 「あなた」 in this fashion as
well.
Here is a list of some words meaning "you" in English. You will rarely need to use any of these words,
especially the ones in the second half of the list.
1. あなた - Generally only used when there is no way to physically address the person or know the
person's name. For example, direct questions to the reader on a form that the reader must fill out
would use 「あなた」.
2. 君【きみ】- Can be a very close and assuming way to address girls (especially by guys). Can also
be kind of rude.
3. お前【お・まえ】- A very rough and coarse way to address someone. Usually used by guys and
often changed to 「おめえ」.
4. あんた - A very assuming and familiar way to address someone. The person using this is maybe
miffed off about something.
5. ⼿前【て・めえ】- Very rude. Like 「お前」, to add extra punch, people will usually say it like, 「て
め〜〜」. Sounds like you want to beat someone up. I've only seen this one used in movies and
comic books. In fact, if you try this on your friends, they will probably laugh at you and tell you that
you've probably been reading too many comic books.
6. 貴様【き・さま】 - Very, very rude. Sounds like you want to take someone out. I've also only
seen this one used in comic books. I only go over it so you can understand and enjoy comic books
yourself!
4.2.4
Referring to others in third person
Vocabulary
1. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
2. 彼⼥【かの・じょ】- she; girlfriend
3. ガールフレンド - girlfriend
4. ボーイフレンド - boyfriend
You can use「彼」 and「彼⼥」for "he" and "she" respectively. Notice that 「彼」and「彼⼥」can also
mean "boyfriend" and "girlfriend". So how can you tell which meaning is being used? Context, of course.
For example, if someone asks, 「彼⼥ですか?」 the person is obviously asking if she is your girlfriend
because the question, "Is she she?" doesn't make any sense. Another less commonly used alternative
is to say 「ガールフレンド」 and 「ボーイフレンド」 for, well, I'm sure you can guess what they mean.
94
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.2.5
4.2. ADDRESSING PEOPLE
Referring to family members
1. ⺟【はは】- mother
2. お⺟さん【お・かあ・さん】- mother (polite)
3. 両親【りょう・しん】- parents
4. ⽗【ちち】- father
5. お⽗さん【お・とう・さん】- father (polite)
6. 妻【つま】- wife
7. 奥さん【おく・さん】- wife (polite)
8. 夫【おっと】- husband
9. 主⼈【しゅ・じん】- husband
10. 姉【あね】- older sister
11. お姉さん【お・ねえ・さん】- older sister (polite)
12. 兄【あに】- older brother
13. お兄さん【お・にい・さん】- older brother (polite
14. 妹【いもうと】- younger sister
15. 弟【おとうと】- younger brother
16. 息⼦【むす・こ】- son
17. 娘【むすめ】- daughter
Referring to family members is a little more complicated than English. (It could be worse, try learning
Korean!) For the purpose of brevity, (since this is a grammar guide and not a vocabulary guide) we will
only go over the immediate family. In Japanese, you refer to members of other people's family more
politely than your own. This is only when you are talking about members of your own family to others
outside the family. For example, you would refer to your own mother as 「⺟」 to people outside your
family but you might very well call her 「お⺟さん」 at home within your own family. There is also a
distinction between older and younger siblings. The following chart list some of the most common terms
for family members. There may also be other possibilities not covered in this chart.
95
4.3. THE QUESTION MARKER
Parents
Mother
Father
Wife
Husband
Older Sister
Older Brother
Younger Sister
Younger Brother
Son
Daughter
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Family member chart
One's own family Someone else's family
両親
ご両親
⺟
お⺟さん
⽗
お⽗さん
妻
奥さん
夫
ご主⼈
姉
お姉さん
兄
お兄さん
妹
妹さん
弟
弟さん
息⼦
息⼦さん
娘
娘さん
Another word for wife,「家内」is often considered politically incorrect because the kanji used are "house"
and "inside" which implies that wives belong in the home. Amen. (Just kidding)
4.3
4.3.1
The Question Marker (か)
Questions in polite form
Vocabulary
1. ⽥中【た・なか】- Tanaka (last name)
2. お⺟さん【お・かあ・さん】- mother (polite)
3. どこ - where
4. 鈴⽊【すず・き】- Suzuki (last name)
5. ⺟【はは】- mother
6. 買い物【か・い・もの】- shopping
7. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
8. イタリア - Italy
9. 料理【りょう・り】- cooking; cuisine; dish
10. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
11. すみません - sorry (polite)
12. ちょっと - a little
13. お腹【お・なか】- stomach
96
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.3. THE QUESTION MARKER
14. いっぱい - full
15. ごめんなさい - sorry (polite)
16. ごめん - sorry
The question marker is covered here because it is primarily used to clearly indicate a question in polite
sentences. While it is entirely possible to express a question even in polite form using just intonation, the
question marker is often attached to the very end of the sentence to indicate a question. The question
marker is simply the hiragana character「か」and you don't need to add a question mark. For previously
explained reasons, you must not use the declarative 「だ」 with the question marker.
Example 1
⽥中さん:お⺟さんはどこですか。
Tanaka-san: Where is (your) mother?
鈴⽊さん:⺟は買い物に⾏きました。
Suzuki-san: (My) mother went shopping.
Example 2
キムさん:イタリア料理を⾷べに⾏きませんか。
Kim-san: Go to eat Italian food?
鈴⽊さん:すみません。ちょっと、お腹がいっぱいです。
Suzuki-san: Sorry. (My) stomach is a little full.
Here the question is actually being used as an invitation just like how in English we say, "Won't you come
in for a drink?" 「すみません」 is a polite way of apologizing. Slightly less formal is 「ごめんなさい」
while the casual version is simply 「ごめん」.
4.3.2
The question marker in casual speech
Vocabulary
1. こんな - this sort of
2. 本当【ほん・とう】- real
3. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
4. そんな - that sort of
97
4.3. THE QUESTION MARKER
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
5. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
It makes sense to conclude that the question marker would work in exactly the same way in casual speech
as it does in polite speech. However, this is not the case. The question marker 「か」 is usually not
used with casual speech to make actual questions. It is often used to consider whether something is
true or not. Depending on the context and intonation, it can also be used to make rhetorical questions
or to express sarcasm. It can sound quite rough so you might want to be careful about using 「か」 for
questions in the plain casual form.
Examples
1. こんなのを本当に⾷べるか?
Do you think [he/she] will really eat this type of thing?
2. そんなのは、あるかよ!
Do I look like I would have something like that?!
Instead of 「か」, real questions in casual speech are usually asked with the explanatory の particle or
nothing at all except for a rise in intonation, as we have already seen in previous sections.
1. こんなのを本当に⾷べる?
Are you really going to eat something like this?
2. そんなのは、あるの?
Do you have something like that?
4.3.3
「か」 used in relative clauses
Vocabulary
1. 昨⽇【きのう】- yesterday
2. 何【なに】- what
3. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
4. 忘れる【わす・れる】(ru-verb) - to forget
5. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
6. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
7. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
8. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
9. 学校【がっ・こう】- school
98
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.3. THE QUESTION MARKER
10. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
11. 教える【おし・える】(ru-verb) - to teach; to inform
12. どう - how
13. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
Another use of the question marker is simply grammatical and has nothing to do with the politeness. A
question marker attached to the end of a relative clause makes a mini-question inside a larger sentence.
This allows the speaker to talk about the question. For example, you can talk about the question, "What
did I eat today?" In the following examples, the question that is being considered is in red.
1. 昨⽇何を⾷べたか忘れた。
Forgot what I ate yesterday.
2. 彼は何を⾔ったか分からない。
Don't understand what he said.
3. 先⽣が学校に⾏ったか教えない?
Won't you inform me whether teacher went to school?
In sentences like example 3 where the question being considered has a yes/no answer, it is common (but
not necessary) to attach 「どうか」 . This is roughly equivalent to saying, "whether or not" in English.
You can also include the alternative as well to mean the same thing.
1. 先⽣が学校に⾏ったかどうか知らない。
Don't know whether or not teacher went to school.
2. 先⽣が学校に⾏ったか⾏かなかったか知らない。
Don't know whether teacher went to school or didn't.
4.3.4
Using question words
Vocabulary
1. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
2. クッキー- cookie
3. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
4. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
5. 誰【だれ】- who
6. 盗む【ぬす・む】(u-verb) - to steal
99
4.3. THE QUESTION MARKER
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
7. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
8. 犯⼈【はん・にん】- criminal
9. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
10. この - this (abbr. of これの)
11. 中【なか】- inside
12. 〜から (particle) - from 〜
13. 選ぶ【えら・ぶ】(u-verb) - to select
While we're on the topic of questions, this is a good time to go over question words (where, who, what,
etc.) and what they mean in various contexts. Take a look at what adding the question marker does to
the meaning of the words.
Question Words
Word+Question Marker
Meaning
誰か
Someone
何か
Something
いつか
Sometime
どこか
Somewhere
どれか
A certain one from many
Examples
As you can see by the following examples, you can treat these words just like any regular nouns.
1. 誰かがおいしいクッキーを全部⾷べた。
Someone ate all the delicious cookies.
2. 誰が盗んだのか、誰か知りませんか。
Doesn't anybody know who stole it?
3. 犯⼈をどこかで⾒ましたか。
Did you see the criminal somewhere?
4. この中からどれかを選ぶの。
(Explaining) You are to select a certain one from inside this (selection).
Question words with inclusive meaning
Vocabulary
1. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
100
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.3. THE QUESTION MARKER
2. 皆【みんな】- everybody
3. 皆さん【みな・さん】- everybody (polite)
4. この - this (abbr. of これの)
5. 質問【しつ・もん】- question
6. 答え【こた・え】- answer
7. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
8. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
9. 遅れる【おく・れる】(ru-verb) - to be late
10. ここ - here
11. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
12. レストラン - restaurant
13. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
14. 今週末【こん・しゅう・まつ】- this weekend
15. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
The same question words in the chart above can be combined with 「も」 in a negative sentence to
mean "nobody" (誰も), "nothing" (何も), "nowhere" (どこも), etc.
「誰も」 and 「何も」 are primarily used only for negative sentences. Curiously, there is no way to
say "everything" with question words. Instead, it is conventional to use other words like 「全部」. And
although 「誰も」 can sometimes be used to mean "everybody", it is customary to use 「皆」 or 「皆さ
ん」
The remaining three words 「いつも」 (meaning "always") and 「どれも」 (meaning "any and all"), and
「どこも」 (meaning everywhere) can be used in both negative and positive sentences.
Inclusive Words
Word+ も
Meaning
誰も
Everybody/Nobody
何も
Nothing (negative only)
いつも
Always
どこも
Everywhere
どれも
Any and all
Examples
1. この質問の答えは、誰も知らない。
Nobody knows the answer of this question.
101
4.3. THE QUESTION MARKER
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
2. 友達はいつも遅れる。
Friend is always late.
3. ここにあるレストランはどれもおいしくない。
Any and all restaurants that are here are not tasty.
4. 今週末は、どこにも⾏かなかった。
Went nowhere this weekend.
(Grammatically, this 「も」 is the same as the topic particle 「も」 so the target particle 「に」 must go
before the topic particle 「も」 in ordering.)
Question words to mean "any"
Vocabulary
1. この - this (abbr. of これの)
2. 質問【しつ・もん】- question
3. 答え【こた・え】- answer
4. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
5. 昼ご飯【ひる・ご・はん】- lunch
6. いい (i-adj) - good
7. あの - that (over there) (abbr. of あれの)
8. ⼈【ひと】- person
9. 本当【ほん・とう】- real
10. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
The same question words combined with 「でも」 can be used to mean "any". One thing to be careful
about is that 「何でも」 is read as 「なんでも」 and not 「なにでも」
Words for "Any"
Word+ でも Meaning
誰でも
Anybody
何でも
Anything
いつでも
Anytime
どこでも
Anywhere
どれでも
Whichever
102
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
Examples
1. この質問の答えは、誰でも分かる。
Anybody understands the answer of this question.
2. 昼ご飯は、どこでもいいです。
About lunch, anywhere is good.
3. あの⼈は、本当に何でも⾷べる。
That person really eats anything.
4.4
Compound Sentences (て -form、から、ので、のに、
が、けど、し、〜たりする)
In this section, we will learn various ways to combine multiple simple sentences into one complex sentence. For example, we will learn how to chain separate sentences together to express multiple actions
or states. In other words, if we have two simple sentences with the same subject, "I ran" and "I ate",
we will learn how to group them together to mean, "I ran and ate." We will also learn how to do this with
adjectives and nouns. (Ex: He is rich, handsome, and charming.)
4.4.1
Expressing a sequence of states
Vocabulary
1. ⼀般的【いっ・ぱん・てき】- in general
2. 静か【しず・か】(na-adj) - quiet
3. 狭い【せま・い】(i-adj) - narrow
4. 彼⼥【かの・じょ】- she; girlfriend
5. いい (i-adj) - good
6. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
7. 部屋【へ・や】- room
8. きれい (na-adj) - pretty; clean
9. とても - very
10. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
11. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
12. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
13. ⽥中【た・なか】- Tanaka (last name)
103
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
14. お⾦持ち【お・かね・も・ち】- rich
15. かっこいい (i-adj) - cool; handsome
16. 魅⼒的【み・りょく・てき】- charming
It is very easy to combine a chain of nouns and adjectives to describe a person or object. For example,
in English if we wanted to say, "He is X. He is Y. He is Z." since all three sentences have the same noun,
we would usually say, "He is X, Y, and Z." In Japanese, we can do the same thing by conjugating the
noun or adjective. The last noun or adjective remains the same as before.
How to chain nouns and adjectives together
• For nouns and na-adjectives: Attach 「で」 to the noun or na-adjective.
Examples
1. ⼀般的 → ⼀般的で
2. 静か → 静かで
• For i-adjectives and negative noun/adjectives:
Replace the 「い」 with 「くて」.
.
�For 「いい」 and 「かっこいい」, the 「い → よ」 exception applies here as well.
Examples
1. 狭い → 狭くて
2. 彼⼥じゃない → 彼⼥じゃなくて
3. いい → よくて
Examples
1. 私の部屋は、きれいで、静かで、とても好き。
My room is clean, quiet, and I like it a lot.
2. 彼⼥は、学⽣じゃなくて、先⽣だ。
She is not a student, she is a teacher.
3. ⽥中さんは、お⾦持ちで、かっこよくて、魅⼒的ですね。
Tanaka-san is rich, handsome, and charming, isn't he?
As you can see, the 「で」 attached to 「お⾦持ち」 obviously cannot be the context particle 「で」 here
because there is no verb. It might be helpful to think of 「で」 as merely a substitution for 「だ」 that
can be chained together.
104
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.4.2
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
Expressing a sequence of verbs with the te-form
Vocabulary
1. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
2. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
3. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
4. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
5. する (exception) - to do
6. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
7. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
8. ⾷堂【しょく・どう】- cafeteria
9. 昼ご飯【ひる・ご・はん】- lunch
10. 昼寝【ひる・ね】- afternoon nap
11. 時間【じ・かん】- time
12. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
13. 映画【えい・が】- movie
14. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
In a similar fashion, you can express multiple actions. It is usually interpreted as a sequence of event. (I
did [X], then I did [Y], then I finally did [Z].) There are two forms: positive and negative. The tense of all
the actions is determined by the tense of the last verb.
How to chain verbs together
• Positive: Conjugate the verb to its past tense and replace 「た」 with 「て」 or 「だ」 with 「で」
. This is often called the te-form even though it could sometimes be 'de'.
• Negative: Same as i-adjectives, replace 「い」 with 「くて」.
. 「ます」 endings.
This rule also works for the polite 「です」 and
Examples
1. 学⽣です → 学⽣でした → 学⽣でして
2. 買います → 買いました → 買いまして
105
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
Past Tense
⾷べた
⾏った
した
遊んだ
飲んだ
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Sample conjugations
Te-form
Negative
⾷べて
⾷べない
⾏って
⾏かない
して
しない
遊んで
遊ばない
飲んで
飲まない
Te-form
⾷べなくて
⾏かなくて
しなくて
遊ばなくて
飲まなくて
Examples
1. ⾷堂に⾏って、昼ご飯を⾷べて、昼寝をする。
I will go to cafeteria, eat lunch, and take a nap.
2. ⾷堂に⾏って、昼ご飯を⾷べて、昼寝をした。
I went to cafeteria, ate lunch, and took a nap.
3. 時間がありまして、映画を⾒ました。
There was time and I watched a movie.
4.4.3
Expressing reason or causation using 「から」 and 「ので」
Vocabulary
1. 時間【じ・かん】- time
2. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
3. パーティー- party
4. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
5. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
6. プレゼント - present
7. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
8. ⽥中【た・なか】- Tanaka (last name)
9. どうして - why
10. ⼭⽥【や・まだ】- Yamada (last name)
11. ⼀郎【いち・ろう】- Ichirou (first name)
12. 直⼦【なお・こ】- Naoko (first name)
13. ちょっと - a little
14. 忙しい【いそが・しい】(i-adj) - busy
15. そろそろ - gradually; soon
106
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
16. 失礼【しつ・れい】- discourtesy
17. する (exception) - to do
18. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
19. お⾦【お・かね】- money
20. ここ - here
21. 静か【しず・か】(na-adj) - quiet
22. とても - very
23. 穏やか【おだ・やか】(na-adj) - calm, peaceful
24. 会う【あ・う】(u-verb) - to meet
You can connect two complete sentences using 「から」 to indicate a reason for something. The two
sentences are always ordered [reason] から [result]. When the reason is a non-conjugated noun or naadjective, you must add 「だ」 to explicitly declare the reason in the form of 「(noun/na-adjective)だか
ら」 . If you forget to add the declarative 「だ」 to 「から」 , it will end up sounding like the 「から」
meaning "from" which was first introduced in the section on particles, earlier.
Examples
1. 時間がなかったからパーティーに⾏きませんでした。
There was no time so didn't go to party.
2. 友達からプレゼントが来た。
Present came from friend.
3. 友達だからプレゼントが来た。
Present came because (the person is) friend. (This sentence sounds a bit odd.)
Either the reason or the result can be omitted if it is clear from the context. In the case of polite speech,
you would treat 「から」 just like a regular noun and add 「です」.
Example 1
⽥中さん:どうしてパーティーに⾏きませんでしたか。
Tanaka-san: Why didn't you go to the party?
⼭⽥さん:時間がなかったからです。
Yamada-san: It's because I didn't have time.
107
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Example 2
⼀郎:パーティーに⾏かなかったの?
Ichiro: You didn't go to the party?
直⼦:うん、時間がなかったから。
Naoko: Yeah, because I didn't have time.
Example 3
When you omit the reason, you must include the declarative 「だ」 or 「です」.
直⼦:時間がなかった。
Naoko: I didn't have time.
⼀郎:だからパーティーに⾏かなかったの?
Ichiro: Is that why you didn't go to the party?
Notice that we could have also used the explanatory 「の」 to express the same thing. In other words,
⼭⽥さん could have also said, 「時間がなかったのです」 or 「時間がなかったんです」 while 直⼦
could have said 「時間がなかったの」 (we'll assume she wants to use the more feminine form). In fact,
this is where 「ので」 possibly came from. Let's say you want to combine two sentences: 「時間がな
かったのだ」 and 「パーティーに⾏かなかった」. Remember we can treat the 「の」 just like a noun
so we can use what we just learned in the first section of this lesson.
時間がなかったのだ+パーティーに⾏かなかった
becomes:
時間がなかったのでパーティーに⾏かなかった。
In fact, 「ので」 is almost interchangeable with 「から」 with a few subtle differences. 「から」
explicitly states that the sentence preceding is the reason for something while 「ので」 is merely putting
two sentences together, the first with an explanatory tone. This is something I call causation where [X]
happened, therefore [Y] happened. This is slightly different from 「から」 where [Y] happened explicitly
because [X] happened. This difference tends to make 「ので」 sound softer and slightly more polite and
it is favored over「から」when explaining a reason for doing something that is considered discourteous.
• ちょっと忙しいので、そろそろ失礼します。
Because I'm a little busy, I'll be making my leave soon.
(「失礼します」, which literally means "I'm doing a discourtesy", is commonly used as a polite way to
make your leave or disturb someone's time.)
Reminder: Don't forget that the explanatory 「の」 requires a 「な」 for both non-conjugated nouns
and na-adjectives. Review Particles 3 to see why.
108
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
1. 私は学⽣なので、お⾦がないんです。
Because I'm a student, I have no money (lit: there is no money).
2. ここは静かなので、とても穏やかです。
It is very calm here because it is quiet.
3. なので、友達に会う時間がない。
That's why there's no time to meet friend.
Just like how the explanatory 「の」 can be shortened to 「ん」 , in speech, the 「ので」 can be
changed to 「んで」 simply because it's easier to slur the sounds together rather than pronouncing the
/ o / syllable.
1. 時間がなかったんでパーティーに⾏かなかった。
Didn't go to the party because there was no time.
2. ここは静かなんで、とても穏やかです。
It is very calm here because it is quiet.
3. なんで、友達に会う時間がない。
That's why there's no time to meet friend.
4.4.4
Using 「のに」 to mean "despite"
Vocabulary
1. 毎⽇【まい・にち】- everyday
2. 運動【うん・どう】- exercise
3. する (exception) - to do
4. 全然【ぜん・ぜん】- not at all (when used with negative)
5. 痩せる【や・せる】(ru-verb) - to become thin
6. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
7. 彼⼥【かの・じょ】- she; girlfriend
8. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
Grammatically, 「のに」 is used exactly the same way as 「ので」. When used to combine two simple
sentences together, it means "[Sentence 1] despite the fact that [Sentence 2]." However the order is
reversed: [Sentence 2]のに [Sentence 1].
109
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Examples
1. 毎⽇運動したのに、全然痩せなかった。
Despite exercising every day, I didn't get thinner.
2. 学⽣なのに、彼⼥は勉強しない。
Despite being a student, she does not study.
4.4.5
Expressing contradiction using 「が」 and 「けど」
Vocabulary
1. デパート - department store
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. 何【なに/なん】- what
4. 全然【ぜん・ぜん】- not at all (when used with negative)
5. 欲しい【ほ・しい】(i-adj) - desirable
6. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
7. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
8. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
9. 今⽇【きょう】- today
10. 暇【ひま】- free (as in not busy)
11. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
12. 忙しい【いそが・しい】(i-adj) - busy
13. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
14. まだ - yet
15. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
16. いい (i-adj) - good
17. 物【もの】- object
18. たくさん - a lot (amount)
19. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
20. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
21. ⾯⽩い【おも・しろ・い】(i-adj) - interesting
110
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
Used in the same manner as 「から」 and 「ので」, 「が」 and 「けど」 also connect two sentences
together but this time to express a contradiction. Just like 「から」 the declarative 「だ」 is required for
nouns and na-adjectives. And just like 「から」 and 「ので」, either part of the contradiction can be left
out.
Examples
1. デパートに⾏きましたが、何も欲しくなかったです。
I went to department store but there was nothing I wanted.
2. 友達に聞いたけど、知らなかった。
I asked (or heard from) a friend but he (or I) didn't know.
3. 今⽇は暇だけど、明⽇は忙しい。
I'm free today but I will be busy tomorrow.
4. だけど、彼がまだ好きなの。
That may be so, but it is that I still like him. [explanation, feminine tone]
It may seem odd but 「聞く」 can either mean "to listen" or "to ask". You may think this may become
confusing but the meaning is usually clear within context. In the second example, we're assuming that
the friend didn't know, so the speaker was probably asking the friend. Yet again we see the importance
of context in Japanese because this sentence can also mean, "I heard from a friend but I didn't know"
since there is neither subject nor topic.
Similar to the difference between 「から」 and 「ので」, 「が」 has a softer tone and is slightly more
polite than 「けど」. Though this isn't a rule as such, it is generally common to see 「が」 attached to a
「〜ます」 or 「〜です」 ending and 「けど」 attached to a regular, plain ending. A more formal version
of 「けど」 is 「けれど」 and even more formal is 「けれども」, which we may see later when we cover
formal expressions.
Unlike the English word for contradiction such as "but" or "however", 「けど」 and 「が」 do not
always express a direct contradiction. Often times, especially when introducing a new topic, it is used
as a general connector of two separate sentences. For example, in the following sentences, there is no
actual contradiction but 「が」 and 「けど」 are used simply to connect the sentences. Sometimes, the
English "and" becomes a closer translation than "but".
1. デパートに⾏きましたが、いい物がたくさんありました。
I went to the department store and there was a lot of good stuff.
2. マトリックスを⾒たけど、⾯⽩かった。
I watched the "Matrix" and it was interesting.
111
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
4.4.6
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Expressing multiple reasons using 「し」
Vocabulary
1. どうして - why
2. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
3. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
4. 年上【とし・うえ】- older
5. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
6. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable
7. 優しい【やさ・しい】(i-adj) - gentle; kind
8. かっこいい (i-adj) - cool; handsome
9. ⾯⽩い【おも・し・ろい】(i-adj) - interesting
When you want to list reasons for multiple states or actions you can do so by adding 「し」 to the end
of each relative clause. It is very similar to the 「や」 particle except that it lists reasons for verbs and
state-of-being. Again, for states of being, 「だ」 must be used to explicitly declare the state-of-being for
any non-conjugated noun or na-adjective. Let's look at some examples.
Example 1
A:どうして友達じゃないんですか?
A: Why isn't (he/she) friend [seeking explanation]?
B:先⽣だし、年上だし・・・。
B: Well, he's/she's the teacher, and older...
Example 2
A:どうして彼が好きなの?
A: Why (do you) like him?
B:優しいし、かっこいいし、⾯⽩いから。
B: Because he's kind, attractive, and interesting (among other things).
Notice that 「優しくて、 かっこよくて、 ⾯⽩いから。」 could also have worked but much like the
difference between the 「と」 and 「や」 particle, 「し」 implies that there may be other reasons.
112
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.4.7
4.4. COMPOUND SENTENCES
Expressing multiple actions or states using 「〜たりする」
Vocabulary
1. する (exception) - to do
2. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
3. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
4. 簡単【かん・たん】(na-adj) - simple
5. 難しい【むずか・しい】(i-adj) - difficult
6. 映画【えい・が】- movie
7. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
8. 本【ほん】- book
9. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
10. 昼寝【ひる・ね】- afternoon nap
11. この - this (abbr. of これの)
12. ⼤学【だい・がく】- college
13. 授業【じゅ・ぎょう】- class
This is the verb version of the 「や」 particle. You can make an example list of verbs among a possible
larger list by conjugating each verb into the past tense and adding 「り」. At the end, you need to attach
the verb 「する」. Just like the 「や」 particle, the tense is determined by the last verb, which in this
case will always be 「する」 (since you have to attach it at the end).
You can also use this with the state-of-being to say that you are a number of things at various random
times among a larger list. Similar to regular verbs, you just take the noun or adjective for each state-ofbeing and conjugate it to the past state-of-being and then attach 「り」. Then finally, attach 「する」 at
the end.
Rules for stating a list of verbs among a larger list using 「〜たりする」
• For verbs: Conjugate each verb to the past tense and add 「り」. Finally, add 「する」 at the
very end.
Example
⾷べる、飲む → ⾷べた、飲んだ → ⾷べたり、飲んだり → ⾷べたり、飲んだりする
.
• For state-of-being: Conjugate the noun or adjective for each state-of-being to the past tense and
add 「り」. Finally, add 「する」 at the very end.
Example
簡単、難しい → 簡単だった、難しかった → 簡単だったり、難しかったり → 簡単だったり、難
しかったりする
113
4.5. OTHER USES OF THE TE-FORM
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
1. 映画を⾒たり、本を読んだり、昼寝したりする。
I do things like (among other things) watch movies, read books, and take naps.
2. この⼤学の授業は簡単だったり、難しかったりする。
Class of this college is sometimes easy, sometimes difficult (and other times something else maybe).
As you can see, the tense and negative/positive state is controlled by the last 「する」.
1. 映画を⾒たり、本を読んだりした。
I did things like (among other things) watch movies, and read books.
2. 映画を⾒たり、本を読んだりしない。
I don't do things like (among other things) watch movies, and read books.
3. 映画を⾒たり、本を読んだりしなかった。
I didn't do things like (among other things) watch movies, and read books.
4.5
Other uses of the te-form (〜ている、〜てある、〜て
おく、〜ていく、〜てくる)
The te-form is incredibly useful as it is used widely in many different types of grammatical expressions.
We will learn about enduring states with the 「〜ている」 and 「〜てある」 form. Even though we have
learned various conjugations for verbs, they have all been one-time actions. We will now go over how
one would say, for example, "I am running." We will also learn how to perform an action for the future
using the 「〜ておく」 expression and to express directions of actions using 「〜ていく」 and 「〜て
くる」.
4.5.1
Using 「〜ている」 for enduring states
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
3. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
4. 何【なに】- what
5. する (exception) - to do
6. 昼ご飯【ひる・ご・はん】- lunch
7. 教科書【きょう・か・しょ】- textbook
8. 話【はなし】- story
114
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.5. OTHER USES OF THE TE-FORM
9. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
10. ううん - casual word for "no" (nah, uh-uh)
We already know how to express a state-of-being using 「です」, 「だ」, etc. However, it only indicates
a one-time thing; you are something or not. This grammar, however, describes a continuing state of an
action verb. This usually translates to the progressive form in English except for a few exceptions, which
we will examine later. We can make good use of the te-form we learned in the last section because the
only thing left to do is add 「いる」! You can then treat the result as a regular ru-verb.
This 「いる」 is the same ru-verb describing existence, first described in the negative verb section.
However, in this case, you don't have to worry about whether the subject is animate or inanimate.
Using 「〜ている」for enduring states
To describe a continuing action, first conjugate the verb to the te-form and then attach the verb「い
る」. The entire result conjugates as a ru-verb.
Examples
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べて → ⾷べている
.
2. 読む → 読んで → 読んでいる
The result conjugates as a ru-verb regardless of what the original verb is
Positive
Negative
Non-Past 読んでいる
reading 読んでいないis not reading
Past
読んでいた was reading 読んでいなかったwas not reading
Example 1
A:友達は何をしているの?
A: What is friend doing?
B:昼ご飯を⾷べている。
B: (Friend) is eating lunch.
Note that once you've changed it into a regular ru-verb, you can do all the normal conjugations. The
examples below show the masu-form and plain negative conjugations.
Example 2
A:何を読んでいる?
A: What are you reading?
115
4.5. OTHER USES OF THE TE-FORM
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
B:教科書を読んでいます。
B: I am reading textbook.
Example 3
A:話を聞いていますか。
A: Are you listening to me? (lit: Are you listening to story?)
B:ううん、聞いていない。
B: No, I'm not listening.
Since people are usually too lazy to roll their tongues to properly pronounce the 「い」, it is often omitted
in conversational Japanese. If you are writing an essay or paper, you should always include the 「い」.
Here are the abbreviated versions of the previous examples.
Example 4
A:友達は何をしてるの?
A: What is friend doing?
B:昼ご飯を⾷べてる。
B: (Friend) is eating lunch.
Example 5
A:何を読んでる?
A: What are you reading?
B:教科書を読んでいます。
B: I am reading textbook.
Example 6
A:話を聞いていますか。
A: Are you listening to me? (lit: Are you listening to story?)
B:ううん、聞いてない。
B: No, I'm not listening.
Notice how I left the 「い」 alone for the polite forms. Though people certainly omit the 「い」 even
in polite form, you might want to get used to the proper way of saying things first before getting carried
116
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.5. OTHER USES OF THE TE-FORM
away with casual abbreviations. You will be amazed at the extensive types of abbreviations that exist in
casual speech. (You may also be amazed at how long everything gets in super polite speech.) Basically,
you will get the abbreviations if you just act lazy and slur everything together. Particles also get punted
off left and right.
For example:
1. 何をしているの?(Those particles are such a pain to say all the time...)
2. 何しているの?(Ugh, I hate having to spell out all the vowels.)
3. 何してんの?(Ah, perfect.)
4.5.2
Enduring state-of-being vs enduring state of action
Vocabulary
1. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
2. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
3. 今⽇【きょう】- today
4. この - this (abbr. of これの)
5. 歌【うた】- song
6. 道【みち】- road
7. はい - yes (polite)
There are certain cases where an enduring state doesn't translate into the progressive form. In fact, there
is an ambiguity in whether one is in a state of doing an action versus being in a state that resulted from
some action. This is usually decided by context and common practices. For example, although 「結婚
している」 can technically mean someone is in a chapel currently getting married, it is usually used to
refer to someone who is already married and is currently in that married state. We'll now discuss some
common verbs that often cause this type of confusion for learners of Japanese.
「知る」
「知る」 means "to know". English is weird in that "know" is supposed to be a verb but is actually
describing a state of having knowledge. Japanese is more consistent and 「知る」 is just a regular
action verb. In other words, I "knowed" (action) something and so now I know it (state). That's why the
English word "to know" is really a continuing state in Japanese, namely: 「知っている」.
117
4.5. OTHER USES OF THE TE-FORM
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
「知る」 vs 「分かる」
「分かる」 meaning "to understand" may seem similar to 「知る」 in some cases. However, there is a
difference between "knowing" and "understanding". Try not to confuse 「知っている」 with 「分かって
いる」. 「分かっている」 means that you are already in a state of understanding, in other words, you
already get it. If you misuse this, you may sound pompous. ("Yeah, yeah, I got it already.") On the other
hand, 「知っている」 simply means you know something.
Examples
1. 今⽇、知りました。
I found out about it today. (I did the action of knowing today.)
2. この歌を知っていますか?
Do (you) know this song?
3. 道は分かりますか。
Do you know the way? (lit: Do (you) understand the road?)
4. はい、はい、分かった、分かった。
Yes, yes, I got it, I got it.
Motion Verbs (⾏く、来る、etc.)
Vocabulary
1. 鈴⽊【すず・き】- Suzuki (last name)
2. どこ - where
3. もう - already
4. 家【1) うち; 2) いえ】- 1) one's own home; 2) house
5. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
6. 先【さき】- before
7. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
8. 美恵【み・え】- Mie (first name)
9. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
It is reasonable to assume the actions 「⾏っている」 and 「来ている」 would mean, "going" and
"coming" respectively. But unfortunately, this is not the case. The 「〜ている」 form of motion verbs is
more like a sequence of actions we saw in the last section. You completed the motion, and now you exist
in that state. (Remember, 「いる」 is the verb of existence of animate objects.) It might help to think of
it as two separate and successive actions: 「⾏って」、and then 「いる」.
118
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.5. OTHER USES OF THE TE-FORM
Examples
1. 鈴⽊さんはどこですか。
Where is Suzuki-san?
2. もう、家に帰っている。
He is already at home (went home and is there now).
3. 先に⾏っているよ。
I'll go on ahead. (I'll go and be there before you.)
4. 美恵ちゃんは、もう来ているよ。
Mie-chan is already here, you know. (She came and is here.)
4.5.3
Using 「〜てある」 for resultant states
Vocabulary
1. 準備【じゅん・び】- preparations
2. どう - how
3. もう - already
4. する (exception) - to do
5. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
6. 旅⾏【りょ・こう】- travel
7. 計画【けい・かく】- plans
8. 終わる【お・わる】(u-verb) - to end
9. うん - casual word for "yes" (yeah, uh-huh)
10. 切符【きっ・ぷ】- ticket
11. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
12. ホテル - hotel
13. 予約【よ・やく】- reservation
Appropriately enough, just like there is an 「ある」 to go with 「いる」, there is a 「〜てある」 form
that also has a special meaning. By replacing 「いる」 with 「ある」, instead of a continuing action,
it becomes a resultant state after the action has already taken place. Usually, this expression is used to
explain that something is in a state of completion. The completed action also carries a nuance of being
completed in preparation for something else.
Since this grammar describes the state of a completed action, it is common to see the 「は」 and 「も」
particles instead of the 「を」 particle.
119
4.5. OTHER USES OF THE TE-FORM
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Example 1
A:準備はどうですか。
A: How are the preparations?
B:準備は、もうしてあるよ。
B: The preparations are already done.
Example 2
A:旅⾏の計画は終わった?
A: Are the plans for the trip complete?
B:うん、切符を買ったし、ホテルの予約もしてある。
B: Uh huh, not only did I buy the ticket, I also took care of the hotel reservations.
4.5.4
Using the 「〜ておく」 form as preparation for the future
Vocabulary
1. 晩ご飯【ばん・ご・はん】- dinner
2. 作る【つく・る】(u-verb) - to make
3. 電池【でん・ち】- battery
4. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
While 「〜てある」 carries a nuance of a completed action in preparation for something else, 「〜てお
く」 explicitly states that the action is done (or will be done) with the future in mind. Imagine this: you
have made a delicious pie and you're going to place it on the window sill for it to cool so that you can
eat it later. This image might help explain why the verb 「おく」 (置く), meaning "to place", can be
used to describe a preparation for the future. (It's just too bad that pies on window sills always seem to
go through some kind of mishap especially in cartoons.) While 「置く」 by itself is written in kanji, it is
customary to use hiragana when it comes attached to a conjugated verb (such as the te-form).
Examples
1. 晩ご飯を作っておく。
Make dinner (in advance for the future).
2. 電池を買っておきます。
I'll buy batteries (in advance for the future).
120
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.5. OTHER USES OF THE TE-FORM
「ておく」 is also sometimes abbreviated to 「〜とく」 for convenience.
1. 晩ご飯を作っとく。
Make dinner (in advance for the future).
2. 電池を買っときます。
I'll buy batteries (in advance for the future).
4.5.5
Using motion verbs (⾏く、来る) with the te-form
Vocabulary
1. えんぴつ - pencil
2. 持つ【も・つ】(u-verb) - to hold
3. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
4. 学校【がっ・こう】- school
5. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
6. 家【1) うち; 2) いえ】- 1) one's own home; 2) house
7. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
8. お⽗さん【お・とう・さん】- father (polite)
9. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
10. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
11. 駅【えき】- station
12. ⽅【ほう】- direction, way
13. ⾛る【はし・る】(u-verb) - to run
14. 冬【ふゆ】- winter
15. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
16. コート - coat
17. 着る【き・る】(ru-verb) - to wear
18. 増える【ふ・える】(ru-verb) - to increase
19. ⼀⽣懸命【いっ・しょう・けん・めい】- with all one's might
20. 頑張る【がん・ば・る】(u-verb) - to try one's best
21. ⾊々【いろ・いろ】(na-adj) - various
121
4.5. OTHER USES OF THE TE-FORM
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
22. ⼈【ひと】- person
23. 付き合う【つ・き・あ・う】(u-verb) - to go out with; to keep in company with
24. いい (i-adj) - good
25. まだ - yet
26. ⾒つかる【み・つかる】(u-verb) - to be found
27. ⽇本語【に・ほん・ご】- Japanese (language)
28. ずっと - long; far
29. 前【まえ】- front; before
30. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
31. する (exception) - to do
32. 結局【けっ・きょく】- eventually
33. やめる (ru-verb) - to stop; to quit
You can also use the motion verbs "to go" (⾏く)and "to come" (来る) with the te-form, to show that an
action is oriented toward or from someplace. The most common and useful example of this is the verb
「持つ」(to hold). While「持っている」means you are in a state of holding something (in possession of),
when the 「いる」 is replaced with 「いく」 or 「くる」, it means you are taking or bringing something.
Of course, the conjugation is the same as the regular 「⾏く」 and 「来る」.
Examples
1. えんぴつを持っている?
Do (you) have a pencil?
2. 鉛筆を学校へ持っていく?
Are (you) taking pencil to school?
3. 鉛筆を家に持ってくる?
Are (you) bringing pencil to home?
For these examples, it may make more sense to think of them as a sequence of actions: hold and go, or
hold and come. Here are a couple more examples.
1. お⽗さんは、早く帰ってきました。
Father came back home early.
2. 駅の⽅へ⾛っていった。
Went running toward the direction of station.
122
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.6. POTENTIAL FORM
The motion verbs can also be used in time expressions to move forward or come up to the present.
1. 冬に⼊って、コートを着ている⼈が増えていきます。
Entering winter, people wearing coat will increase (toward the future).
2. ⼀⽣懸命、頑張っていく!
Will try my hardest (toward the future) with all my might!
3. ⾊々な⼈と付き合ってきたけど、いい⼈はまだ⾒つからない。
Went out (up to the present) with various types of people but a good person hasn't been found yet.
4. ⽇本語をずっと前から勉強してきて、結局はやめた。
Studied Japanese from way back before and eventually quit.
4.6
4.6.1
Potential Form
Expressing the ability to do something
In Japanese, the ability to do a certain action is expressed by conjugating the verb rather than adding a
word such as the words "can" or "able to" in the case of English. All verbs conjugated into the potential
form become a ru-verb.
4.6.2
The Potential Form
Vocabulary
1. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
2. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
3. する (exception) - to do
4. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
5. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
6. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
7. 着る【き・る】(ru-verb) - to wear
8. 信じる【しん・じる】(ru-verb) - to believe
9. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
10. 起きる【お・きる】(ru-verb) - to wake; to occur
11. 出る【で・る】(ru-verb) - to come out
123
4.6. POTENTIAL FORM
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
12. 掛ける【か・ける】(ru-verb) - to hang
13. 調べる【しら・べる】(ru-verb) - to investigate
14. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
15. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
16. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
17. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
18. 取る【と・る】(u-verb) - to take
19. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
20. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
21. 漢字【かん・じ】- Kanji
22. 残念【ざん・ねん】(na-adj) - unfortunate
23. 今週末【こん・しゅう・まつ】- this weekend
24. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
25. もう - already
Once again, the conjugation rules can be split into three major groups: ru-verbs, u-verbs, and exception
verbs. However, the potential form of the verb 「する」 (meaning "to do") is a special exception because
it becomes a completely different verb: 「できる」 (出来る)
Rules for creating potential form
• For ru-verbs: Replace the 「る」 with 「られる」.
Example: ⾒る → ⾒られる
• For u-verbs: Change the last character from a / u / vowel sound to the equivalent / e / vowel sound
and add 「る」.
Example: 遊ぶ → 遊べ → 遊べる
.
• Exceptions:
1. 「する」 becomes 「できる」
2. 「くる」 becomes 「こられる」
�Remember that all potential verbs become ru-verbs.
124
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Sample ru-verbs
Plain
Potential
⾷べる ⾷べられる
着る
着られる
信じる 信じられる
寝る
寝られる
起きる 起きられる
出る
出られる
掛ける 掛けられる
調べる 調べられる
4.6. POTENTIAL FORM
Sample u-verbs
Plain Potential
話す
話せる
書く
書ける
遊ぶ
遊べる
待つ
待てる
飲む
飲める
取る
取れる
死ぬ
死ねる
買う
買える
Exception Verbs
Plain Potential
する
できる
くる こられる
It is also possible to just add 「れる」 instead of the full 「られる」 for ru-verbs. For example, 「⾷
べる」 becomes 「⾷べれる」 instead of 「⾷べられる」 . I suggest learning the official 「られる」
conjugation first because laziness can be a hard habit to break and the shorter version, though common,
is considered to be slang.
Examples
1. 漢字は書けますか?
Can you write kanji?
2. 残念だが、今週末は⾏けない。
It's unfortunate, but can't go this weekend.
3. もう信じられない。
I can't believe it already.
4.6.3
Potential forms do not have direct objects
Vocabulary
1. 富⼠⼭【ふ・じ・さん】- Mt. Fuji
2. 登る【のぼ・る】(u-verb) - to climb
3. 重い【おも・い】(i-adj) - heavy
4. 荷物【に・もつ】- baggage
5. 持つ【も・つ】(u-verb) - to hold
The potential form indicates that something is possible but no actual action is actually taken. While the
potential form remains a verb, since it is describing the state of something you must not use the direct
object 「を」 as you have done with regular verbs. For example the following sentences are incorrect.
1. 富⼠⼭を登れた。
125
4.6. POTENTIAL FORM
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
2. 重い荷物を持てます。
Here are the corrected versions:
1. 富⼠⼭が登れた。
Was able to climb Fuji-san.
2. 重い荷物は持てます。
Am able to hold heavy baggage.
4.6.4
Are 「⾒える」 and 「聞こえる」 exceptions?
Vocabulary
1. ⾒える【み・える】(ru-verb) - to be visible
2. 聞こえる【き・こえる】(ru-verb) - to be audible
3. 今⽇【きょう】- today
4. 晴れる【は・れる】(ru-verb) - to be sunny
5. 富⼠⼭【ふ・じ・さん】- Mt. Fuji
6. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
7. おかげ - thanks to
8. 映画【えい・が】- movie
9. ただ - free of charge; only
10. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
11. こと - event, matter
12. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
13. 久しぶり【ひさ・しぶり】- after a long time
14. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
15. 声【こえ】- voice
16. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
17. 周り【まわ・り】- surroundings
18. うるさい (i-adj) - noisy
19. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
20. あまり/あんまり - not very (when used with negative)
126
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.6. POTENTIAL FORM
There are two verbs 「⾒える」 and 「聞こえる」 that mean that something is visible and audible,
respectively. When you want to say that you can see or hear something, you'll want to use these verbs.
If however, you wanted to say that you were given the opportunity to see or hear something, you would
use the regular potential form. However, in this case, it is more common to use the type of expression
as seen in example 3.
Examples
1. 今⽇は晴れて、富⼠⼭が⾒える。
(It) cleared up today and Fuji-san is visible.
2. 友達のおかげで、映画はただで⾒られた。
Thanks to (my) friend, (I) was able to watch the movie for free.
3. 友達のおかげで、映画をただで⾒ることができた。
Thanks to (my) friend, (I) was able to watch the movie for free.
You can see that example 3 uses the generic noun for an event to say literally, "The event of seeing movie
was able to be done." which essentially means the same thing as 「⾒られる」. You can also just use
generic noun substitution to substitute for 「こと」.
1. 友達のおかげで、映画をただで⾒るのができた。
Here's some more examples using「聞く」, can you tell the difference? Notice that「聞こえる」always
means "audible" and never "able to ask".
1. 久しぶりに彼の声が聞けた。
I was able to hear his voice for the first time in a long time.
2. 周りがうるさくて、彼が⾔っていることがあんまり聞こえなかった。
The surroundings were noisy and I couldn't hear what he was saying very well.
4.6.5
「ある」, yet another exception
Vocabulary
1. そんな - that sort of
2. こと - event, matter
3. 有り得る【あ・り・え・る/あ・り・う・る】(ru-verb) - to possibly exist
4. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
5. 寝坊【ね・ぼう】- oversleep
127
4.7. USING する AND なる WITH THE に PARTICLE CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
6. する (exception) - to do
7. それ - that
8. 話【はなし】- story
You can say that something has a possibility of existing by combining 「ある」 and the verb 「得る」 to
produce 「あり得る」. This essentially means 「あることができる」 except that nobody actually says
that, they just use 「あり得る」. This verb is very curious in that it can be read as either 「ありうる」
or 「ありえる」, however; all the other conjugations such as 「ありえない」、「ありえた」、and 「あ
りえなかった」 only have one possible reading using 「え」.
Examples
1. そんなことはありうる。
That kind of situation/event is possible (lit: can exist).
2. そんなことはありえる。
That kind of situation/event is possible (lit: can exist).
3. そんなことはありえない。
That kind of situation/event is not possible (lit: cannot exist).
4. 彼が寝坊したこともありうるね。
It's also possible that he overslept. (lit: The event that he overslept also possibly exists.)
5. それは、ありえない話だよ。
That's an impossible story/scenario. (lit: That story/scenario cannot exist.)
4.7
Using する and なる with the に particle (〜 [よう]にな
る/する)
We can use the verbs 「する」 and 「なる」 in conjunction with the 「に」 particle to make various
useful expressions. We are used to using the object particle with 「する」 because something is usually
done to something else. We will see how the meaning changes when we change the particle to 「に」.
As for 「なる」, it is always used with the 「に」 particle because "becoming" is not an action done to
something else but rather a target of change. The only grammatical point of interest here is using 「な
る」 with i-adjectives and verbs.
4.7.1
Using 「なる」 and 「する」 for nouns and na-adjectives
Vocabulary
1. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
128
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR 4.7. USING する AND なる WITH THE に PARTICLE
2. ⽇本語【に・ほん・ご】- Japanese (language)
3. 上⼿【じょう・ず】(na-adj) - skillful
4. なる (u-verb) - to become
5. 私【わたし】- me, myself, I
6. 医者【い・しゃ】- doctor
7. 有名【ゆう・めい】(na-adj) - famous
8. ⼈【ひと】- person
9. ハンバーガー- hamburger
10. サラダ - salad
11. する (exception) - to do
12. 他【ほか】- other
13. いい (i-adj) - good
14. 物【もの】- object
15. たくさん - a lot (amount)
16. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
17. やはり/やっぱり - as I thought
18. これ - this
As already explained, using 「なる」 with nouns and na-adjectives presents nothing new and acts pretty
much the way you'd expect.
1. 彼の⽇本語が上⼿になった。
His Japanese has become skillful.
2. 私は医者になった。
I became a doctor.
3. 私は有名な⼈になる。
I will become a famous person.
For adjectives, using the verb 「する」 with the 「に」 particle is just a review back to the lesson on
adverbs. However, for nouns, when you use the verb 「する」 with the 「に」 particle, it means that you
are going to do things toward something. This changes the meaning of 「する」 to mean, "to decide on
[X]". This is a common expression to use, for instance, when you are ordering items on a menu.
1. 私は、ハンバーガーとサラダにします。
I'll have the hamburger and salad. (lit: I'll do toward hamburger and salad.)
129
4.7. USING する AND なる WITH THE に PARTICLE CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
2. 他にいいものがたくさんあるけど、やっぱりこれにする。
There are a lot of other good things, but as I thought, I'll go with this one.
If you think this expression is strange, think about the English expression, "I'll go with the hamburger."
Exactly where are you going with the hamburger?
4.7.2
Using 「なる」 with i-adjectives
Vocabulary
1. 去年【きょ・ねん】- last year
2. 〜から (particle) - from 〜
3. 背【せ】- height
4. ⾼い【たか・い】(i-adj) - high; tall; expensive
5. なる (u-verb) - to become
6. 運動【うん・どう】- exercise
7. する (exception) - to do
8. 〜から (particle) - 〜 so
9. 強い【つよ・い】(i-adj) - strong
10. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
11. たくさん - a lot (amount)
12. 頭【あたま】- head
13. いい (i-adj) - good
Because the 「に」 particle is a target particle that is used for nouns and by extension na-adjectives,
we need to use something else to show that something is becoming an i-adjective. Since "becoming"
expresses a change in state, it makes sense to describe this process using an adverb. In fact, you'll notice
that we were already using adverbs (of a sort) in the previous section by using 「に」 with na-adjectives.
1. 去年から背が⾼くなったね。
Your height has gotten taller from last year, huh?
2. 運動しているから、強くなる。
I will become stronger because I am exercising.
3. 勉強をたくさんしたから、頭がよくなった。
Since I studied a lot, I became smarter. (lit: head became better)
130
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR 4.7. USING する AND なる WITH THE に PARTICLE
4.7.3
Using 「なる」 and 「する」 with verbs
Vocabulary
1. 海外【かい・がい】- overseas
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. こと - event, matter
4. なる (u-verb) - to become
5. 毎⽇【まい・にち】- everyday
6. ⾁【にく】- meat
7. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
8. する (exception) - to do
9. ⽇本【に・ほん】- Japan
10. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
11. 寿司【すし】- sushi
12. ⼀年間【いち・ねん・かん】- span of 1 year
13. 練習【れん・しゅう】- practice
14. ピアノ - piano
15. 弾く【ひ・く】(u-verb) - to play (piano, guitar)
16. 地下【ち・か】- underground
17. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
18. 富⼠⼭【ふ・じ・さん】- Mt. Fuji
19. ⾒える【み・える】(ru-verb) - to be visible
You may be wondering how to use 「なる」 and 「する」 with verbs since there's no way to directly
modify a verb with another verb. The simple solution is to add a generic noun such as a generic event:
こと (事) or an appearance/manner: よう (様). These nouns don't refer to anything specific and are used
to describe something else. In this case, they allow us to describe verbs in the same manner as nouns.
Here are some examples of how to use these generic nouns with 「する」 and 「なる」.
1. 海外に⾏くことになった。
It's been decided that I will go abroad. (lit: It became the event of going abroad.)
2. 毎⽇、⾁を⾷べるようになった。
It became so that I eat meat everyday. (lit: It became the appearance of eating meat everyday.)
131
4.8. CONDITIONALS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
3. 海外に⾏くことにした。
I decided I will go abroad. (lit: I did toward the event of going abroad.)
4. 毎⽇、⾁を⾷べるようにする。
I will try to eat meat everyday. (lit: I will do toward the manner of eating meat everyday.)
You can modify a verb with「なる」or「する」by first making it into a noun clause and then treating it just
like a regular noun. Pretty clever, huh? I hope the literal translations give you a sense of why the example
sentences mean what they do. For instance, in the fourth example, 「〜ようにする」 translates into "to
make an effort toward..." but in Japanese, it's really only a target towards acting in a certain manner.
Since potential verbs describe a state of feasibility rather than an action (remember, that's why the 「を」
particle couldn't be used), it is often used in conjunction with 「〜ようになる」 to describe a change in
manner to a state of feasibility. Let's take this opportunity to get some potential conjugation practice in.
1. ⽇本に来て、寿司が⾷べられるようになった。
After coming to Japan, I became able to eat sushi.
2. ⼀年間練習したから、ピアノが弾けるようになった。
Because I practiced for one year, I became able to play the piano.
3. 地下に⼊って、富⼠⼭が⾒えなくなった。
After going underground, Fuji-san became not visible.
4.8
4.8.1
Conditionals (と、なら、ば、たら)
How to say "if" in Japanese
This whole section is dedicated to learning how to say "if" in Japanese. Oh, if only it was as simple as
English. In Japanese, there's four (count them, four) ways to say "if"! Thankfully, the conjugations are
sparse and easy especially since you don't have to deal with tenses.
4.8.2
Expressing natural consequence using 「と」
Vocabulary
1. ボール - ball
2. 落とす【お・とす】(u-verb) - to drop
3. 落ちる【お・ちる】(ru-verb) - to fall
4. 電気【でん・き】- electricity; (electric) light
132
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.8. CONDITIONALS
5. 消す【け・す】(u-verb) - to erase
6. 暗い【くら・い】(i-adj) - dark
7. 学校【がっ・こう】- school
8. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
9. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
10. 会う【あ・う】(u-verb) - to meet
11. たくさん - a lot (amount)
12. 太る【ふと・る】(u-verb) - to become fatter
13. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
14. きっと - for sure
15. 年上【とし・うえ】- older
We'll first cover the simplest type of "if" which is the natural consequence conditional. This means that
if [X] happens, [Y] will happen as a natural consequence. No question about it. If I drop a ball, it will fall
to the ground. If I turn off the lights at night, it will get dark. We can express this type of condition in the
following format.
Rules for using the conditional 「と」
1. Attach 「と」 to the condition followed by the result that would occur should the condition be
satisfied
.
= [Condition] + と + [Result]
2. State-of-being must be made explicit
= [State-of-being] + だと + [Result]
Examples
1. ボールを落すと落ちる。
If you drop the ball, it will fall.
2. 電気を消すと暗くなる。
If you turn off the lights, it will get dark.
These examples are designed to show how 「と」 is used to express natural consequence. However,
even if the statement isn't a natural consequence in itself, the 「と」 will tell the audience that it is
nevertheless expected to be a natural consequence.
133
4.8. CONDITIONALS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
1. 学校に⾏かないと友達と会えないよ。
If you don't go to school, you can't meet your friends.
2. たくさん⾷べると太るよ。
If you eat a lot, you will get fat, for sure.
3. 先⽣だと、きっと年上なんじゃないですか?
If he's a teacher, he must be older for sure, right?
The "for sure" part is the implied meaning supplied by the「と」. The speaker is saying that the following
condition will occur in that situation, no matter what. As you can see from the last example, if the condition
is a state-of-being, it must be expressed so explicitly using 「だ」 . This applies to all non-conjugated
nouns and na-adjectives as I'm sure you're used to by now. This will also help prevent confusion with
other types of 「と」.
4.8.3
Contextual conditionals using 「なら (ば)」
Vocabulary
1. 皆【みんな】- everybody
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. 私【わたし】- me, myself, I
4. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
5. 問題【もん・だい】- problem
6. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
7. 図書館【と・しょ・かん】- library
8. あそこ - over there
Another relatively easy to understand type of "if" is the contextual conditional. You can use this particle to
express what will happen given a certain context. For example, if you wanted to say, "Well, if everybody's
going, I'm going too" you would use the 「なら」 conditional because you are saying that you will go in
the context of everybody else going. The contextual conditional always requires a context in which the
conditional occurs. For instance, you would use it for saying things like, "If that's what you are talking
about..." or "If that's the case, then..."
In a sense, you are explaining what would occur if you assume a certain condition is satisfied. In other
words, you are saying "if given a certain context, here is what will happen." You will see this reflected in
the English translations as the phrase "if given" in the examples.
The 「なら」 is attached to the context in which the conditional occurs. The format is the same as the
「と」 conditional, however, you must not attach the declarative 「だ」.
134
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.8. CONDITIONALS
Rules for using the contextual conditional 「なら」
1. Attach 「なら」 to the context in which the conditional would occur
.
= [Assumed Context] + なら + [Result]
2. You must not attach the declarative 「だ」.
Examples
1. みんなが⾏くなら私も⾏く。
If given that everybody is going, then I'll go too.
2. アリスさんが⾔うなら問題ないよ。
If given that Alice-san says so, there's no problem.
Example Dialogue
アリス:図書館はどこですか。
Alice: Where is the library?
ボブ:図書館なら、あそこです。
Bob: If given that you're talking about the library, then it's over there.
The following is incorrect.
• 図書館だならあそこです。
You can also decide to use 「ならば」 instead of just 「なら」 . This means exactly the same thing
except that it has a more formal nuance.
4.8.4
General conditionals using 「ば」
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
3. おかしい (i-adj) - funny
4. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
135
4.8. CONDITIONALS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
5. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
6. 暇【ひま】- free (as in not busy)
7. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
8. 会う【あ・う】(u-verb) - to meet
9. 買い物【か・い・もの】- shopping
10. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
11. お⾦【お・かね】- money
12. いい (i-adj) - good
13. 楽しい【たの・しい】(i-adj) - fun
14. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
15. 病気【びょう・き】- disease; sickness
16. なる (u-verb) - to become
The next type of conditional just expresses a regular "if" condition without any assumptions or embedded
meanings. The conjugation rules for the 「ば」 conditional is below. Note, the conjugation rule for nouns
and na-adjectives is actually using the verb 「ある」 in 「である」, a formal expression we'll learn much
later.
Conjugation Rules for 「ば」
• For verbs: Change the last /u/ vowel sound to the equivalent /e/ vowel sound and attach 「ば」
Examples
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べれ → ⾷べれば
2. 待つ → 待て → 待てば
• For i-adjectives or negatives ending in 「ない」: Drop the last 「い」 and attach 「ければ」.
Examples
.
1. おかしい → おかしければ
2. ない → なければ
• For nouns and na-adjectives: Attach 「であれば」
Examples
1. 学⽣ → 学⽣であれば
2. 暇 → 暇であれば
136
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.8. CONDITIONALS
Examples
1. 友達に会えれば、買い物に⾏きます。
If I can meet with my friend, we will go shopping.
2. お⾦があればいいね。
If I had money, it would be good, huh?
3. 楽しければ、私も⾏く。
If it's fun, I'll go too.
4. 楽しくなければ、私も⾏かない。
If it's not fun, I'll also not go.
5. ⾷べなければ病気になるよ。
If you don't eat, you will become sick.
4.8.5
Past conditional using 「たら (ば)」
Vocabulary
1. ⾃動【じ・どう】- automatic
2. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
3. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
4. 忙しい【いそが・しい】(i-adj) - busy
5. 暇【ひま】- free (as in not busy)
6. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
7. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
8. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
9. 割引【わり・びき】- discount
10. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
11. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
12. 会う【あ・う】(u-verb) - to meet
13. 買い物【か・い・もの】- shopping
14. お⾦【お・かね】- money
15. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
16. いい (i-adj) - good
17. 家【1) うち; 2) いえ】- 1) one's own home; 2) house
137
4.8. CONDITIONALS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
18. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
19. 誰【だれ】- who
20. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
21. アメリカ - America
22. たくさん - a lot (amount)
23. 太る【ふと・る】(u-verb) - to become fatter
I call this next conditional the past conditional because it is produced by taking the past tense and just
adding 「ら」. It is commonly called the 「たら」 conditional because all past-tense ends with 「た/だ」
and so it always becomes 「たら/だら」. Like the 「ば」 conditional, it is also a general conditional.
Conjugation Rule for 「たら (ば)」
• First change the noun, adjective, or verb to its past tense and attach 「ら」
Examples
1. ⾃動 → ⾃動だった → ⾃動だったら.
2. 待つ → 待った → 待ったら
3. 読む → 読んだ → 読んだら
4. 忙しい → 忙しかった → 忙しかったら
Examples
1. 暇だったら、遊びに⾏くよ。
If I am free, I will go play.
2. 学⽣だったら、学⽣割引で買えます。
If you're a student, you can buy with a student discount.
For i-adjectives and verbs, it is very difficult to differentiate between the two types of conditionals, and you
can make life easier for yourself by considering them to be the same. However there is a small difference
in that the 「たら」 conditional focuses on what happens after the condition. This is another reason why
I call this the past conditional because the condition is "in the past" (not literally) and we're interested in
the result not the condition. The 「ば」 conditional, on the other hand, focuses on the conditional part.
Let's compare the difference in nuance.
138
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.8. CONDITIONALS
Example 1
A:友達に会えれば、買い物に⾏きます。
A: We will go shopping, if I can meet with my friend.
B:友達に会えたら、買い物に⾏きます。
B: If I can meet with my friend, we will go shopping.
Example 2
A:お⾦があればいいね。
A: It would be good, if I had money, huh?
B:お⾦があったらいいね。
B: If I had money, it would be good, huh?
Going by the context, the 「〜たら」 form sounds more natural for both examples because it doesn't
seem like we're really focusing on the condition itself. We're probably more interested in what's going to
happen once we meet the friend or how nice it would be if we had money.
The past conditional is the only type of conditional where the result can be in the past. It may seem
strange to have an "if" when the result has already taken place. Indeed, in this usage, there really is no
"if", it's just a way of expressing surprise at the result of the condition. This has little to do with conditionals
but it is explained here because the grammatical structure is the same.
1. 家に帰ったら、誰もいなかった。
When I went home, there was no one there. (unexpected result)
2. アメリカに⾏ったら、たくさん太りました。
As a result of going to America, I got really fat. (unexpected result)
You can also use 「たらば」 instead of 「たら」. Similar to 「ならば」, this means exactly the same
thing except that it has a more formal nuance.
4.8.6
How does 「もし」 fit into all of this?
Vocabulary
1. もし - if by any chance
2. いい (i-adj) - good
3. 映画【えい・が】- movie
139
4.9. EXPRESSING "MUST" OR "HAVE TO"
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4. 観る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to watch
5. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
6. 時間【じ・かん】- time
7. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
8. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
Some of you may be aware of the word 「もし」 which means "if" and may be wondering how it fits
into all of this. Well, if you want to say a conditional, you need to use one of the conditionals discussed
above. 「もし」 is really a supplement to add a sense of uncertainty on whether the condition is true.
For instance, you might use it when you want to make an invitation and you don't want to presume like
the following example.
1. もしよかったら、映画を観に⾏きますか?
If by any chance it's ok with you, go to watch movie?
2. もし時間がないなら、明⽇でもいいよ。
If given that there's no time, tomorrow is fine as well. (Not certain whether there is no time)
4.9
4.9.1
Expressing "must" or "have to" (〜だめ、〜いけない、
〜ならない、〜ても)
When there's something that must or must not be done
In life, there are things that we must or must not do whether it's taking out the trash or doing our homework.
We will cover how to say this in Japanese because it is a useful expression and it also ties in well with
the previous section. We will also learn how to the say the expression, "You don't have to..." to finish off
this section.
4.9.2
Using 「だめ」, 「いけない」, and 「ならない」 for things that must
not be done
Vocabulary
1. 駄⽬【だめ】- no good
2. ここ - here
3. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
4. それ - that
140
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.9. EXPRESSING "MUST" OR "HAVE TO"
5. ⾷べる【たべ・る】(ru-verb) - to eat
6. 夜【よる】- evening
7. 遅い【おそ・い】(i-adj) - late
8. 〜まで (particle) - until 〜
9. 電話【でん・わ】- phone
10. する (exception) - to do
11. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
12. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
If you're not familiar with the word 「だめ」 (駄⽬), though it can be used in many different ways it
essentially means "no good". The other two key words in this section are 「いけない」 and 「ならない」
and they have essentially the same basic meaning as 「だめ」. However, while 「いけない」 can be
used by itself, 「ならない」 must only be used in the grammar presented here. In addition, while 「い
けない」 and 「ならない」 conjugate like i-adjectives they are not actual adjectives. Let's learn how to
use these words to express things that must not be done.
How to say: Must not [verb]
• Take the te-form of the verb, add the 「は」 (wa) particle and finally attach either 「だめ」、「い
けない」、or 「ならない」.
.
Example
⼊る → ⼊って + は + だめ/いけない/ならない = ⼊ってはだめ/⼊ってはいけない/⼊っては
ならない
1. ここに⼊ってはいけません。
You must not enter here.
2. それを⾷べてはだめ!
You can't (must not) eat that!
3. 夜、遅くまで電話してはならない。
You must not use the phone until late at night.
4. 早く寝てはなりませんでした。
Wasn't allowed to sleep early.
The difference between 「だめ」、「いけない」、and 「ならない」 is that, first of all, 「だめ」 is casual.
While 「いけない」 and 「ならない」 are basically identical, 「ならない」 is generally more for things
that apply to more than one person like rules and policies.
141
4.9. EXPRESSING "MUST" OR "HAVE TO"
4.9.3
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Expressing things that must be done
Vocabulary
1. 毎⽇【まい・にち】- everyday
2. 学校【がっ・こう】- school
3. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
4. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
5. する (exception) - to do
You may have predicted that the opposite of "You must not do" would use「いける」or「なる」because
they look like the positive version of 「いけない」 and 「ならない」. However, 「いけない」 and 「なら
ない」 must always be negative, so this is not correct. In actuality, we still use the same 「だめ/いけな
い/ならない」 and use the opposite of the verb that goes in front of it instead. This double negative can
be kind of confusing at first but you will get used to it with practice. There are three ways to conjugate
the verb before adding 「だめ/いけない/ならない」 and two of them involve conditionals so aren't
you glad that you just learned conditionals in the previous section?
How to say: Must [verb]
1. Negative te-form + 「は」 (wa) particle + だめ/いけない/ならない
.
2. Negative verb + 「と」 conditional + だめ/いけない/ならない
3. Negative verb + 「ば」 conditional + だめ/いけない/ならない
The first method is the same as the "must not do" grammar form except that we simply negated the verb.
1. 毎⽇学校に⾏かなくてはなりません。
Must go to school everyday.
2. 宿題をしなくてはいけなかった
Had to do homework.
The second method uses the natural conditional that we learned in the last lesson. Literally, it means
if you don't do something, then it automatically leads to the fact that it is no good. (In other words, you
must do it.) However, people tend to use it for situations beyond the natural consequence characterization
that we learned from the last section because it's shorter and easier to use than the other two types of
grammar.
1. 毎⽇学校に⾏かないとだめです。
Must go to school everyday.
142
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.9. EXPRESSING "MUST" OR "HAVE TO"
2. 宿題をしないといけない
Have to do homework.
The third method is similar to the second except that it uses a different type of conditional as explained
in the last lesson. With the 「ば」 conditional, it can be used for a wider range of situations. Note that
since the verb is always negative, for the 「ば」 conditional, we will always be removing the last 「い」
and adding 「ければ」.
1. 毎⽇学校に⾏かなければいけません。
Must go to school everyday.
2. 宿題をしなければだめだった。
Had to do homework.
It may seem like I just breezed through a whole lot of material because there are three grammar forms
and 「だめ/いけない/ならない」 adding up to nine possible combinations (3x3). However, some
combinations are more common than others but I did not explicitly point out which were more common
because any combination is technically correct and going over style would merely confuse at this point.
Also, keep in mind that there is nothing essentially new in terms of conjugation rules. We already covered
conditionals in the last lesson and adding the wa particle to the te-form in the beginning of this section.
� Reality Check
Although we spent the last section explaining 「〜なければ」 and 「〜なくては」 , the reality is that
because they are so long, they are practically never used in real conversations. While they are often used
in a written context, in actual speech, people usually use the 「と」 conditional or the various shortcuts
described below. In casual speech, the 「と」 conditional is the most prevalent type of conditional.
Though I explained in depth the meaning associated with the 「と」 conditional, you have to take it with
a grain of salt here because people are inherently lazy.
4.9.4
Various short-cuts for the lazy
Vocabulary
1. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
2. する (exception) - to do
3. ご飯【ご・はん】- rice; meal
4. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
5. 学校【がっ・こう】- school
6. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
143
4.9. EXPRESSING "MUST" OR "HAVE TO"
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
7. ここ - here
8. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
9. 駄⽬【だめ】- no good
10. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
You may have been grumbling and complaining about how long most of the expressions are just to say
you must do something. You can end up with up to eight additional syllables just to say "I have to..."!
Well, others have thought the same before and people usually use short abbreviated versions of 「な
くては」 and 「なければ」 in casual speech. Teachers are often reluctant to teach these overly
familiar expressions because they are so much easier to use which is bad for times when they might
not be appropriate. But, on the other hand, if you don't learn casual expressions, it makes it difficult to
understand your friends (or would-be friends if you only knew how to speak less stiffly!). So here they are
but take care to properly practice the longer forms so that you will be able to use them for the appropriate
occasions.
Casual abbreviations for things that must be done
1. Simply replace 「なくて」 with 「なくちゃ」
.
2. Simply replace 「なければ」 with 「なきゃ」
Right now, you may be saying, "What the?" because the "abbreviations" are about the same length as
what we've already covered. The secret here is that, unlike the expressions we learned so far, you can
just leave the 「だめ/いけない/ならない」 part out altogether!
1. 勉強しなくちゃ。
Gotta study.
2. ご飯を⾷べなきゃ。
Gotta eat.
The 「と」 conditional is also used by itself to imply 「だめ/いけない/ならない」.
• 学校に⾏かないと。
Gotta go to school.
There is another 「ちゃ」 abbreviation for things that you must not do. However, in this case, you cannot
leave out 「だめ/いけない/ならない」. Since this is a casual abbreviation, 「だめ」 is used in most
cases.
One very important difference for this casual form is that verbs that end in 「む」、「ぶ」、「ぬ」 use
「じゃ」 instead of 「ちゃ」 . Essentially, all the verbs that end in 「んだ」 for past tense fall in this
category.
144
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.9. EXPRESSING "MUST" OR "HAVE TO"
Casual abbreviations for things that must not be done
1. Replace 「ては」 with 「ちゃ」
.
2. Replace 「では」 with 「じゃ」
1. ここに⼊っちゃだめだよ。
You can't enter here.
2. 死んじゃだめだよ!- You can't die!
On a final note, in general, 「ちゃ」 sounds a bit cutesy or girly. You've already seen an example of this
with the 「ちゃん」 suffix. Similarly, 「なくちゃ」 also sounds a bit cutesy or childish.
4.9.5
Saying something is ok to do or not do
Vocabulary
1. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
2. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
3. いい (i-adj) - good
4. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
5. ⼤丈夫【だい・じょう・ぶ】(na-adj) - ok
6. 構う【かま・う】(u-verb) - to mind; to be concerned about
7. もう - already
8. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
9. これ - this
10. ちょっと - just a little
11. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
Now let's learn how to say either that it's ok to do or not do something. I decided to shove this section in
here because in Japanese, this is essential how to say that you don't have to something (by saying it's
ok to not do it). The grammar itself is also relatively easy to pick up and makes for a short section.
By simply using the te-form and the 「も」 particle, you are essentially saying, "even if you do X..."
Common words that come after this include 「いい」, 「⼤丈夫」, or 「構わない」. Some examples will
come in handy.
145
4.10. DESIRE AND SUGGESTIONS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
1. 全部⾷べてもいいよ。
You can go ahead and eat it all. (lit: Even if you eat it all, it's good, you know.)
2. 全部⾷べなくてもいいよ。
You don't have to eat it all. (lit: Even if you don't eat it all, it's good, you know.)
3. 全部飲んでも⼤丈夫だよ。
It's ok if you drink it all. (lit: Even if you drink it all, it's OK, you know.)
4. 全部飲んでも構わないよ。
I don't mind if you drink it all. (lit: Even if you drink it all, I don't mind, you know.)
In casual speech, 「〜てもいい」sometimes get shortened to just「〜ていい」(or「〜でいい」instead
of 「〜でもいい」 ).
1. もう帰っていい?
Can I go home already?
2. これ、ちょっと⾒ていい?
Can I take a quick look at this?
4.10 Desire and Suggestions (たい、 欲しい、 volitional、
〜たらどう)
4.10.1
How to get your way in Japan
We will now learn how to say what you want either by just coming out and saying it or by making discreet
suggestions. The major topics we will cover will be the 「たい」 conjugation and the volitional form. We
will also learn specialized uses of the 「たら」 and 「ば」 conditionals to offer advice.
4.10.2
Verbs you want to do with 「たい」
Vocabulary
1. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
2. 何【なに】- what
3. する (exception) - to do
4. 温泉【おん・せん】- hotspring
5. ケーキ - cake
146
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.10. DESIRE AND SUGGESTIONS
6. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
7. ずっと - long; far
8. ⼀緒【いっ・しょ】- together
9. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
10. ⽝【いぬ】- dog
11. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
You can express verbs that you want to perform with the 「たい」 form. All you need to do is add 「た
い」 to the stem of the verb. However, unlike most conjugations we learned where the verb turns into a
ru-verb, this form actually transforms the verb into an i-adjective (notice how 「たい」 conveniently ends
in 「い」). This makes sense because the conjugated form is a description of something that you want
to do. Once you have the 「たい」 form, you can then conjugate it the same as you would any other
i-adjective. However, the 「たい」 form is different from regular i-adjectives because it is derived from a
verb. This means that all the particles we normally associate with verbs such as 「を」、「に」、「へ」
、or 「で」 can all be used with the 「たい」 form, which is not true for regular i-adjectives. Here's a
chart just for you.
Non-Past
Past
「たい」 conjugations
Positive
Negative
⾏きたい
⾏きたくない
⾏きたかった ⾏きたくなかった
Examples
1. 何をしたいですか。
What do you want to do?
2. 温泉に⾏きたい。
I want to go to hot spring.
3. ケーキ、⾷べたくないの?
You don't want to eat cake?
4. ⾷べたくなかったけど⾷べたくなった。
I didn't want to eat it but I became wanting to eat.
Example 4 was very awkward to translate but is quite simple in Japanese if you refer to the section about
using 「なる」 with i-adjectives". The past tense of the verb 「なる」 was used to create "became want
to eat". Here's a tongue twister using the negative 「〜たくない」 and past-tense of 「なる」:「⾷べ
たくなくなった」 meaning "became not wanting to eat".
This may seem obvious but 「ある」 cannot have a 「たい」 form because inanimate objects cannot
want anything. However, 「いる」 can be used with the 「たい」 form in examples like the one below.
147
4.10. DESIRE AND SUGGESTIONS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
• ずっと⼀緒にいたい。
I want to be together forever. (lit: Want to exist together for long time.)
Also, you can only use the「たい」form for the first-person because you cannot read other people's mind
to see what they want to do. For referring to anyone beside yourself, it is normal to use expressions such
as, "I think he wants to..." or "She said that she wants to..." We will learn how to say such expressions in
a later lesson. Of course, if you're asking a question, you can just use the 「たい」 form because you're
not presuming to know anything.
• ⽝と遊びたいですか。
Do you want to play with dog?
4.10.3
Indicating things you want or want done using 「欲しい」
Vocabulary
1. 欲しい【ほ・しい】(i-adj) - wanted; desirable
2. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
3. ⼤きい【おお・きい】(i-adj) - big
4. 縫いぐるみ【ぬ・いぐるみ】- stuffed doll
5. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
6. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
7. 部屋【へ・や】- room
8. きれい (na-adj) - pretty; clean
In English, we employ a verb to say that we want something. In Japanese, "to want" is actually an iadjective and not a verb. We saw something similar with 「好き」 which is an adjective while "to like"
in English is a verb. While I didn't get too much into the workings of 「好き」, I have dedicated a whole
section to 「欲しい」 because it means, "to want something done" when combined with the te-form of a
verb. We will learn a more polite and appropriate way to make requests in the "Making Requests" lesson
instead of saying, "I want this done."
Though not a set rule, whenever words come attached to the te-form of a verb to serve a special grammatical function, it is customary to write it in hiragana. This is because kanji is already used for the verb
and the attached word becomes part of that verb.
Examples
1. ⼤きい縫いぐるみが欲しい!
I want a big stuffed doll!
148
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.10. DESIRE AND SUGGESTIONS
2. 全部⾷べてほしいんだけど・・・。
I want it all eaten but...
3. 部屋をきれいにしてほしいのよ。
It is that I want the room cleaned up, you know.
Like I mentioned, there are more appropriate ways to ask for things which we won't go into until later.
This grammar is not used too often but is included for completeness.
4.10.4
Making a motion to do something using the volitional form (casual)
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
3. 着る【き・る】(ru-verb) - to wear
4. 信じる【しん・じる】(ru-verb) - to believe
5. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
6. 起きる【お・きる】(ru-verb) - to wake; to occur
7. 出る【で・る】(ru-verb) - to come out
8. 掛ける【か・ける】(ru-verb) - to hang
9. 捨てる【す・てる】(ru-verb) - to throw away
10. 調べる【しら・べる】(ru-verb) - to investigate
11. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
12. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
13. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
14. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
15. 取る【と・る】(u-verb) - to take
16. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
17. 泳ぐ【およ・ぐ】(u-verb) - to swim
18. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
19. 直る【なお・る】(u-verb) - to be fixed
20. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
21. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
149
4.10. DESIRE AND SUGGESTIONS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
22. する (exception) - to do
23. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
24. 今⽇【きょう】- today
25. 何【なに】- what
26. テーマパーク - theme park
27. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
28. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
29. カレー- curry
The term volitional here means a will to do something. In other words, the volitional form indicates that
someone is setting out to do something. In the most common example, this simply translates into the
English "let's" or "shall we?" but we'll also see how this form can be used to express an effort to do
something in a lesson further along.
To conjugate verbs into the volitional form for casual speech, there are two different rules for ru-verbs
and u-verbs. For ru-verbs, you simply remove the 「る」 and add 「よう」. For u-verbs, you replace
the / u / vowel sound with the / o / vowel sound and add 「う」.
Conjugations rules for the casual volitional form
• For ru-verbs: Remove the 「る」 and add 「よう」
Example: ⾷べる → ⾷べ + よう → ⾷べよう
.
• For u-verbs: Replace the / u / vowel sound with the / o / vowel sound and add 「う」
Example: ⼊る → ⼊ろ + う → ⼊ろう
Here is a list of verbs you should be used to seeing by now.
Sample ru-verbs
Plain
Volitional
⾷べる ⾷べよう
着る
着よう
信じる 信じよう
寝る
寝よう
起きる 起きよう
出る
出よう
掛ける 掛けよう
捨てる 捨てよう
調べる 調べよう
Sample u-verbs
Plain Volitional
話す
話そう
聞く
聞こう
泳ぐ
泳ごう
遊ぶ
遊ぼう
待つ
待とう
飲む
飲もう
直る
直ろう
死ぬ
死のう
買う
買おう
150
Exception Verbs
Plain Volitional
する
しよう
くる
こよう
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.10. DESIRE AND SUGGESTIONS
Examples
I doubt you will ever use 「死のう」 (let's die) but I left it in for completeness. Here are some more
realistic examples.
1. 今⽇は何をしようか?
What shall (we) do today?
2. テーマパークに⾏こう!
Let's go to theme park!
3. 明⽇は何を⾷べようか?
What shall (we) eat tomorrow?
4. カレーを⾷べよう!
Let's eat curry!
Remember, since you're setting out to do something, it doesn't make sense to have this verb in the past
tense. Therefore, there is only one tense and if you were to replace 「明⽇」 in the third example with,
let's say, 「昨⽇」 then the sentence would make no sense.
4.10.5
Making a motion to do something using the volitional form (polite)
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
3. する (exception) - to do
4. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
5. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
6. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
7. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
8. 今⽇【きょう】- today
9. 何【なに】- what
10. テーマパーク - theme park
11. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
12. カレー- curry
151
4.10. DESIRE AND SUGGESTIONS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
The conjugation for the polite form is even simpler. All you have to do is add 「〜ましょう」 to the stem
of the verb. Similar to the masu-form, verbs in this form must always come at the end of the sentence.
In fact, all polite endings must always come at the end and nowhere else as we've already seen.
Conjugations rules for the polite volitional form
• For all verbs: Add 「〜ましょう」 to the stem of the verb
.
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べ + ましょう → ⾷べましょう
2. ⼊る → ⼊り + ましょう → ⼊りましょう
Sample verbs
Plain
Volitional
する
しましょう
くる
きましょう
寝る
寝ましょう
⾏く ⾏きましょう
遊ぶ 遊びましょう
Examples
Again, there's nothing new here, just the polite version of the volitional form.
1. 今⽇は何をしましょうか?
What shall (we) do today?
2. テーマパークに⾏きましょう!
Let's go to theme park!
3. 明⽇は何を⾷べましょうか?
What shall (we) eat tomorrow?
4. カレーを⾷べましょう!
Let's eat curry!
4.10.6
Making Suggestions using the 「ば」 or 「たら」 conditional
Vocabulary
1. 銀⾏【ぎん・こう】- bank
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
152
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.11. PERFORMING AN ACTION ON A RELATIVE CLAUSE
3. たまに - once in a while
4. 両親【りょう・しん】- parents
5. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
You can make suggestions by using the 「ば」 or 「たら」 conditional and adding 「どう」. This literally
means, "If you do [X], how is it?" In English, this would become, "How about doing [X]?" Grammatically,
there's nothing new here but it is a commonly used set phrase.
Examples
1. 銀⾏に⾏ったらどうですか。
How about going to bank?
2. たまにご両親と話せばどう?
How about talking with your parents once in a while?
4.11 Performing an action on a relative clause (と、って)
In the section about modifying relative clauses, we learned how to treat a relative clause like an adjective
to directly modify a noun. We will extend the functionality of relative clauses by learning how to perform
an action on a relative clause. Obviously, we cannot simply attach the 「を」 particle to a relative clause
because the「を」particle only applies to noun phrases. We need something to encapsulate the relative
clause into a unit that we can perform actions on. This is done by making a quoted phrase.
While in English, you can just add quotes and a comma to make a quotation, Japanese requires attaching
「と」 at the end of the quote. This is completely different from the 「と」 particle and the 「と」
conditional. Unlike quotes in English, we can perform many different types of actions on the quote besides
the standard "he said", "she said", etc. For example, we can perform the action, "to think" or "to hear"
to produce phrases such as, "I think [clause]" or "I heard [clause]" This is very important in Japanese
because Japanese people seldom affirm definite statements. This also why we will have to eventually
cover many other types of grammar to express uncertainty or probability.
4.11.1 The direct quote
Vocabulary
1. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
2. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
3. 叫ぶ【さけ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to scream
153
4.11. PERFORMING AN ACTION ON A RELATIVE CLAUSE
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4. 呼ぶ【よ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to call
5. 呟く【つぶや・く】(u-verb) - to mutter
6. 寒い【さむ・い】(i-adj) - cold
7. 今⽇【きょう】- today
8. 授業【じゅ・ぎょう】- class
9. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
10. ⽥中【た・なか】- Tanaka (last name)
We'll learn the simplest type of quoted phrase, which is the direct quote. Basically, you are directly quoting
something that was said. This is done by simply enclosing the statement in quotes, adding 「と」 and
then inserting the appropriate verb. The most common verbs associated with a direct quote would be
「⾔う」 and 「聞く」 but you may use any verbs related to direct quotation such as: 「叫ぶ」, 「呼ぶ」
, 「呟く」, etc. This type of quotation is often used for dialogue in novels and other narrative works.
Examples
1. アリスが、「寒い」と⾔った。
Alice said, "Cold".
2. 「今⽇は授業がない」と先⽣から聞いたんだけど。
It is that I heard from the teacher, "There is no class today."
The verb does not need to be directly connected to the relative clause. As long as the verb that applies
to the relative clause comes before any other verb, you can have any number of adjectives, adverbs or
nouns in between.
• 「寒い」とアリスが⽥中に⾔った。
"Cold," Alice said to Tanaka.
4.11.2 The interpreted quote
Vocabulary
1. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
2. 今⽇【きょう】- today
3. 授業【じゅ・ぎょう】- class
4. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
154
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.11. PERFORMING AN ACTION ON A RELATIVE CLAUSE
5. これ - this
6. ⽇本語【に・ほん・ご】- Japanese (language)
7. 何【なに/なん】- what
8. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
9. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
10. カレー- curry
11. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
12. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
13. 時間【じ・かん】- time
14. 今【いま】- now
15. どこ - where
16. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
17. 考える【かんが・える】(ru-verb) - to think
18. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
19. ⾼校⽣【こう・こう・せい】- high school student
20. 信じる【しん・じる】(ru-verb) - to believe
The second type of quote is the quote along the lines of what someone actually said. It's not a word-forword quote. Since this is not a direct quote, no quotations are needed. You can also express thoughts as
an interpreted quote as well. By using this and the verb 「思う」 you can say you think that something
is so-and-so. You will hear Japanese people use this all the time. You can also use the verb 「考える」
when you are considering something.
Examples
1. 先⽣から今⽇は授業がないと聞いたんだけど。
I heard from the teacher that there is no class today.
2. これは、⽇本語で何と⾔いますか。
What do you call this in Japanese? (lit: About this, what do you say in Japanese?)
3. 私は、アリスと⾔います。
I am called Alice. (lit: As for me, you say Alice.)
In an interpreted quote, the meaning of 「⾔う」 may change as you see in examples 2 and 3. Actually,
as you can see from the literal translation, the meaning remains the same in Japanese but changes only
when translated to normal English. (We'll learn more about various ways to use 「いう」 in the next
lesson.)
155
4.11. PERFORMING AN ACTION ON A RELATIVE CLAUSE
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Here are some examples of thoughts being used as quoted relative clauses. In example 2 below, the
question marker is used with the volitional to insert an embedded question.
1. カレーを⾷べようと思ったけど、⾷べる時間がなかった。
I thought about setting out to eat curry but I didn't have time to eat.
2. 今、どこに⾏こうかと考えている。
Now, I'm considering where to set out to go.
Unlike the direct quotation, which you can just copy as is, if the quoted relative clause is a state-of-being
for a noun or na-adjective, you have to explicitly include the declarative 「だ」 to show this.
1. 彼は、これは何だと⾔いましたか。
What did he say this is?
2. 彼は⾼校⽣だと聞いたけど、信じられない。
I heard that he is a high school student but I can't believe it.
Notice how 「だ」 was added to explicitly declare the state-of-being that is highlighted in the English
translation. You can really see how important the「だ」is here by comparing the following two sentences.
• これは何だと⾔いましたか。
What did (he) say this is?
• 何と⾔いましたか。
What did (he) say?
4.11.3 Using 「って」 as a casual version of 「と」
Vocabulary
1. 智⼦【とも・こ】- Tomoko (first name)
2. 来年【らい・ねん】- next year
3. 海外【かい・がい】- overseas
4. もう - already
5. お⾦【お・かね】- money
6. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
7. 本当【ほん・とう】- real
156
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.11. PERFORMING AN ACTION ON A RELATIVE CLAUSE
8. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
9. ⾬【あめ】- rain
10. 降る【ふ・る】(u-verb) - to precipitate
11. すごい (i-adj) - to a great extent
12. いい (i-adj) - good
13. ⼈【ひと】- person
You may be surprised to hear that there is a shorter and casual version of the quoted relative clause
since it's already only one hiragana character, 「と」 . However, the important point here is that by
using this casual shortcut, you can drop the rest of the sentence and hope your audience can understand
everything from context.
Examples
1. 智⼦は来年、海外に⾏くんだって。
Tomoko said that she's going overseas next year.
2. もうお⾦がないって。
I already told you I have no money.
3. え?何だって?
Huh? What did you say?
4. 今、時間がないって聞いたんだけど、本当?
I heard you don't have time now, is that true?
5. 今、時間がないって、本当?
You don't have time now (I heard), is that true?
「って」 can also be used to talk about practically anything, not just to quote something that was said.
You can hear 「って」 being used just about everywhere in casual speech. Most of the time it is used in
place of the 「は」 particle to simply bring up a topic.
1. 明⽇って、⾬が降るんだって。
About tomorrow, I hear that it's going to rain.
2. アリスって、すごくいい⼈でしょ?
About Alice, she's a very good person, right?
157
4.12. DEFINING AND DESCRIBING
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.12 Defining and Describing (という)
4.12.1
The various uses of 「いう」
In the previous lesson, we learned how to quote a relative clause by encasing it with 「と」. This allowed
us to talk about things that people have said, heard, thought, and more. We also took a look at some
examples sentences that used 「と」 and 「⾔う」 to describe how to say something in Japanese and
even what to call oneself. In this section, we will learn that with 「と」, we can use
「いう」 in a similar fashion to define, describe, and generally just talk about the thing itself. We'll also
see how to do the same thing with the casual 「って」 version we first learned about in the last lesson.
4.12.2
Using 「いう」 to define
Vocabulary
1. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
2. これ - this
3. 何【なに/なん】- what
4. ⿂【さかな】- fish
5. この - this (abbr. of これの)
6. 鯛【たい】- tai (type of fish)
7. デパート - department store
8. どこ - where
9. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
10. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
11. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
12. 英語【えい・ご】- English (language)
13. 意味【い・み】- meaning
In the last lesson, we briefly looked at how to introduce ourselves by using 「と」 and 「いう」 . For
instance, we had the following example, which Alice used to introduce herself.
• 私はアリスといいます。
I am called Alice. (lit: As for me, you say Alice.)
158
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.12. DEFINING AND DESCRIBING
This sentence pattern is probably one of the first things beginner Japanese students learn in the classroom. In this case, the verb 「いう」 doesn't mean that somebody actually said something. Rather,
Alice is saying that people in general say "Alice" when referring to her. While using kanji for 「いう」 is
perfectly acceptable, in this case, since nothing is actually being said, using hiragana is also common.
This idea of describing what a person is known or referred to as can also be extended to objects and
places. We can essentially define and identify anything we want by using 「という」 in this manner.
As you can imagine, this is particularly useful for us because it allows us to ask what things are called in
Japanese and for the definition of words we don't know yet.
Examples
1. これは、なんという⿂ですか。
What is this fish referred to as?
2. この⿂は、鯛といいます。
This fish is known as "Tai".
3. ルミネというデパートはどこにあるか、知っていますか?
Do you know where the department store called "Lumine" is?
4. 「友達」は、英語で「friend」という意味です。
The meaning of "tomodachi" in English is "friend".
4.12.3
Using 「いう」 to describe anything
Vocabulary
1. 主⼈公【しゅ・じん・こう】- main character
2. 犯⼈【はん・にん】- criminal
3. ⼀番【いち・ばん】- best; first
4. ⾯⽩い【おも・しろ・い】(i-adj) - interesting
5. ⽇本⼈【に・ほん・じん】- Japanese person
6. お酒【お・さけ】- alcohol
7. 弱い【よわ・い】(i-adj) - weak
8. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
9. 本当【ほん・とう】- real
10. 独⾝【どく・しん】- single; unmarried
11. 嘘【うそ】- lie
12. リブート - reboot
159
4.12. DEFINING AND DESCRIBING
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
13. パソコン - computer, PC
14. こう - (things are) this way
15. そう - (things are) that way
16. ああ - (things are) that way
17. どう - how
18. 再起動【さい・き・どう】- reboot
19. あんた - you (slang)
20. いつも - always
21. 時【とき】- time
22. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
23. 困る【こま・る】(u-verb) - to be bothered, troubled
24. ⼈【ひと】- person
25. 結婚【けっ・こん】- marriage
26. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
27. 幸せ【しあわ・せ】- happiness
28. なる (u-verb) - to become
29. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
30. ⼤学【だい・がく】- college
31. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
32. 意味 【い・み】- meaning
We learned how to use 「という」 to describe what something is known or referred to as. However, we
can take this idea even further by attaching two relative clauses. At this point, 「いう」 is so abstract
that it doesn't even really have a meaning. When a relative clause is encapsulated with 「と」 , you
must have a verb to go along with it and 「いう」 is simply being used as a generic verb to enable us to
talk about any relative clause. This allows us to describe and explain just about anything ranging from a
single word to complete sentences. As you can imagine, this construction is quite useful and employed
quite often in Japanese.
Examples
1. 主⼈公が犯⼈だったというのが⼀番⾯⽩かった。
The most interesting thing was that the main character was the criminal.
2. ⽇本⼈はお酒に弱いというのは本当?
Is it true that Japanese people are weak to alcohol?
160
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.12. DEFINING AND DESCRIBING
3. 独⾝だというのは、嘘だったの?
It was a lie that you were single?
4. リブートというのは、パソコンを再起動するということです。
Reboot means to restart your computer.
We can abstract it even further by replacing the relative clause with a generic way of doing something.
In this case, we use 「こう」、「そう」、「ああ」、and 「どう」, which when combined with 「いう」
means "this way, "that way", "that way (far away in an abstract sense)" and "what way" respectively.
Examples
1. あんたは、いつもこういう時に来るんだから、困るんだよ。
It's because you always come at times like these that I'm troubled.
2. そういう⼈と⼀緒に仕事をするのは、嫌だよね。
(Anybody would) dislike doing work together with that type of person, huh?
3. ああいう⼈と結婚できたら、幸せになれると思います。
I think you can become happy if you could marry that type of person.
4. ⼤学に⾏かないって、どういう意味なの?
What do you mean, "You're not going to go to college?"
4.12.4
Rephrasing and making conclusions with 「という」
Vocabulary
1. あんた - you (slang)
2. 彼⼥【かの・じょ】- she; girlfriend
3. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
4. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
5. 何【なに/なん】- what
6. お酒【お・さけ】- alcohol
7. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable
8. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
9. ⽣きる【い・きる】(ru-verb) - to live
10. 多分【た・ぶん】- maybe
11. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
12. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
161
4.12. DEFINING AND DESCRIBING
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
13. お⾦【お・かね】- money
14. もう - already
15. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
16. 駄⽬【だめ】- no good
17. 洋介【よう・すけ】- Yousuke (first name)
18. 別れる【わか・れる】(ru-verb) - to separate; to break up
19. こと - event, matter
20. 今【いま】- now
21. 彼⽒【かれ・し】- boyfriend
22. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
23. そう - (things are) that way
We can attach the question marker 「か」 to 「という」 in order to add a questioning element. This
construction is used when you want to rephrase or redefine something such as the following dialogue.
Example Dialogue
A:みきちゃんは、あんたの彼⼥でしょう?
A: Miki-chan is your girlfriend, right?
B:う〜ん、彼⼥というか、友達というか、なんというか・・・
B:Um, you might say girlfriend, or friend, or something…
This construction is used all the time, particularly in casual conversations. It can be used to correct
something, come to a different conclusion, or even as an interjection.
Examples
1. お酒は好きというか、ないと⽣きていけない。
I like alcohol or rather, can't live on without it.
2. 多分⾏かないと思う。というか、お⾦がないから、⾏けない。
Don't think I'll go. Or rather, can't because there's no money.
3. というか、もう帰らないとだめですけど。
Rather than that, I have to go home already.
Rather than using「か」to rephrase a conclusion, we can also simply use「こと」to sum up something
without rephrasing anything.
162
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.12. DEFINING AND DESCRIBING
Example Dialogue
A:みきちゃんが洋介と別れたんだって。
A: I heard that Miki-chan broke up with Yousuke.
B:ということは、みきちゃんは、今彼⽒がいないということ?
B: Does that mean Miki-chan doesn't have a boyfriend now?
A:そう。そういうこと。
A: That's right. That's what it means.
4.12.5
Using 「って」 or 「て」 for 「という」
Vocabulary
1. 来年【らい・ねん】- next year
2. 留学【りゅう・がく】- study abroad
3. する (exception) - to do
4. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
5. 智⼦【とも・こ】- Tomoko (first name)
6. こと - event, matter
7. 駄⽬【だめ】- no good
8. 時間【じ・かん】- time
9. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
10. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
11. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
12. いい (i-adj) - good
13. 皆【みんな】- everybody
14. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
15. 今【いま】- now
16. 彼⽒【かれ・し】- boyfriend
17. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
18. もう - already
19. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
163
4.12. DEFINING AND DESCRIBING
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
As mentioned in the previous lesson, 「って」 is very often used in causal slang in place of 「と」 ,
because it allows us to leave out the rest of the sentence and assume context (or just plain assumption)
will take care of the rest. We already saw that we can use 「って」 to replace 「という」 as well.
However, since we just learned how to use 「という」 to do much more than just simply say something,
there is a limit to just how much you can leave out. In any case, 「って」 will allow us to leave out not
only 「いう」 but also any accompanying particles as you can see in the following example.
Examples
1. 来年留学するというのは、智⼦のこと?
The studying abroad next year thing, is that Tomoko?
2. 来年留学するって智⼦のこと?
The studying abroad next year thing, is that Tomoko?
「だって」 is also another phrase that leaves out just about everything. By convention, it is used to
express disagreement or dissatisfaction usually to whine, complain, or to make an excuse but you can't
tell what it means just from looking at it. It is an abbreviation of something along the lines of 「とはいっ
ても」 meaning, "even if that was the case".
Example 1
A:しないとだめだよ。
A: Have to do it, you know.
B:だって、時間がないからできないよ。
B: But (even so), can't do it because there is no time.
Example 2
A:⾏かなくてもいいよ。
A: Don't have to go, you know.
B:だって、みんな⾏くって。私も⾏かないと。
B: But (even so), everybody said they're going. I have to go too.
In some cases, the small 「つ」 is left out and just 「て」 is used instead of 「って」. This is done (as is
usually the case for slang) in order to make things easier to say. In general, this is when there is nothing
before the 「て」 or when the sound that comes before it doesn't require the explicit separation the 「っ」
gives us in order to be understood.
Examples
164
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.12. DEFINING AND DESCRIBING
1. てことは、みきちゃんは、今彼⽒がいないてこと?
Does that mean Miki-chan doesn't have a boyfriend now?
2. ていうか、もう帰らないとだめですけど。
Rather than that, I have to go home already.
Since slang tends to be used in whichever way the person feels like, there are no definite rules defining
whether you should use 「って」 or 「て」 . However, 「て」 is generally not used to express what
people have actually said or heard, which is why it wasn't covered in the last lesson.
• みきちゃんが、明⽇こないて。
(Can't use 「て」 for something actually said)
• みきちゃんが、明⽇こないって。
Miki-chan says she isn't coming tomorrow.
4.12.6
Saying 「ゆう」 instead of 「いう」
Vocabulary
1. もう - already
2. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
3. そう - (things are) that way
4. こと - event, matter
Because the 「という」 construction is used so often, there are a lot of different variations and slang
based on it. While I do not plan on covering all of them here, you can check out casual patterns and
slang in the miscellaneous section for yet even more slang derived from 「という」.
The last thing I'm am going to briefly mention here is the use of 「ゆう」 instead of 「いう」 . In
conversations, it is quite normal to say 「ゆう」 instead of 「いう」. 「ゆう」 is easier to say because
it is simply one letter with a long vowel sound instead of the two different vowel sounds of 「いう」.
Examples
1. てゆうか、もう帰らないとだめですけど。
Rather than that, I have to go home already.
2. そうゆうことじゃないって!
I said it's not like that (lit: it's not that type of thing)!
165
4.13. TRYING SOMETHING OUT OR ATTEMPTING TO
CHAPTER
DO SOMETHING
4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.13 Trying something out or attempting to do something (〜てみる、volitional+ とする)
4.13.1
Let's try some stuff
In English, we use the word, "try" to mean both "to try something out" and "to make an effort to do
something". In Japanese, these are separate grammatical expressions. For instance, "I tried the cherry
flavor" and "I tried to do homework" mean quite different things and though English does not make a
distinction, Japanese does.
4.13.2
To try something out
Vocabulary
1. ⾒る【み・る】- to see; to watch
2. 切る【き・る】(u-verb) - to cut
3. お好み焼き【お・この・み・や・き】- okonomiyaki (Japanese-style pancake)
4. 初めて【はじ・めて】- for the first time
5. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
6. とても - very
7. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
8. お酒【お・さけ】- alcohol
9. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
10. すごい (i-adj) - to a great extent
11. 眠い【ねむ・い】(i-adj) - sleepy
12. なる (u-verb) - to become
13. 新しい【あたら・しい】(i-adj) - new
14. デパート - department store
15. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
16. 広島【ひろ・しま】- Hiroshima
To try something out, you simply need to change the verb to the te-form and add 「みる」. If it helps you
to remember, you can think of it as a sequence of an action and then seeing the result. In fact 「みる」
166
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL
4.13. TRYING
GRAMMAR
SOMETHING OUT OR ATTEMPTING TO DO SOMETHING
conjugates just like 「⾒る」. However, just like the 「〜てほしい」 grammar we learned, this is a set
phrase and 「みる」 is usually written in hiragana.
To try something out
Conjugate the verb to the te-form and add 「みる」.
Example: 切る → 切って → 切ってみる
.
You can treat the whole result as a regular verb just as you would with 「⾒る」.
Example: 切ってみる、切ってみた、切ってみない、切ってみなかった
Examples
1. お好み焼きを初めて⾷べてみたけど、とてもおいしかった!
I tried eating okonomiyaki for the first time and it was very tasty!
2. お酒を飲んでみましたが、すごく眠くなりました。
I tried drinking alcohol and I became extremely sleepy.
3. 新しいデパートに⾏ってみる。
I'm going to check out the new department store.
4. 広島のお好み焼きを⾷べてみたい!
I want to try eating Hiroshima okonomiyaki!
4.13.3
To attempt to do something
Vocabulary
1. する (exception) - to do
2. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
3. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
4. 考える【かんが・える】(ru-verb) - to think
5. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
6. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
7. 毎⽇【まい・にち】- everyday
8. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
9. 避ける【さ・ける】(ru-verb) - to avoid
167
4.13. TRYING SOMETHING OUT OR ATTEMPTING TO
CHAPTER
DO SOMETHING
4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
10. 無理⽮理【む・り・や・り】- forcibly
11. 部屋【へ・や】- room
12. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
13. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
14. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
15. 結局【けっ・きょく】- eventually
16. 徹夜【てつ・や】- staying up all night
17. お酒【お・さけ】- alcohol
18. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
19. 奥さん【おく・さん】- wife (polite)
20. ⽌める【と・める】(ru-verb) - to stop
21. なるべく - as much as possible
22. ジム - gym
23. 決める【き・める】(ru-verb) - to decide
We already learned that the volitional form was used to indicate a will to set out to do something. If you
guessed that this next grammar for attempting to do something would involve the volitional form, you
were right. To say that you tried (as in attempted) to do something, you need to conjugate the verb into
the volitional, enclose it in a quotation (so that we can perform an action on the clause) and finally add
the verb 「する」. Or put more simply, you just add 「とする」 to the volitional form of the verb. This is
simply an extension of the quoted relative clause from the last section. Instead of saying the quote (⾔
う) or treating it as a thought (思う、考える), we are simply doing it with 「する」.
Attempting a certain action
Change the verb to the volitional form and add 「とする」.
Examples
.
1. ⾒る → ⾒よう → ⾒ようとする
2. ⾏く → ⾏こう → ⾏こうとする
Examples
1. 毎⽇、勉強を避けようとする。
Everyday, she attempts to avoid study.
168
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.14. GIVING AND RECEIVING
2. 無理⽮理に部屋に⼊ろうとしている。
He is attempting to force his way into the room.
3. 早く寝ようとしたけど、結局は徹夜した。
I attempted to sleep early but ended up staying up all night.
4. お酒を飲もうとしたが、奥さんが⽌めた。
He tried to drink alcohol but his wife stopped him.
Though we use the verb 「する」 to say, "to do attempt", we can use different verbs to do other things
with the attempt. For instance, we can use the verb 「決める」 to say, "decide to attempt to do [X]". Here
are some examples of other actions carried out on the attempt.
1. 勉強をなるべく避けようと思った。
I thought I would attempt to avoid studying as much as possible.
2. 毎⽇ジムに⾏こうと決めた。
Decided to attempt to go to gym everyday.
4.14 Giving and Receiving (あげる、やる、くれる、もら
う)
4.14.1
Japanese people like gifts
Vocabulary
1. お歳暮【お・せい・ぼ】- year-end presents
2. お中元【お・ちゅう・げん】- Bon festival gifts
3. あげる (ru-verb) - to give; to raise
4. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
5. もらう (u-verb) - to receive
One thing about Japanese culture is that they're big on giving gifts. There are many different customs
involving giving and receiving gifts (お歳暮、お中元、etc.) and when Japanese people go traveling, you
can be sure that they're going to be picking up souvenirs to take back as gifts. Even when attending
marriages or funerals, people are expected to give a certain amount of money as a gift to help fund the
ceremony. You can see why properly learning how to express the giving and receiving of favors and items
is a very important and useful skill. For some reason, the proper use of 「あげる」、「くれる」、and
「もらう」 has always haunted people studying Japanese as being horribly complex and intractable. I
hope to prove in this section that it is conceptually quite straightforward and simple.
169
4.14. GIVING AND RECEIVING
4.14.2
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
When to use 「あげる」
Vocabulary
1. あげる (ru-verb) - to give; to raise
2. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
3. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
4. プレゼント - present
5. これ - this
6. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
7. ⾞【くるま】- car
8. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
9. 代わり【か・わり】- substitute
10. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
11. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
12. ⽗【ちち】- father
13. いい (i-adj) - good
14. こと - event, matter
15. 教える【おし・える】(ru-verb) - to teach; to inform
「あげる」 is the Japanese word for "to give" seen from the speaker's point of view. You must use this
verb when you are giving something or doing something for someone else.
Examples
1. 私が友達にプレゼントをあげた。
I gave present to friend.
2. これは先⽣にあげる。
I'll give this to teacher.
In order to express the giving of a favor (verb) you must use the ever useful te-form and then attach 「あ
げる」. This applies to all the other sections in this lesson as well.
1. ⾞を買ってあげるよ。
I'll give you the favor of buying a car.
170
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.14. GIVING AND RECEIVING
2. 代わりに⾏ってあげる。
I'll give you the favor of going in your place.
For third-person, this verb is used when the speaker is looking at it from the giver's point of view. We'll
see the significance of this when we examine the verb 「くれる」 next.
1. 学⽣がこれを先⽣にあげる。
The student give this to teacher. (looking at it from the student's point of view)
2. 友達が⽗にいいことを教えてあげた。
Friend gave the favor of teaching something good to my dad. (looking at it from the friend's point
of view)
Using 「やる」 to mean 「あげる」
Vocabulary
1. ⽝【いぬ】- dog
2. 餌【えさ】- food for animals
3. やる (u-verb) - to do
Usually used for pets, animals, and such, you can substitute 「やる」, which normally means "to do", for
「あげる」. You would normally never use this type of 「やる」 for people. I only included this so that
you won't be confused by sentences like the following.
• ⽝に餌をやった?
Did you give the dog food?
Here, 「やる」 does not mean "to do" but "to give". You can tell because "doing food to dog" doesn't
make any sense.
4.14.3
When to use 「くれる」
Vocabulary
1. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
2. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
3. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
171
4.14. GIVING AND RECEIVING
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4. プレゼント - present
5. これ - this
6. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
7. ⾞【くるま】- car
8. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
9. 代わり【か・わり】- substitute
10. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
11. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
12. ⽗【ちち】- father
13. いい (i-adj) - good
14. こと - event, matter
15. 教える【おし・える】(ru-verb) - to teach; to inform
16. あげる (ru-verb) - to give; to raise
17. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
18. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
「くれる」 is also a verb meaning "to give" but unlike 「あげる」, it is from the receiver's point of view.
You must use this verb when someone else is giving something or doing something for you (effectively
the opposite of 「あげる」).
Examples
1. 友達が私にプレゼントをくれた。
Friend gave present to me.
2. これは、先⽣がくれた。
Teacher gave this to me.
3. ⾞を買ってくれるの?
You'll give me the favor of buying a car for me?
4. 代わりに⾏ってくれる?
Will you give me the favor of going in my place?
Similarly, when used in the third-person, the speaker is speaking from the receiver's point of view and
not the giver.
1. 先⽣がこれを学⽣にくれる。
The teacher give this to student. (looking at it from the student's point of view)
172
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.14. GIVING AND RECEIVING
2. 友達が⽗にいいことを教えてくれた。
Friend gave favor of teaching something good to my dad. (looking at it from the dad's point of view)
The following diagram illustrates the direction of giving from the point of view of the speaker.
From the speaker's point of view, all the giving done to others "go up" to everybody else while the giving
done by everybody else "goes down" to the speaker. This is probably related to the fact that there is an
identical verb 「上げる」 meaning "to raise" that contains the character for "above" (上) and that the
honorific version of 「くれる」 is 「下さる」 with the character for down (下). This restriction allows us
to make certain deductions from vague sentences like the following:
• 先⽣が教えてあげるんですか。
Teacher, will you be the one to give favor of teaching to... [anybody other than the speaker]?
Because all giving done to the speaker must always use 「くれる」, we know that the teacher must be
doing it for someone else and not the speaker. The speaker is also looking at it from the teacher's point
of view as doing a favor for someone else.
• 先⽣が教えてくれるんですか。
Teacher, will you be the one to give favor of teaching to... [anybody including the speaker]?
Because the giver is not the speaker, the teacher is either giving to the speaker or anyone else. The
speaker is viewing it from the receiver's point of view as receiving a favor done by the teacher.
Let's see some mistakes to watch out for.
173
4.14. GIVING AND RECEIVING
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
• 私が全部⾷べてくれました。
「くれる」 is being used as giving done by the speaker. (Wrong)
• 私が全部⾷べてあげました。
I gave favor of eating it all. (Correct)
• 友達がプレゼントを私にあげた。
「あげる」 is being used as giving to the speaker. (Wrong)
• 友達がプレゼントを私にくれた。- Friend gave present to me. (Correct)
4.14.4
When to use 「もらう」
Vocabulary
1. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
2. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
3. プレゼント - present
4. もらう (u-verb) - to receive
5. これ - this
6. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
7. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
8. チェック - check
9. する (exception) - to do
10. 時間【じ・かん】- time
11. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
12. 無理【む・り】- impossible
13. その - that (abbr. of それの)
14. 時計【と・けい】- watch; clock
「もらう」 meaning, "to receive" has only one version unlike 「あげる/くれる」 so there's very little
to explain. One thing to point out is that since you receive from someone, 「から」 is also appropriate
in addition to the 「に」 target particle.
174
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.14. GIVING AND RECEIVING
Examples
1. 私が友達にプレゼントをもらった。
I received present from friend.
2. 友達からプレゼントをもらった。
I received present from friend.
3. これは友達に買ってもらった。
About this, received the favor of buying it from friend.
4. 宿題をチェックしてもらいたかったけど、時間がなくて無理だった。
I wanted to receive the favor of checking homework but there was no time and it was impossible.
「もらう」 is seen from the perspective of the receiver, so in the case of first-person, others usually don't
receive things from you. However, you might want to use「私からもらう」when you want to emphasive
that fact that the other person received it from you. For instance, if you wanted to say, "Hey, I gave you
that!" you would use 「あげる」. However, you would use 「もらう」 if you wanted to say, "Hey, you
got that from me!"
• その時計は私からもらったのよ。
(He) received that watch from me.
4.14.5
Asking favors with 「くれる」 or 「もらえる」
Vocabulary
1. 千円【せん・えん】- 1,000 yen
2. 貸す【か・す】(u-verb) - lend
3. する (exception) - to do
4. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
5. もらう (u-verb) - to receive
6. あなた - you
7. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
8. ちょっと - a little
9. 静か【しず・か】(na-adj) - quiet
10. 漢字【かん・じ】- Kanji
11. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
You can make requests by using 「くれる」 and the potential form of 「もらう」 (can I receive the favor
of...). We've already seen an example of this in example 4 of the 「くれる」 section. Because requests
are favors done for the speaker, you cannot use 「あげる」 in this situation.
175
4.14. GIVING AND RECEIVING
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Examples
1. 千円を貸してくれる?
Will you give me the favor of lending 1000 yen?
2. 千円を貸してもらえる?
Can I receive the favor of you lending 1000 yen?
Notice that the two sentences essentially mean the same thing. This is because the giver and receiver
has been omitted because it is obvious from the context. If we were to write out the full sentence, it would
look like this:
1. あなたが、私に千円を貸してくれる?
Will you give me the favor of lending 1000 yen?
2. 私が、あなたに千円を貸してもらえる?
Can I receive the favor of you lending 1000 yen?
It is not normal to explicitly include the subject and target like this when directly addressing someone but
is provided here to illustrate the change of subject and target depending on the verb 「くれる」 and 「も
らえる」.
You can use the negative to make the request a little softer. You'll see that this is true in many other types
of grammar.
1. ちょっと静かにしてくれない?
Won't you be a little quieter?
2. 漢字で書いてもらえませんか。
Can you write this in kanji for me?
Asking someone to not do something
Vocabulary
1. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
2. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
3. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
4. ⾼い【たか・い】(i-adj) - high; tall; expensive
5. 物【もの】- object
6. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
176
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.15. MAKING REQUESTS
In order to request that someone not do something, you simply attach 「で」 to the negative form of the
verb and proceed as before.
1. 全部⾷べないでくれますか。
Can you not eat it all?
2. ⾼い物を買わないでくれる?
Can you not buy expensive thing(s)?
4.15 Making requests (〜ください、〜ちょうだい、〜なさ
い、command form)
4.15.1
Politely (and not so politely) making requests
Similar to asking for favors, which we learned in the last lesson, there are also various ways to make
requests in Japanese. This is effectively the Japanese way of saying, "please do X". We'll first learn
the most common way to make requests using a special conjugation of the verb 「くださる」 and the
firmer 「なさる」. Finally, we'll learn the rarely used excessively strong command form for the sake of
completeness. You can safely skip the last part unless you're an avid reader of manga.
4.15.2
「〜ください」- a special conjugation of 「くださる」
Vocabulary
1. それ - that
2. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
3. 漢字【かん・じ】- Kanji
4. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
5. ここ - here
6. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
7. ⽇本語【に・ほん・ご】- Japanese (language)
8. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
9. 消しゴム【け・し・ごむ】- eraser
10. 貸す【か・す】(u-verb) - lend
11. 遠い【とお・い】(i-adj) - far
177
4.15. MAKING REQUESTS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
12. 所【ところ】- place
13. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
14. お⽗さん【お・とう・さん】- father (polite)
15. 時計【と・けい】- watch; clock
16. 壊れる【こわ・れる】(ru-verb) - to break
17. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
「ください」 is a special conjugation of 「くださる」, which is the honorific form of 「くれる」. We will
learn more about honorific and humble forms in the beginning of the next major section. We are going
over 「ください」 here because it has a slight difference in meaning from the normal 「くれる」 and
the honorific 「くださる」. 「ください」 is different from 「くれる」 in the following fashion:
1. それをください。
Please give me that.
2. それをくれる?
Can you give me that?
As you can see 「ください」 is a direct request for something while 「くれる」 is used as a question
asking for someone to give something. However, it is similar to「くれる」in that you can make a request
for an action by simply attaching it to the te-form of the verb.
1. 漢字で書いてください。
Please write it in kanji.
2. ゆっくり話してください。
Please speak slowly.
The rules for negative requests are same as the rules for 「くれる」 as well.
1. 落書きを書かないでください。
Please don't write graffiti.
2. ここにこないでください。
Please don't come here.
In casual speech, it is often common to simply drop the 「ください」 part.
1. ⽇本語で話して。
Please speak in Japanese.
178
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.15. MAKING REQUESTS
2. 消しゴムを貸して。
Please lend me the eraser.
3. 遠い所に⾏かないで。
Please don't go to a far place.
For those who want to sound particularly commanding and manly, it is also possible to use 「くれる」
with the 「る」 removed.
1. ⽇本語で話してくれ。
Speak in Japanese.
2. 消しゴムを貸してくれ。
Lend me the eraser.
3. 遠い所に⾏かないでくれ。
Don't go to a far place.
Because 「ください」 like the masu-form must always come at the end sentence or a relative clause,
you cannot use it to directly modify a noun. For example, the following is not possible with 「ください」.
• お⽗さんがくれた時計が壊れた。
The clock that father gave broke.
Of course, since direct quotes is merely repeating something someone said in verbatim, you can put
practically anything in a direct quote.
• 「それをください」とお⽗さんが⾔った。
Father said, "Please give me that."
4.15.3
Using 「〜ちょうだい」 as a casual request
Vocabulary
1. 頂戴【ちょうだい】- receiving (humble)
2. 致す【いたす】(u-verb) - to do (humble)
3. スプーン - spoon
4. ここ - here
5. 名前【な・まえ】- name
6. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
179
4.15. MAKING REQUESTS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
A casual alternative of 「ください」 is 「ちょうだい」. While it can be used by anyone, it has a slightly
feminine and childish nuance and is always written in Hiragana. Written in Kanji, it is usually used in a
very formal expression such as 「頂戴致します」 . Grammatically, it's used exactly the same way as
「ください」.
Examples
1. スプーンをちょうだい。
Please give me the spoon.
2. ここに名前を書いてちょうだい。
Please write your name here.
4.15.4
Using 「〜なさい」 to make firm but polite requests
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【たべ・る】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
3. する (exception) - to do
4. いい (i-adj) - good
5. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
6. ここ - here
7. 座る【すわ・る】(ru-verb) - to sit
8. まだ - yet
9. いっぱい - full
10. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
11. たくさん - a lot (amount)
12. それ - that
13. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
14. そう - (things are) that way
「なさい」 is a special honorific conjugation of 「する」. It is a soft yet firm way of issuing a command. It
is used, for example, when a mother is scolding her child or when a teacher wants a delinquent student
to pay attention. Unlike 「ください」, 「なさい」 only applies to positive verbs and uses the stem of
the verb instead of the te-form. It also cannot be used by itself but must be attached to another verb.
180
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.15. MAKING REQUESTS
Using 「なさい」to make firm but polite requests
Conjugate the verb to its stem and attach 「なさい」
Examples
.
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べなさい
2. 飲む → 飲み → 飲みなさい
3. する → し → しなさい
Examples
1. よく聞きなさい!
Listen well!
2. ここに座りなさい。
Sit here.
You can also drop 「さい」 portion of the 「なさい」 to make a casual version of this grammar.
1. まだいっぱいあるから、たくさん⾷べな。
There's still a lot, so eat a lot.
2. それでいいと思うなら、そうしなよ。
If you think that's fine, then go ahead and do it.
4.15.5
The Command Form
Vocabulary
1. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
2. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
3. する (exception) - to do
4. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
5. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
6. 着る【き・る】(ru-verb) - to wear
7. 信じる【しん・じる】(ru-verb) - to believe
8. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
181
4.15. MAKING REQUESTS
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
9. 起きる【お・きる】(ru-verb) - to wake; to occur
10. 出る【で・る】(ru-verb) - to come out
11. 掛ける【か・ける】(ru-verb) - to hang
12. 捨てる【す・てる】(ru-verb) - to throw away
13. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
14. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
15. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
16. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
17. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
18. 直る【なお・る】(u-verb) - to be fixed
19. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
20. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable
21. あっち - that way (over there) (abbr of あちら)
22. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
23. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
24. 酒【さけ】- alcohol
25. 持つ【も・つ】(u-verb) - to hold
We will go over the command form in the interest of covering all the possible verb conjugations. In reality,
the command form is rarely used as Japanese people tend to be too polite to use imperatives. Also,
this coarse type of speech is rarely, if indeed at all, used by females who tend to use 「なさい」 or an
exasperated 「くれる」 when angry or irritated. This form is only really useful for reading or watching
fictional works. You may often see or hear 「死ね!」 ("Die!") in fiction which, of course, you'll never hear
in real life. (I hope!)
Be sure to note that, in addition to the familiar 「する」, 「くる」 exception verbs, 「くれる」 is also
an exception for the command form.
Rules for creating command form
• For ru-verbs: Replace the 「る」 with 「ろ」
• For u-verbs: Change the last character from an / u / vowel to an / e / vowel
• Exceptions:
.
1. する → しろ
2. くる → こい
3. くれる → くれ
182
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Sample ru-verbs
Plain
Command
⾷べる
⾷べろ
着る
着ろ
信じる
信じろ
寝る
寝ろ
起きる
起きろ
出る
出ろ
掛ける
掛けろ
捨てる
捨てろ
4.15. MAKING REQUESTS
Sample u-verbs
Plain Command
話す
話せ
聞く
聞け
遊ぶ
遊べ
待つ
待て
飲む
飲め
直る
直れ
死ぬ
死ね
買う
買え
Exception Verbs
Plain Command
する
しろ
くる
こい
くれる
くれ
Examples
1. 好きにしろ。
Do as you please.
2. あっち⾏け!
Go away!
3. 早く酒を持ってきてくれ。
Hurry up and bring me some alcohol.
4.15.6
Negative Command
Vocabulary
1. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
2. する (exception) - to do
3. それ - that
4. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
5. 変【へん】(na-adj) - strange
6. こと - event, matter
7. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
The negative command form is very simple: simply attach 「な」 to either ru-verbs or u-verbs. Don't
confuse this with the 「な」 sentence-ending particle we will be learning at the end of this section. The
intonation is totally different.
183
4.16. NUMBERS AND COUNTING
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Using the negative command form
Attach 「な」 to the verb
Examples
.
1. ⾏く → ⾏くな
2. する → するな
Examples
1. それを⾷べるな!
Don't eat that!
2. 変なことを⾔うな!
Don't say such weird things!
This is not to be confused with the shortened version of 「〜なさい」 we just learned in the last section.
The most obvious difference (besides the clear difference in tone) is that in 「〜なさい」, the verb is first
converted to the stem while the negative command has no conjugation. For example, for 「する」, 「し
な」 would be the short version of 「しなさい」 while 「するな」 would be a negative command.
4.16 Numbers and Counting
Numbers and counting in Japanese are difficult enough to require its own section. First of all, the number
system is in units of four instead of three, which can make converting into English quite difficult. Also,
there are things called counters, which are required to count different types of objects, animals, or people.
We will learn the most generic and widely used counters to get you started so that you can learn more on
your own. To be honest, counters might be the only thing that'll make you want to quit learning Japanese,
it's that bad. I recommend you digest only a little bit of this section at a time because it's an awful lot of
things to memorize.
4.16.1
The Number System
The Japanese number system is spread into units of four. So a number such as 10,000,000 is actually split
up as 1000,0000. However, thanks to the strong influence of the Western world and the standardization
of numbers, when numbers are actually written, the split-off is three digits. Here are the first ten numbers.
184
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
1
⼀
いち
2
⼆
に
3
三
さん
4.16. NUMBERS AND COUNTING
Kanji and readings for numbers 1 to 10
4
5
6
7
8
四
五
六
七
⼋
し/よん ご ろく しち/なな はち
9
九
きゅう
10
⼗
じゅう
As the chart indicates, 4 can either be 「し」 or 「よん」 and 7 can either be 「しち」 or 「なな」.
Basically, both are acceptable up to 10. However, past ten, the reading is almost always 「よん」 and
「なな」. In general, 「よん」and 「なな」 are preferred over 「し」 and 「しち」 in most circumstances.
You can simply count from 1 to 99 with just these ten numbers. Japanese is easier than English in this
respect because you do not have to memorize separate words such as "twenty" or "fifty". In Japanese,
it's simply just "two ten" and "five ten".
1. 三⼗⼀ (さんじゅういち) = 31
2. 五⼗四 (ごじゅうよん)= 54
3. 七⼗七 (ななじゅうなな)= 77
4. ⼆⼗ (にじゅう) = 20
Notice that numbers are either always written in kanji or numerals because hiragana can get rather long
and hard to decipher.
Numbers past 99
Here are the higher numbers:
Numerals
漢字
ひらがな
100
百
ひゃく
1,000
千
せん
10,000
万
まん
108̂
億
おく
101̂2
兆
ちょう
Notice how the numbers jumped four digits from 104̂ to 108̂ between 万 and 億? That's because Japanese
is divided into units of four. Once you get past 1 万 (10,000), you start all over until you reach 9,999 万,
then it rotates to 1 億 (100,000,000). By the way, 百 is 100 and 千 is 1,000, but anything past that, and
you need to attach a 1 so the rest of the units become ⼀万 (104̂)、⼀億 (108̂)、⼀兆 (101̂2).
Now you can count up to 9,999,999,999,999,999 just by chaining the numbers same as before. This is
where the problems start, however. Try saying 「いちちょう」 、 「ろくひゃく」 、 or 「さんせん」
really quickly, you'll notice it's difficult because of the repetition of similar consonant sounds. Therefore,
Japanese people have decided to make it easier on themselves by pronouncing them as 「いっちょう」
、 「ろっぴゃく」、and 「さんぜん」. Unfortunately, it makes it all the harder for you to remember how
to pronounce everything. Here are all the slight sound changes.
185
4.16. NUMBERS AND COUNTING
Numerals
300
600
800
3000
8000
101̂2
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
漢字
三百
六百
⼋百
三千
⼋千
⼀兆
ひらがな
さんびゃく
ろっぴゃく
はっぴゃく
さんぜん
はっせん
いっちょう
1. 四万三千七⼗六 (よんまんさんぜんななじゅうろく)
43,076
2. 七億六百⼆⼗四万九千⼆百⼆⼗⼆ (ななおくろっぴゃくにじゅうよんまんきゅうせんにひゃくに
じゅうに)
706,249,222
3. 五百兆⼆万⼀ (ごひゃくちょうにまんいち)
500,000,000,020,001
Notice that it is customary to write large numbers only in numerals as even kanji can become difficult to
decipher.
Numbers smaller or less than 1
Vocabulary
1. 零【れい】- zero
2. ゼロ - zero
3. マル - circle; zero
4. 点【てん】- period; point
5. マイナス - minus
Zero in Japanese is 「零」 but 「ゼロ」 or 「マル」 is more common in modern Japanese. There is no
special method for reading decimals, you simply say 「点」 for the dot and read each individual number
after the decimal point. Here's an example:
• 0.0021 = ゼロ、点、ゼロ、ゼロ、⼆、⼀。
For negative numbers, everything is the same as positive numbers except that you say「マイナス」first.
• マイナス⼆⼗九 = -29
186
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.16.2
4.16. NUMBERS AND COUNTING
Counting and Counters
Ah, and now we come to the fun part. In Japanese, when you are simply counting numbers, everything
is just as you would expect, ⼀、⼆、三、 and so on. However, if you want to count any type of object,
you have to use something called a counter which depends on what type of object you are counting and
on top of this, there are various sound changes similar to the ones we saw with 六百, etc.. The counter
themselves are usually single kanji characters that often have a special reading just for the counter. First,
let's learn the counters for dates
Dates
Vocabulary
1. 平成【へい・せい】- Heisei era
2. 昭和【しょう・わ】- Showa era
3. 和暦【わ・れき】- Japanese calendar
4. ⼀⽇【いち・にち】- one day
The year is very easy. All you have to do is say the number and add 「年」 which is pronounced here
as 「ねん」 . For example, Year 2003 becomes 2003 年 (にせんさんねん). The catch is that there is
another calendar which starts over every time a new emperor ascends the throne. The year is preceded
by the era, for example the year 2000 is: 平成 12 年. My birthday, 1981 is 昭和 56 年 (The Showa era
lasted from 1926 to 1989). You may think that you don't need to know this but if you're going to be filling
out forms in Japan, they often ask you for your birthday or the current date in the Japanese calendar (和
暦). So here's a neat converter you can use to convert to the Japanese calendar.
Saying the months is actually easier than English because all you have to do is write the number (either
in numerals or kanji) of the month and add 「⽉」 which is read as 「がつ」. However, you need to pay
attention to April (4⽉), July (7⽉), and September (9⽉) which are pronounced 「しがつ」、 「しち
がつ」、and 「くがつ」 respectively.
Finally, we get to the days of the month, which is where the headache starts. The first day of the month is
「ついたち」(⼀⽇); different from「いちにち」 (⼀⽇), which means "one day". Besides this and some
other exceptions we'll soon cover, you can simply say the number and add 「⽇」 which is pronounced
here as 「にち」. For example, the 26th becomes 26 ⽇ (にじゅうろくにち). Pretty simple, however,
the first 10 days, the 14th, 19th, 20th, 29th have special readings that you must separately memorize. If
you like memorizing things, you'll have a ball here. Notice that the kanji doesn't change but the reading
does.
187
4.16. NUMBERS AND COUNTING
Day
What day
1st
2nd
3rd
4th
5th
6th
7th
8th
9th
10th
11th
12th
13th
14th
15th
16th
17th
18th
19th
20th
21st
22nd
23rd
24th
25th
26th
27th
28th
29th
30th
31st
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Days of the month
Kanji
Reading
何⽇
なん・にち
⼀⽇
ついたち
⼆⽇
ふつ・か
三⽇
みっ・か
四⽇
よっ・か
五⽇
いつ・か
六⽇
むい・か
七⽇
なの・か
⼋⽇
よう・か
九⽇
ここの・か
⼗⽇
とお・か
⼗⼀⽇
じゅう・いち・にち
⼗⼆⽇
じゅう・に・にち
⼗三⽇
じゅう・さん・にち
⼗四⽇
じゅう・よっ・か
⼗五⽇
じゅう・ご・にち
⼗六⽇
じゅう・ろく・にち
⼗七⽇
じゅう・しち・にち
⼗⼋⽇
じゅう・はち・にち
⼗九⽇
じゅう・く・にち
⼆⼗⽇
はつ・か
⼆⼗⼀⽇
に・じゅう・いち・にち
⼆⼗⼆⽇
に・じゅう・に・にち
⼆⼗三⽇
に・じゅう・さん・にち
⼆⼗四⽇
に・じゅう・よっ・か
⼆⼗五⽇
に・じゅう・ご・にち
⼆⼗六⽇
に・じゅう・ろく・にち
⼆⼗七⽇
に・じゅう・しち・にち
⼆⼗⼋⽇
に・じゅう・はち・にち
⼆⼗九⽇
に・じゅう・く・にち
三⼗⽇
さん・じゅう・にち
三⼗⼀⽇ さん・じゅう・いち・にち
In Japan, the full format for dates follows the international date format and looks like: XXXX 年 YY ⽉ ZZ
⽇. For example, today's date would be: 2003 年 12 ⽉ 2 ⽇
Time
Now, we'll learn how to tell time. The hour is given by saying the number and adding 「時」 which is
pronounced here as 「じ」. Here is a chart of exceptions to look out for.
英語
漢字
ひらがな
4 o'clock
四時
よじ
7 o'clock
七時
しちじ
188
9 o'clock
九時
くじ
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.16. NUMBERS AND COUNTING
Notice how the numbers 4, 7, and 9 keep coming up to be a pain in the butt? Well, those and sometimes
1, 6 and 8 are the numbers to watch out for.
The minutes are given by adding 「分」 which usually read as 「ふん」 with the following exceptions:
英語
漢字
ひらがな
1 min
⼀分
いっぷん
3 min
三分
さんぷん
4 min
四分
よんぷん
6 min
六分
ろっぷん
8 min
⼋分
はっぷん
10 min
⼗分
じゅっぷん
For higher number, you use the normal pronunciation for the higher digits and rotate around the same
readings for 1 to 10. For instance, 24 minutes is 「にじゅうよんぷん」 (⼆⼗四分) while 30 minutes is
「さんじゅっぷん」 (三⼗分). There are also other less common but still correct pronunciations such as
「はちふん」 for 「⼋分」 and 「じっぷん」 for 「⼗分」 (this one is almost never used).
All readings for seconds consists of the number plus 「秒」, which is read as 「びょう」. There are no
exceptions for seconds and all the readings are the same.
Some examples of time.
1. 1 時 24 分 (いちじ・にじゅうよんぷん)
1:24
2. 午後 4 時 10 分 (ごご・よじ・じゅっぷん)
4:10 PM
3. 午前 9 時 16 分 (ごぜん・くじ・じゅうろっぷん)
9:16 AM
4. 13 時 16 分 (じゅうさんじ・じゅうろっぷん)
13:16
5. 2 時 18 分 13 秒 (にじ・じゅうはっぷん・じゅうさんびょう)
2:18:13
A Span of Time
Ha! I bet you thought you were done with dates and time, well guess again. This time we will learn
counters for counting spans of time, days, months, and years. The basic counter for a span of time is
「間」, which is read as 「かん」. You can attach it to the end of hours, days, weeks, and years. Minutes
(in general) and seconds do not need this counter and months have a separate counter, which we will
cover next.
1. ⼆時間四⼗分 (にじかん・よんじゅっぷん)
2 hours and 40 minutes
189
4.16. NUMBERS AND COUNTING
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
2. ⼆⼗⽇間 (はつかかん)
20 days
3. ⼗五⽇間 (じゅうごにちかん)
15 days
4. ⼆年間 (にねんかん)
two years
5. 三週間 (さんしゅうかん)
three weeks
6. ⼀⽇ (いちにち)
1 day
As mentioned before, a period of one day is 「⼀⽇」 (いちにち) which is different from the 1st of the
month: 「ついたち」.
Pronunciations to watch out for when counting weeks is one week: 「⼀週間」 (いっしゅうかん) and 8
weeks: 「⼋週間」 (はっしゅうかん).
To count the number of months, you simple take a regular number and add 「か」 and 「⽉」 which is
pronounced here as 「げつ」 and not 「がつ」. The 「か」 used in this counter is usually written as a
small katakana 「ヶ」 which is confusing because it's still pronounced as 「か」 and not 「け」. The
small 「ヶ」 is actually totally different from the katakana 「ケ」 and is really an abbreviation for the kanji
「箇」, the original kanji for the counter. This small 「ヶ」 is also used in some place names such as 「千
駄ヶ⾕」 and other counters, such as the counter for location described in the "Other Counters" section
below.
In counting months, you should watch out for the following sound changes:
英語
漢字
ひらがな
1 month
⼀ヶ⽉
いっかげつ
6 months
六ヶ⽉
ろっかげつ
10 months
⼗ヶ⽉
じゅっかげつ
Just like minutes, the high numbers rotate back using the same sounds for 1 to 10.
1. ⼗⼀ヶ⽉ (じゅういっかげつ)
Eleven months
2. ⼆⼗ヶ⽉ (にじゅっかげつ)
Twenty months
3. 三⼗三ヶ⽉ (さんじゅうさんかげつ)
Thirty three months
190
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.16. NUMBERS AND COUNTING
Other Counters
We'll cover some of the most common counters so that you'll be familiar with how counters work. This
will hopefully allow you to learn other counters on your own because there are too many to even consider
covering them all. The important thing to remember is that using the wrong counter is grammatically
incorrect. If you are counting people, you must use the people counter, etc. Sometimes, it is acceptable
to use a more generic counter when a less commonly used counter applies. Here are some counters.
⽇本語
⼈
本
枚
冊
匹
歳
個
回
ヶ所 (箇所)
つ
1
2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
10
⼈
ひとり
ふたり
さんにん
よにん
ごにん
ろくにん
しちにん
はちにん
きゅうにん
じゅうにん
本
いっぽん
にほん
さんぼん
よんほん
ごほん
ろっぽん
ななほん
はちほん
きゅうほん
じゅっぽん
When to Use
To count the number of people
To count long, cylindrical objects such as bottles or chopsticks
To count thin objects such as paper or shirts
To count bound objects usually books
To count small animals like cats or dogs
To count the age of a living creatures such as people
To count small (often round) objects
To count number of times
To count number of locations
To count any generic object that has a rare or no counter
枚
いちまい
にまい
さんまい
よんまい
ごまい
ろくまい
ななまい
はちまい
きゅうまい
じゅうまい
Counting 1 to 10 (some variations might exist)
冊
匹
歳
個
いっさつ
いっぴき
いっさい
いっこ
にさつ
にひき
にさい
にこ
さんさつ
さんびき
さんさい
さんこ
よんさつ
よんひき
よんさい
よんこ
ごさつ
ごひき
ごさい
ごこ
ろくさつ
ろっぴき
ろくさい
ろっこ
ななさつ
ななひき
ななさい
ななこ
はっさつ
はっぴき
はっさい
はっこ
きゅうさつ きゅうひき きゅうさい きゅうこ
じゅっさつ じゅっぴき じゅっさい じゅっこ
回
いっかい
にかい
さんかい
よんかい
ごかい
ろっかい
ななかい
はちかい
きゅうかい
じゅっかい
ヶ所 (箇所)
つ
いっかしょ
ひとつ
にかしょ
ふたつ
さんかしょ
みっつ
よんかしょ
よっつ
ごかしょ
いつつ
ろっかしょ
むっつ
ななかしょ
ななつ
はっかしょ
やっつ
きゅうかしょ ここのつ
じゅっかしょ
とお
The changed sounds have been highlighted.
You don't count 0 because there is nothing to count. You can simply use 「ない」 or 「いない」. The
chart has hiragana for pronunciation but, as before, it is usually written with either numbers or kanji plus
the counter with the single exception of 「とお」 which is simply written as 「⼗」.
For higher numbers, it's the same as before, you use the normal pronunciation for the higher digits and
rotate around the same readings for 1 to 10 except for 「⼀⼈」 and 「⼆⼈」 which transforms to the
normal 「いち」 and 「に」 once you get past the first two. So 「⼀⼈」 is 「ひとり」 while 「11 ⼈」 is
「じゅういちにん」. Also, the generic counter 「〜つ」 only applies up to exactly ten items. Past that,
you can just use regular plain numbers.
Note: The counter for age is often sometimes written as 「才」 for those who don't have the time to write
out the more complex kanji. Plus, age 20 is usually read as 「はたち」 and not 「にじゅっさい」.
191
4.17. CASUAL PATTERNS AND SLANG
4.16.3
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Using 「⽬」 to show order
You can attach 「⽬」 (read as 「め」 ) to various counters to indicate the order. The most common
example is the 「番」 counter. For example, 「⼀番」 which means "number one" becomes "the first"
when you add 「⽬」 (⼀番⽬). Similarly, 「⼀回⽬」 is the first time, 「⼆回⽬」 is the second time, 「四
⼈⽬」 is the fourth person, and so on.
4.17 Casual Patterns and Slang
So far, for every grammar we have covered, we also went over all the casual variations as well. However,
even though we have already covered all the casual forms, truly mastering casual speech in Japanese
requires far more than just learning the various casual forms. There are countless numbers of ways in
which wordings and pronunciations change as well as differences between male and female speech.
Understanding slang also requires knowing various vocabulary that is also growing with every new generation. Many adults would be hard-pressed to understand the kind of slang being used by kids today.
While comprehensively covering slang and relevant vocabulary would require a book in and of itself
(a book that would soon become out of date), I'll instead cover some broad patterns and common phenomenon which will at least help you get started in understanding the most common aspects of Japanese
slang. There is no particular order in the material presented here and I expect this page to grow continuously as I find different things to cover.
Please note that slang is also heavily influenced by local dialects. Although all the material presented
here is valid for the greater Tokyo area, your mileage may vary depending on where you are located.
4.17.1
Basic Principles of Slang
In the world of slang, anything goes and rules that apply to written Japanese are often broken. The
most difficult part is that, of course, you can't just say whatever you want. When you break the rules,
you have to break it the correct way. Taking what you learned from textbooks or Japanese classes
and applying it to the real world is not so easy because it is impossible to teach all the possible ways
things can get jumbled up in the spoken language. Learning how to speak naturally with all the correct
idiosyncrasies and inconsistencies in a language is something that requires practice with real people in
real-world situations. In this section, we'll look at some common patterns and themes that will at least
help you get an idea of where the majority of slang originates from.
One thing you'll soon realize when you first start talking to Japanese people in real life is that many sounds
are slurred together. This is especially true for males. The fact is voices in instructional material such as
language tapes often exaggerate the pronunciation of each letter in order to make aural comprehension
easier. In reality, not all the sounds are pronounced as clearly as it should be and things end up sounding
different from how it's written on paper.
There is one major driving factor behind the majority of slang in Japanese. The primary goal of most
192
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.17. CASUAL PATTERNS AND SLANG
slang is to make things easier to say. In other words, the goal is to reduce or simplify the movement of
your mouth. There are two primary ways in which this is accomplished, 1) By making things shorter or,
2) By slurring the sounds together. We have already seen many examples of the first method such as
shortening 「かもしれない」 to 「かも」 or preferring 「と」 to the longer conditional forms. The second
method makes things easier to say usually by substituting parts of words with sounds that fit better with
the sounds surrounding it or by merging two or more sounds together. For example, the same 「かもし
れない」 might be pronounced 「かもしんない」 since 「しん」 requires less movement than 「しれ」.
Note
. movement
The fundamental goal of slang is to reduce mouth
Let's see some more examples of words that get shortened or slurred. Try saying both versions to get a
feel for how the slang saves space and some calories for your mouth.
Examples
Vocabulary
1. ここ - here
2. つまらない (i-adj) - boring
3. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
4. 家【1) うち; 2) いえ】- 1) one's own home; 2) house
5. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
6. まったく - entirely; indeed; good grief (expression of exasperation)
7. いつ - when
8. こんな - this sort of
9. 所【ところ】- place
10. ぐずぐず - tardily; hesitatingly
11. する (exception) - to do
1. ここはつまらないから私の家に⾏こう。
2. ここつまんないから、私んち⾏こう。
1. まったく、いつまでこんなところで、ぐずぐずするんだよ。
2. ったく、いつまでこんなとこで、ぐずぐずすんだよ。
193
4.17. CASUAL PATTERNS AND SLANG
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
You'll see that a great deal of slang in Japanese stems from this single principle of making things easier
to say. It's very natural because it's guided by how your mouth moves. With a fair amount of practice,
you should be able to naturally pick up shorter, alternative pronunciations and incorporate them into your
own speech.
4.17.2
Sentence ordering and particles (or the lack thereof)
Vocabulary
1. それ - that
2. 何【なに/なん】- what
3. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
4. あの - that (over there) (abbr. of あれの)
5. ⼈【ひと】- person
6. もう - already
7. ⾷べる【たべ・る】(ru-verb) - to eat
8. 昨⽇【きのう】- yesterday
9. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
10. アイス - ice (short for ice cream)
While written Japanese already has fairly loose rules regarding sentence order, casual spoken Japanese
takes it one step further. A complete sentence requires a verb at the end of the sentence to complete the
thought. However, we'll see how this rule is bent in casual conversations.
Conversations are sporadic and chaotic in any language and it's common for people to say the first thing
that pops into their head without thinking out the whole proper sentence.
For example, if you wanted to ask what something was, the normal, proper way would be to ask, 「それ
は何?」 However, if the first thing that popped into your head, "What the?" then it would be more natural
to say 「何」 first. However, since 「何はそれ?」 doesn't make any sense (Is what that?), Japanese
people simply break it up into what are essentially two sentence fragments asking "what" first (何?), and
then following it up with the explanation of what you were talking about (「それ」 in this case). For the
sake of convenience, this is lumped into what looks like one sentence.
Examples
1. それは何?
What is that?
194
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.17. CASUAL PATTERNS AND SLANG
2. 何それ?
What? That. (Two sentences lumped into one)
Sometimes, the first thing that pops into your head might be main verb. But if the main verb has already
slipped out of your mouth, you're now left with the rest of the sentence without a verb to complete the
thought. In conversational Japanese, it's perfectly acceptable to have the verb come first using the same
technique we just saw by breaking them into two sentences. The second sentence is incomplete of
course, but that kind of thing is common in the speech of any language.
1. ⾒た?あの⼈?
Did you see? That guy?
2. もう⾷べた?昨⽇買ったアイス。
You ate it already? The ice cream I bought yesterday.
4.17.3
Using 「じゃん」 instead of 「じゃない」 to confirm
Vocabulary
1. サラリーマン - office worker (salary man)
2. 残業【ざん・ぎょう】- overtime
3. たくさん - a lot (amount)
4. する (exception) - to do
5. まあ - well
6. いい (i-adj) - good
7. ほら - look
8. やはり/やっぱり - as I thought
9. レポート - report
10. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
11. 駄⽬【だめ】- no good
12. 誰【だれ】- who
13. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
14. ここ - here
15. 着替える【きが・える】(ru-verb) - to change clothes
16. 〜君【〜くん】- name suffix
17. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
195
4.17. CASUAL PATTERNS AND SLANG
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
18. やはり/やっぱり/やっぱ - as I thought
19. 駅【えき】- station
20. 近い【ちか・い】(i-adj) - close, near
21. カラオケ - karaoke
22. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
23. うん - yes (casual)
24. あそこ - over there
25. すぐ - soon; nearby
26. 隣【となり】- next to
「じゃん」 is an abbreviation of 「じゃない」 , the negative conjugation for nouns and na-adjectives.
However, this only applies to 「じゃない」 used in the following fashion.
• サラリーマンだから、残業はたくさんするんじゃない?
Because heʼs a salaryman, doesnʼt he do a lot of overtime?
The important thing to note about the example above is that 「じゃない」 here is actually confirming the
positive. In fact, a closer translation is, “Because heʼs a salaryman, he probably does a lot of overtime.”
But itʼs still a question so thereʼs a slight nuance that you are seeking confirmation even though you are
relatively sure.
「じゃん」 is a shorter slang for expressing the same type of thing except it doesnʼt even bother to ask
a question to confirm. Itʼs completely affirmative in tone.
In fact, the closest equivalent to 「じゃん」 is 「じゃない」 used in the following fashion.
• まあ、いいじゃない。
Well, itʼs probably fine (donʼt you think?).
This type of expression is the only case where you can attach 「じゃない」 directly to i-adjectives and
verbs. Once you actually hear this expression in real life, youʼll see that it has a distinct pronunciation
that is different from simply using the negative. Plus, you have to realize that this type of 「じゃない」
sounds rather mature and feminine, unlike 「じゃん」, which is gender-neutral.
Like the above, specialized use of 「じゃない」, you can also attach 「じゃん」 directly to verbs and
i-adjectives as well as the usual nouns and na-adjectives. Because slang is usually created to make
things easier, itʼs not surprising that the rules for using 「じゃん」 are so lax and easy.
196
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.17. CASUAL PATTERNS AND SLANG
Summary
• Though derived from 「じゃない」, 「じゃん」 is always used to confirm the positive.
.
• It can be attached to the end of any sentence regardless of whether it ends in a noun, adjective,
verb, or adverb.
Finally, letʼs get to the examples. Hopefully, you can see that 「じゃん」 is basically saying something
along the lines of, “See, Iʼm right, arenʼt I?”
Examples
1. ほら、やっぱりレポートを書かないとだめじゃん。
See, as I thought, you have to write the report.
2. 誰もいないからここで着替えてもいいじゃん。
Since there's nobody, itʼs probably fine to change here.
A:たかし君は、ここにいる?
A: Is Takashi here?
B:知らない。
B: Dunno.
A:あっ!やっぱ、いるじゃん!
A: Ah! See, he is here!
Thereʼs also another variation, which attaches the question marker as well. The meaning is mostly the
same but it adds more to the questioning, confirming tone.
A:駅の近くにカラオケがあるじゃんか。
A: There's a karaoke place near the station, right?
B:うん。
B: Yeah.
A:あそこのすぐ隣だ。
A: It's right next to there.
4.17.4
Using 「つ」 for 「という」
Vocabulary
1. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
197
4.17. CASUAL PATTERNS AND SLANG
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
2. 何で【なん・で】- why; how
3. お前【お・まえ】- you (casual)
4. ここ - here
5. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
6. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
7. 時間【じ・かん】- time
8. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
9. デート - date
10. する (exception) - to do
11. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
12. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
13. 試験【し・けん】- exam
14. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
15. 違う【ちが・う】(u-verb) - to be different
As we learned in the defining and describing section, 「いう」 serves many more functions than the
equivalent English verb, "to say". It is used all the time and therefore, it's not too surprising that a number
of variations and slang have developed. Here's one more that I felt was too "slangy" to cover so early at
that point of the guide.
This may sound hard to believe but if you really slur「という」together, it becomes something resembling
「つ」. Or least, that's what somebody thought when he or she began replacing 「という」 with 「つ」
or in some case 「つう」.
Now, in my opinion, 「つ」 is a lot harder to say than 「という」 so using it like a native might take a
bit of practice. Rather than making things easier to say, as is usually the case, the real purpose of this
substitution is to sound rougher because 「つ」 has a harder, hissing sound. This is ideal for when
you're pissed or for that young and rough image you've always wanted. As you might expect, this type
of speech is usually used by males or very tough females.
Examples
1. つうか、なんでお前がここにいんのよ!
Or rather, why are you here?!
2. 宿題で時間がないつってんのに、みきちゃんとデートしにいったらしい。
Although he's saying he doesn't have time due to homework, I hear he went on a date with Mikichan.
198
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.17. CASUAL PATTERNS AND SLANG
3. 明⽇は試験だぞ。つっても、勉強はしてないだろうな。
Yo, tomorrow's the test. Even if I say that, you probably didn't study anyway, huh?
4. だから、違うんだつうの!
Like I said, you're wrong!
If you want even more emphasis, you can even add a small 「つ」. This usually means you are really at
the brink of your patience.
• だから、違うんだっつうの!
Like I said, you're wrong!
4.17.5
Using 「ってば」 and 「ったら」to show exasperation
Vocabulary
1. もう - already
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. あなた - you
4. いつも - always
5. 忘れる【わす・れる】(ru-verb) - to forget
「ってば」and「ったら」is yet another type of abbreviation for「という」similar to「って」as discussed
in the defining and describing section. In this case, it's an abbreviation of the conditional form of 「とい
う」, which is 「といえば」 and 「といったら」. By using this abbreviation, you are essentially saying
something along the lines of, "If I told you once, I told you a million times!" You can use this expression
when you tired of repeating yourself or when you are exasperated with somebody for not listening to you.
Examples
1. もう⾏くってば!
I told you I'm going already!
2. あなたったら、いつも忘れるんだから。
You're always forgetting.
4.17.6
Using 「なんか」 just about everywhere
Vocabulary
1. 何【なに/なん】- what
199
4.17. CASUAL PATTERNS AND SLANG
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
2. ⾷べる【たべ・る】(ru-verb) - to eat
3. 今⽇【きょう】- today
4. 忙しい【いそが・しい】(i-adj) - busy
5. ⾵呂【ふ・ろ】- bath
6. 超【ちょう】- super
7. 気持ち【き・も・ち】- feeling
8. いい (i-adj) - good
9. お⺟さん【お・かあ・さん】- mother (polite)
10. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
11. 戻る【もど・る】(u-verb) - to return
12. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
13. こと - event, matter
14. 本当【ほん・とう】- real
15. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
By now, you're probably aware that 「何」 can be either read as 「なに」 or 「なん」 depending on
what comes after it such as 「何⾊」(なにいろ) versus 「何⼈」(なんにん). In the case of 「何か」,
while 「なにか」 is the correct reading, it is often contracted to just 「なんか」 in casual speech.
• なにか⾷べる?
Eat something?
• なんか⾷べる?
Eat something?
However, 「なんか」 also has a function similar to the word "like" in English. By "like", I'm not talking
about the actual word but the kind that has no meaning and some people use just about anywhere in the
sentence. Similarly, 「なんか」 can also be used as a filler without any actual meaning. For instance,
take a look at the example below.
• 今⽇は、なんか忙しいみたいよ。
I guess he's like busy today.
While 「なんか」 is a shorter version of 「なにか」, only 「なんか」 can be used in this way as a filler.
• 今⽇は、なにか忙しいみたいよ。
(「なにか」 cannot be used as a filler word.)
Let's take a look at a few more examples.
200
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.17. CASUAL PATTERNS AND SLANG
Examples
1. なんかね。お⾵呂って超気持ちいいよね!
Like, baths feel really good, huh?
2. お⺟さんが、なんか明⽇まで戻らないんだってよ。
Mom said she's not coming back until like tomorrow.
3. なんかさ。ボブは、私のことなんか本当に好きかな?
-Hey like, do you really think that Bob likes somebody like me?
4.17.7
Showing contempt for an action with 「〜やがる」
Vocabulary
1. あんな - that sort of
2. 奴【やつ】- guy (derogatory)
3. 負ける【ま・ける】(ru-verb) - to lose
4. どう - how
5. する (exception) - to do
6. やる (u-verb) - to do
7. 気【き】- mood; intent
8. さっさと - quickly
9. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
「やがる」 is a verb suffix used to indicate hatred or contempt for the person doing the action. Unlike the
rest of the slang covered here, this extremely strong language is not used in normal, everyday conversations. You will probably never hear this expression outside of movies, comic books, games, and the
like. However, it is covered here so that you can understand when it is used in those mediums.
In order to use「やがる」, you simply attach it to the stem of the verb. After that,「やがる」is conjugated
just like a regular u-verb.
Examples
1. あんなやつに負けやがって。じゃ、どうすんだよ?
Losing to a guy like that. Well, what are you going to do?
2. やる気か?だったらさっさと来やがれ!
You want to fight? If so, then hurry up and come on!
201
4.18. MORE SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.18 More sentence-ending particles
We are coming to the end of the fourth major section of the guide. Do you feel like your Japanese has
improved? We've come to the point where we've learned enough conjugations to be able to start mixing
them together in various useful combinations. Of course this can be a little difficult to do without some
practice, which is the reason for this lesson. But first, since we've come to the end of yet another section,
let's learn some more sentence-endings particles.
4.18.1
「な」 and 「さ」 sentence-ending particles
Vocabulary
1. あのう/あの - say; well; errr
2. うん - yes (casual)
3. この - this (abbr. of これの)
4. 間【あいだ】- space (between); time (between); period
5. ディズニーランド - Disney Land
6. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
7. すごい (i-adj) - to a great extent
8. 込む【こ・む】(u-verb) - to become crowded
9. 何【なに/なん】- what
10. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
11. 今【いま】- now
12. 図書館【と・しょ・かん】- library
13. 何で【なん・で】- why; how
14. ⽇本語【に・ほん・ご】- Japanese (language)
15. たくさん - a lot (amount)
16. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
17. する (exception) - to do
18. まだ - yet
19. 全然【ぜん・ぜん】- not at all (when used with negative)
20. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
21. ⼤丈夫【だい・じょう・ぶ】(na-adj) - ok
202
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.18. MORE SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
22. なる (u-verb) - to become
23. いい (i-adj) - good
24. 今⽇【きょう】- today
25. ⾬【あめ】- rain
26. 降る【ふ・る】(u-verb) - to precipitate
27. ⼤学【だい・がく】- college
After the 「よ」 and 「ね」 , 「さ」 and 「な」 are the next most commonly used sentence-ending
particles.
「さ」, which is basically a very casual form of 「よ」, is similar to the English "like" in that some people
throw it in at the end of almost every single phrase. Of course, that doesn't mean it's necessarily a very
sophisticated manner of speech but just like using "like" all the time, I cannot deny that it is an easy habit
to fall into. In that sense, due to its over-use, it has almost lost any specific meaning. You may overhear
a conversation like the following:
A:あのさ・・・
A: Hey...
B:うん。
B: Yeah.
A:この間さ・・・
A: This one time...
B:うん。
B: Yeah.
A:ディズニーランドに⾏ったんだけどさ、なんかさ、すごい込んでて・・・
A: I went to Disney Land and it was really crowded...
B:うん
B: Uh huh.
A:何もできなくてさ・・・
A: Couldn't do anything, you know...
And it goes on like this, sometimes the other person might break in to say something related to the topic.
You can use 「な」 in place of 「ね」 when it sounds too soft and reserved for what you want to say
or for the audience you are speaking to. Its rough sound generally applies to the male gender but is not
necessarily restricted to only males.
203
4.18. MORE SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
Example 1
洋介:今、図書館に⾏くんだよな。
Yousuke: You are going to the library now huh? (seeking explanation)
智⼦:うん、なんで?
Tomoko: Yeah, why?
Example 2
ボブ:⽇本語は、たくさん勉強したけどな。まだ全然わからない。
Bob: I studied Japanese a lot, right? But, I still don't get it at all.
アリス:⼤丈夫よ。きっとわかるようになるからさ。
Alice: No problem. You'll become able to understand for sure, you know?
ボブ:ならいいけどな。
Bob: If so, it would be good.
The 「な」 sentence-ending particle is often used with the question marker 「か」 to indicate that the
speaker is considering something.
1. 今⽇は⾬が降るかな?
I wonder if it'll rain today.
2. いい⼤学に⾏けるかな?
I wonder if I can go to a good college.
4.18.2
「かい」 and 「だい」 sentence-ending particles
Vocabulary
1. おい - hey
2. どこ - where
3. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
4. 呼ぶ【よ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to call
5. いい (i-adj) - good
6. ⼀体【いったい】- forms an emphatic question (e.g. "why on earth?")
7. 何時【なん・じ】- what time
8. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
204
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.18. MORE SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
9. つもり - intention, plan
10. 俺【おれ】- me; myself; I (masculine)
11. ⼟曜⽇【ど・よう・び】- Saturday
12. 映画【えい・が】- movie
13. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
14. ⼀緒【いっ・しょ】- together
「かい」 and 「だい」 are strongly masculine sentence endings for asking questions. 「かい」 is used
for yes/no questions while 「だい」 is used for open-ended questions.
Examples
1. おい、どこに⾏くんだい?
Hey, where are (you) going?
2. さきちゃんって呼んでもいいかい?
Can (I) call you Saki-chan?
3. ⼀体何時に帰ってくるつもりだったんだい?
What time were (you) planning on coming home exactly?
4. 俺は⼟曜⽇、映画を⾒に⾏くけど、⼀緒に⾏くかい?
I'm going to see a movie Saturday, go together?
4.18.3
Gender-specific sentence-ending particles
These sentence-ending particles are primarily used just to emphasize something and doesn't really have
a meaning per se. However, they can make your statements sound much stronger and/or very genderspecific. Using 「わ」 is just like 「よ」 except it will make you sound very feminine (this is a different
sound from the 「わ」 used in Kansai dialect). 「かしら」 is also a very feminine version of 「かな」
, which we just went over. 「ぞ」 and 「ぜ」 are identical to 「よ」 except that it makes you sound
"cool" and manly, or at least, that is the intent. These examples may not be very helpful without actually
hearing what they sound like.
Vocabulary
1. もう - already
2. 時間【じ・かん】- time
3. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
4. おい - hey
205
4.18. MORE SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
5. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
6. これ - this
7. 終わり【お・わり】- end
8. いい (i-adj) - good
9. ⼤学【だい・がく】- college
10. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
1. もう時間がないわ。
There is no more time.
2. おい、⾏くぞ!
Hey, we're going!
3. これで、もう終わりだぜ。
With this, it's over already.
4. いい⼤学に⼊れるかしら?
I wonder if I can enter a good college.
4.18.4
That's a wrap!
Vocabulary
1. 加賀【か・が】- Kaga (last name)
2. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
3. ちょっと - a little
4. 質問【しつ・もん】- question
5. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
6. いい (i-adj) - good
7. はい - yes (polite)
8. ⽇本語【に・ほん・ご】- Japanese (language)
9. 何【なに/なん】- what
10. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
11. そう - (things are) that way
12. ⼤体【だい・たい】- mostly
13. こんにちは - good day
206
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.18. MORE SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
14. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
15. ただし - however
16. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
17. 時【とき】- time
18. 他【ほか】- other
19. 表現【ひょう・げん】- expression
20. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
21. これ - this
22. 覚える【おぼ・える】(ru-verb) - to memorize
23. 朝【あさ】- morning
24. おはよう - good morning
25. でも - but
26. 上【うえ】- above
27. ⼈【ひと】- person
28. おはようございます - good morning (polite)
29. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
30. 間違える【ま・ちが・える】(ru-verb) - to make a mistake
31. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
32. なる (u-verb) - to become
33. 洋介【よう・すけ】- Yousuke (first name)
34. あのう/あの - say; well; errr
35. 英語【えい・ご】- English (language)
36. 教える【おし・える】(ru-verb) - to teach; to inform
37. もらう (u-verb) - to receive
38. もし - if by any chance
39. 時間【じ・かん】- time
40. うん - yes (casual)
41. アメリカ - America
42. 留学【りゅう・がく】- study abroad
43. する (exception) - to do
44. 去年【きょ・ねん】- last year
207
4.18. MORE SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
45. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
46. お⾦【お・かね】- money
47. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
48. いつ - when
49. 欲しい【ほ・しい】(i-adj) - wanted; desirable
50. 来週【らい・しゅう】- next week
51. ⽊曜⽇【もく・よう・び】- Thursday
52. ありがとう - thank you
53. 怠ける【なま・ける】(ru-verb) - to neglect, to be lazy about
54. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
55. そんな - that sort of
56. こと - event, matter
We learned quite a lot of things in this section. Let's try to put it all together by seeing how different kinds
of conjugations are used in different combinations. This is of course by no means an exhaustive list but
merely an illustration of how we can use what we learned in various combinations to create a lot of useful
expressions.
Example 1
アリス:加賀先⽣、ちょっと質問を聞いてもいいですか?
加賀先⽣:はい、いいですよ。
アリス:「Hello」を⽇本語で何と⾔えばいいですか。
何と⾔えば = quoted sub-clause + if conditional of ⾔う
加賀先⽣:そうね。⼤体、「こんにちは」と⾔うと思いますよ。ただし、書く時は「こんにちわ」じゃ
なくて、「こんにちは」と書かなくてはなりません。
「と⾔うと思います」 = quoted sub-clause + quoted sub-clause
「じゃなくて」 = negative sequence of states
アリス:そうですか。他に何かいい表現はありますか。
加賀先⽣:これも覚えといてね。朝は、「おはよう」と⾔うの。でも、上の⼈には「おはようございま
す」と⾔ってください。
「覚えといて」 - 覚える +
abbreviated form of 〜ておく + casual 〜てください with ください dropped.
アリス:はい、分かりました。間違えないようにします。いい勉強になりました!
208
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
4.18. MORE SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
Literal translation of Example 1
Alice: Kaga-sensei, is it ok to ask you a question?
Kaga-sensei: Yes, it's ok.
Alice: If you say what for "hello" in Japanese, is it ok?
Kaga-sensei: Well, mostly, I think people say "konnichiwa". Only, when you write it, you must write
"konnichiha" and not "konnichiwa".
Alice: Is that so? Are there any other good expressions?
Kaga-sensei: Please memorize this too (in preparation for the future). In the morning, everybody says,
"ohayou". But, please say, "ohayou-gozaimasu" to a higher person.
Alice: Yes, I understood. I'll do in the manner of not making mistake. It became good study!
Interpretative translation of Example 1
Alice: Kaga-sensei, is it ok to ask you a question?
Kaga-sensei: Sure.
Alice: How do you say "Hello" in Japanese?
Kaga-sensei: Well, most of the time, I think people say "konnichiwa". Only, when you write it, you must
write "konnichiha" and not "konnichiwa".
Alice: Is that so? Are there any other good expressions?
Kaga-sensei: You should know this too. In the morning, everybody says, "ohayou". But, please say,
"ohayou-gozaimasu" to a higher person.
Alice: Ok, I got it. I'll try not to make that mistake. That was very informative!
Example 2
洋介:お!アリスだ。あのね、質問を聞いてもいい?
アリス:何?
洋介:ちょっと英語を教えてもらいたいんだけどさ、もし時間があれば、教えてくれない?
「教えてもらいたい」 = receiving favor + to want (たい)
アリス:え?英語を勉強するの?
洋介:うん、アメリカで留学してみたいなと思ってね。去年も⾏こうとしたけど、お⾦がなくて・・・
「してみたいなと思って」= to try something out (〜てみる) + want to (たい) + な sentence-ending particle
+ quoted subquote + te-form of 思う
「⾏こうとした」 = volitional of ⾏く + to attempt (とする)
アリス:そうなの?いいよ。いつ教えてほしいの?
洋介:いつでもいいよ。
アリス:じゃ、来週の⽊曜⽇からはどう?
洋介:うん、いいよ。ありがとう!
アリス:勉強を怠けたり、来なかったり、しないでね。
209
4.18. MORE SENTENCE-ENDING PARTICLES
CHAPTER 4. ESSENTIAL GRAMMAR
「怠けたり来なかったりしないで」 = List of actions (〜たりする) + negative request of する.
洋介:そんなことしないよ!
Literal translation of Example 2
Yousuke: Oh! It's Alice. Hey, is it ok to ask a question?
Alice: What?
Yousuke: I want to receive the favor of you teaching English and if, by any chance, you have time, will
you give the favor of teaching?
Alice: Huh? You are going to study English?
Yousuke: Yeah, I was thinking that I want to try studying abroad in America. I tried to make motion toward
going last year too but, without money...
Alice: Is that so? It's good. When do you want me to teach you?
Yousuke: Anytime is good.
Alice: Then what about from next week Thursday?
Yousuke: Yeah, ok. Thanks!
Alice: Don't do things like shirk on your studies or not come, ok?
Yousuke: I won't do anything like that!
Interpretative translation of Example 2
Yousuke: Oh! It's Alice. Hey, can I ask you a question?
Alice: What up?
Yousuke: I want to learn English so if you have time, can you teach me?
Alice: Huh? You're going to study English?
Yousuke: Yeah, I was thinking about studying abroad in America. I tried going last year too but I didn't
have the money.
Alice: Really? No problem. When do you want me to teach you?
Yousuke: Anytime is fine.
Alice: What about from next week Thursday then?
Yousuke: OK, thanks!
Alice: You're not going to shirk on your studies or not come or anything right?
Yousuke: I won't do anything like that!
210
Chapter 5
Special Expressions
I have decided to call this next section "Special Expressions" only because with the exception of the
first few lessons, most of the grammar here applies to more specific areas than the grammar we have
covered so far. These special expressions, while individually not vital, are, as a collection, necessary for
regular everyday conversations. We are slowly entering the stage where we've built the toolbox and we
now need to acquire the little tools that will make the toolbox complete. Now that we covered most of the
base, it is time to look at all the little itty gritty bits. You are welcome to skip around the lessons, however;
the examples will assume that you have gone over all previous sections.
5.1
Causative and Passive Verbs
We will now learn the last two major types of verb conjugations: causative and passive forms. These two
verb conjugations are traditionally covered together because of the notorious causative-passive combination. We will now go over what all these things are and how they are used.
5.1.1
Causative Verbs
Vocabulary
1. あげる (ru-verb) - to give; to raise
2. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
3. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
4. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
5. 着る【き・る】(ru-verb) - to wear
6. 信じる【しん・じる】(ru-verb) - to believe
211
5.1. CAUSATIVE AND PASSIVE VERBS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
7. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
8. 起きる【お・きる】(ru-verb) - to wake; to occur
9. 出る【で・る】(ru-verb) - to come out
10. 掛ける【か・ける】(ru-verb) - to hang
11. 捨てる【す・てる】(ru-verb) - to throw away
12. 調べる【しら・べる】(ru-verb) - to investigate
13. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
14. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
15. 泳ぐ【およ・ぐ】(u-verb) - to swim
16. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
17. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
18. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
19. 直る【なお・る】(u-verb) - to be fixed
20. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
21. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
22. する (exception) - to do
23. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
24. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
25. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
26. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
27. たくさん - a lot (amount)
28. 質問【しつ・もん】- question
29. 今⽇【きょう】- today
30. 仕事【し・ごと】- job
31. 休む【やす・む】(u-verb) - to rest
32. その - abbreviation of 「それの」
33. 部⻑【ぶ・ちょう】- section manager
34. いい (i-adj) - good
35. ⻑時間【ちょう・じ・かん】- long period of time
36. 働く【はたら・く】(u-verb) - to work
37. トイレ - bathroom; toilet
212
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.1. CAUSATIVE AND PASSIVE VERBS
38. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
Verbs conjugated into the causative form are used to indicate an action that someone makes happen.
Like Captain Picard so succinctly puts it, the causative verb means to "make it so". This verb is usually
used in the context of making somebody do something. The really confusing thing about the causative
verb is that it can also mean to let someone do something. Or maybe this is a different type of verb with
the exact same conjugation rules. Whichever the case may be, a verb in the causative form can mean
either making or letting someone do something. The only good news is that when the causative form is
used with 「あげる」 and 「くれる」, it almost always means to "let someone do". Once you get used
to it, surprisingly, it becomes quite clear which meaning is being used when.
1. 全部⾷べさせた。
Made/Let (someone) eat it all.
2. 全部⾷べさせてくれた。
Let (someone) eat it all.
Causative Conjugation Rules
Here are the conjugation rules for the causative form. All causative verbs become ru-verbs.
• For ru-verbs: Replace the last 「る」 with 「させる」.
• For u-verbs: Change the last character as you would for negative verbs but attach「せる」instead
.
of 「ない」.
• Exception Verbs:
1. 「する」 becomes 「させる」
2. 「くる」 becomes 「こさせる」.
Sample ru-verbs
Plain
Causative
⾷べる ⾷べさせる
着る
着させる
信じる 信じさせる
寝る
寝させる
起きる 起きさせる
出る
出させる
掛ける 掛けさせる
捨てる 捨てさせる
調べる 調べさせる
Sample u-verbs
Plain Causative
話す
話させる
聞く
聞かせる
泳ぐ
泳がせる
遊ぶ
遊ばせる
待つ
待たせる
飲む
飲ませる
直る
直らせる
死ぬ
死なせる
買う
買わせる
213
Exception Verbs
Positive Causative
する
させる
くる
こさせる
5.1. CAUSATIVE AND PASSIVE VERBS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Examples
Here are some examples using the causative verb. Context will usually tell you which is being meant,
but for our purposes we will assume that when the verb is used with 「あげる」 and 「くれる」(くださ
い) it means "to let someone do" while it means, "to make someone do" when used without it.
1. 先⽣が学⽣に宿題をたくさんさせた。
Teacher made students do lots of homework.
2. 先⽣が質問をたくさん聞かせてくれた。
Teacher let (someone) ask lots of questions.
3. 今⽇は仕事を休ませてください。
Please let me rest from work today. (Please let me take the day off today.)
4. その部⻑は、よく⻑時間働かせる。
That manager often makes (people) work long hours.
When asking for permission to let someone do something, it is more common to use the 「〜てもいい」
grammar.
1. トイレに⾏かせてくれますか。
Can you let me go to the bathroom? (Sounds like a prisoner, even in English)
2. トイレに⾏ってもいいですか。
Is it ok to go to the bathroom? (No problem here)
A Shorter Alternative
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. する (exception) - to do
4. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
5. 同じ【おな・じ】- same
6. こと - event, matter
7. 何回【なん・かい】- how many times
8. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
9. お腹【お・なか】- stomach
214
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.1. CAUSATIVE AND PASSIVE VERBS
10. 空く【あ・く】(u-verb) - to become empty
11. 何【なに/なん】- what
12. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
There is a shorter version of the causative conjugation, which I will go over for completeness. However,
since this version is mostly used in very rough slang, you are free to skip this section until you've had time
to get used to the regular form. Also, textbooks usually don't cover this version of the causative verb.
The key difference in this version is that all verbs become an u-verbs with a 「す」 ending. Therefore,
the resulting verb would conjugate just like any other u-verb ending in 「す」 such as 「話す」 or 「指
す」. The first part of the conjugation is the same as the original causative form. However, for ru-verbs,
instead of attaching 「させる」, you attach 「さす」 and for u-verbs, you attach 「す」 instead of 「せ
る」. As a result, all the verbs become an u-verb ending in 「す」.
Shortened Causative Form
• This form is rarely used so you may just want to stick with the more traditional version of the
causative form.
– For ru-verbs: Replace the last 「る」 with 「さす」.
Example
⾷べる → ⾷べさす
– For u-verbs: Change the last character. as you would for negative verbs but attach 「す」
instead of 「ない」.
Example
⾏く → ⾏か → ⾏かす
– Exception Verbs:
1. 「する」 becomes 「さす」
2. 「くる」 becomes 「こさす」
Examples
1. 同じことを何回も⾔わすな!
Don't make me say the same thing again and again!
2. お腹空いているんだから、なんか⾷べさしてくれよ。
I'm hungry so let me eat something.
215
5.1. CAUSATIVE AND PASSIVE VERBS
5.1.2
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Passive Verbs
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. 着る【き・る】(ru-verb) - to wear
3. 信じる【しん・じる】(ru-verb) - to believe
4. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
5. 起きる【お・きる】(ru-verb) - to wake; to occur
6. 出る【で・る】(ru-verb) - to come out
7. 掛ける【か・ける】(ru-verb) - to hang
8. 捨てる【す・てる】(ru-verb) - to throw away
9. 調べる【しら・べる】(ru-verb) - to investigate
10. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
11. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
12. 泳ぐ【およ・ぐ】(u-verb) - to swim
13. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
14. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
15. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
16. 直る【なお・る】(u-verb) - to be fixed
17. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
18. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
19. する (exception) - to do
20. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
21. ポリッジ - porridge
22. 誰【だれ】- who
23. 皆【みんな】- everybody
24. 変【へん】(na-adj) - strange
25. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
26. 光【ひかり】- light
27. 速い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast
28. 超える【こ・える】(ru-verb) - to exceed
216
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.1. CAUSATIVE AND PASSIVE VERBS
29. 不可能【ふ・か・のう】- impossible
30. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
31. この - this (abbr. of これの)
32. 教科書【きょう・か・しょ】- textbook
33. 多い【おお・い】(i-adj) - numerous
34. ⼈【ひと】- person
35. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
36. 外国⼈【がい・こく・じん】- foreigner
37. 質問【しつ・もん】- question
38. 答える【こた・える】(ru-verb) - to answer
39. パッケージ - package
40. あらゆる - all
41. 含む【ふく・む】(u-verb) - to include
Passive verbs are verbs that are done to the (passive) subject. Unlike English style of writing which
discourages the use of the passive form, passive verbs in Japanese are often used in essays and articles.
Passive Conjugation Rules
All passive verbs become ru-verbs.
• For ru-verbs: Replace the last 「る」 with 「られる」
• For u-verbs: Change the last character as you would for negative verbs but attach「れる」instead
.
of 「ない」.
• Exception Verbs:
1. 「する」 becomes 「される」
2. 「くる」 becomes 「こられる」
217
5.1. CAUSATIVE AND PASSIVE VERBS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Sample ru-verbs
Plain
Passive
⾷べる ⾷べられる
着る
着られる
信じる 信じられる
寝る
寝られる
起きる 起きられる
出る
出られる
掛ける 掛けられる
捨てる 捨てられる
調べる 調べられる
Exception Verbs
Positive Passive
する
される
くる
こられる
Sample u-verbs
Plain Passive
話す 話される
聞く 聞かれる
泳ぐ 泳がれる
遊ぶ 遊ばれる
待つ 待たれる
飲む 飲まれる
直る 直られる
死ぬ 死なれる
買う 買われる
Examples
1. ポリッジが誰かに⾷べられた!
The porridge was eaten by somebody!
2. みんなに変だと⾔われます。
I am told by everybody that (I'm) strange.
3. 光の速さを超えるのは、不可能だと思われる。
Exceeding the speed of light is thought to be impossible.
4. この教科書は多くの⼈に読まれている。
This textbook is being read by a large number of people.
5. 外国⼈に質問を聞かれたが、答えられなかった。
I was asked a question by a foreigner but I couldn't answer.
6. このパッケージには、あらゆるものが含まれている。
Everything is included in this package.
5.1.3
Using passive form to show politeness
Vocabulary
1. どう - how
2. する (exception) - to do
3. 領収証【りょう・しゅう・しょう】- receipt
4. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
5. 会議【かい・ぎ】- meeting
6. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
218
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.1. CAUSATIVE AND PASSIVE VERBS
While we will go over various types of grammar that express a politeness level above the normal -masu/desu forms in the next lesson, it is useful to know that using passive form is another more polite way to
express an action. In Japanese, a sentence is usually more polite when it is less direct. For example, it
is more polite to refer to someone by his or her name and not by the direct pronoun "you". It is also more
polite to ask a negative question than a positive one. (For example, 「しますか?」 vs. 「しませんか?」
) In a similar sense, using the passive form makes the sentence less direct because the subject does not
directly perform the action. This makes it sound more polite. Here is the same sentence in increasing
degrees of politeness.
1. どうする?- What will you do? (lit: How do?)
2. どうしますか?- Regular polite.
3. どうされますか?- Passive polite.
4. どうなさいますか?- Honorific (to be covered next lesson)
5. どうなさいますでしょうか?- Honorific + a lesser degree of certainty.
Notice how the same sentence grows longer and longer as you get more and more indirect.
Examples
1. 領収証はどうされますか?
What about your receipt? (lit: How will you do receipt?)
2. 明⽇の会議に⾏かれるんですか?
Are you going to tomorrow's meeting?
5.1.4
Causative-Passive Forms
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. 朝ご飯【あさ・ご・はん】- breakfast
4. ⽇本【に・ほん】- Japan
5. お酒【お・さけ】- alcohol
6. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
7. こと - event, matter
8. 多い【おお・い】(i-adj) - numerous
219
5.1. CAUSATIVE AND PASSIVE VERBS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
9. あいつ - that guy (derogatory)
10. 〜時間【〜じ・かん】- counter for span of hour(s)
11. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
12. 親【おや】- parent
13. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
14. する (exception) - to do
The causative-passive form is simply the combination of causative and passive conjugations to mean that
the action of making someone do something was done to that person. This would effectively translate
into, "[someone] is made to do [something]". The important thing to remember is the order of conjugation.
The verb is first conjugated to the causative and then passive, never the other way around.
Causative-Passive Conjugation Form
The causative-passive verb is formed by first conjugating to the causative form and then by conjugating
the result to the passive form.
Examples
.
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べさせる → ⾷べさせられる
2. ⾏く → ⾏かせる → ⾏かせられる
Examples
1. 朝ご飯は⾷べたくなかったのに、⾷べさせられた。
Despite not wanting to eat breakfast, I was made to eat it.
2. ⽇本では、お酒を飲ませられることが多い。
In Japan, the event of being made to drink is numerous.
3. あいつに⼆時間も待たせられた。
I was made to wait 2 hours by that guy.
4. 親に毎⽇宿題をさせられる。
I am made to do homework everyday by my parent(s).
A Shorter Alternative
Vocabulary
1. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
220
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.1. CAUSATIVE AND PASSIVE VERBS
2. ⽴つ【た・つ】(u-verb) - to stand
3. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
4. 話す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to speak
5. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
6. 廊下【ろう・か】- hall, corridor
7. ⽇本【に・ほん】- Japan
8. お酒【お・さけ】- alcohol
9. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
10. こと - event, matter
11. 多い【おお・い】(i-adj) - numerous
12. あいつ - that guy (derogatory)
13. 〜時間【〜じ・かん】- counter for span of hour(s)
14. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
Going along with the shorter causative alternative, you can also use the same conjugation for the causativepassive form. I won't cover it in too much detail because the usefulness of this form is rather limited just
like the shorter causative form itself. The idea is to simply used the shortened causative form instead of
using the regular causative conjugation. The rest is the same as before.
Shortened causative-passive form examples
First conjugate to the shortened causative form. Then conjugate to the passive form.
Examples
.
1. ⾏く → ⾏か → ⾏かす → ⾏かされる
2. ⽴つ → ⽴た → ⽴たす → ⽴たされる
This form cannot be used in cases where the shorter causative form ends in 「さす」, in other words,
you can't have a 「さされる」 ending.
Verbs that cannot be used in this form
Examples of verbs you can't use in this form.
.
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べさす → ⾷べさされる
2. 話す → 話さす → 話さされる
221
5.2. HONORIFIC AND HUMBLE FORMS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Examples
1. 学⽣が廊下に⽴たされた。
The student was made to stand in the hall.
2. ⽇本では、お酒を飲まされることが多い。
In Japan, the event of being made to drink is numerous.
3. あいつに⼆時間も待たされた。
I was made to wait 2 hours by that guy.
5.2
Honorific and Humble Forms
Japanese can be roughly separated into three levels of politeness: casual, polite, and honorific/humble.
So far, we have already gone over the polite forms using 「〜です」 and 「〜ます」. We will now cover
the next level of politeness using honorific and humble forms. You will often hear this type of language
in any customer/consumer type situations such as fast food counters, restaurants, etc. For now, the first
thing to remember is that the speaker always considers himself/herself to be at the lowest level. So any
actions performed by oneself are in humble form while actions performed by anyone else seen from the
view of the speaker uses the honorific form.
5.2.1
Set Expressions
Vocabulary
1. する (exception) - to do
2. なさる - to do (honorific)
3. 致す【いた・す】(u-verb) - to do (humble)
4. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
5. いらっしゃる - to be; to go; to come (honorific)
6. おいでになる - to be; to go; to come (honorific)
7. 参る【まい・る】(u-verb) - to go; to come (humble)
8. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
9. おる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate) (humble)
10. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
11. ご覧になる【ご・らん・になる】- to see (honorific)
12. 拝⾒する【はい・けん・する】- to see (humble)
222
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.2. HONORIFIC AND HUMBLE FORMS
13. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
14. 伺う【うかが・う】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen (humble)
15. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
16. おっしゃる - to say (honorific)
17. 申す【もう・す】(u-verb) - to say (humble)
18. 申し上げる【もう・し・あ・げる】(u-verb) - to say (humble)
19. あげる (ru-verb) - to give; to raise
20. 差し上げる【さ・し・あ・げる】(ru-verb) - to give; to raise (humble)
21. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
22. 下さる【くだ・さる】- to give (honorific)
23. もらう (u-verb) - to receive
24. いただく (u-verb) - to receive; to eat; to drink (humble)
25. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
26. 召し上がる【め・し・あ・がる】(ru-verb) - to eat; to drink (honorific)
27. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
28. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
29. ご存じ【ご・ぞん・じ】- knowing (honorific)
30. 存じる【ぞん・じる】(ru-verb) - to know (humble)
31. ござる - to be (formal)
32. もう - already
33. 仕事【し・ごと】- job
34. 何【なに/なん】- what
35. 推薦状【すい・せん・じょう】- letter of recommendation
36. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
37. どちら - which way
38. 今⽇【きょう】- today
39. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
40. レポート - report
41. 失礼【しつ・れい】- discourtesy
223
5.2. HONORIFIC AND HUMBLE FORMS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
The difficult part of learning honorific and humble language is that there are a number of words that have
separate verbs for honorific and humble forms. Anything that does not have its own special expression
fall under the general rules of humble and honorific conjugations that we will cover next.
Plain
する
⾏く
来る
いる
⾒る
聞く
⾔う
あげる
くれる
もらう
⾷べる
飲む
知っている
Honorific and Humble Verbs
Honorific
Humble
なさる
致す
いらっしゃる/おいでになる
参る
いらっしゃる/おいでになる
参る
いらっしゃる/おいでになる
おる
ご覧になる
拝⾒する
-
伺う
おっしゃる
申す/申し上げる
-
差し上げる
下さる
-
-
いただく
召し上がる
いただく
召し上がる
いただく
ご存知 (です)
存じる
Honorific verbs with special conjugations
A number of these verbs do not follow the normal masu-conjugation rules and they include: 「なさる」、
「いらっしゃる」、「おっしゃる」、「下さる」、 and 「ござる」 (which we will soon cover). For all
masu-form tenses of these verbs, instead of the「る」becoming a「り」as it does with normal u-verbs,
it instead becomes an 「い」. All other conjugations besides the masu-form do not change from regular
u-verbs.
Plain
なさる
いらっしゃる
おっしゃる
下さる
ござる
ます -form
なさいます
いらっしゃいます
おっしゃいます
下さいます
ございます
ます -conjugations
Past ます -form
Negative ます -form
なさいました
なさいません
いらっしゃいました いらっしゃいません
おっしゃいました
おっしゃいません
下さいました
下さいません
ございました
ございません
Past-negative ます -form
なさいませんでした
いらっしゃいませんでした
おっしゃいませんでした
下さいませんでした
ございませんでした
Examples of honorific form
We can now begin to see that 「ください」 is just a special conjugation of 「下さる」 which is the
honorific version of 「くれる」 . Let's look at some actual examples. Since these examples are all
questions directed directly to someone (second person), they all use the honorific form.
1. アリスさん、もう召し上がりましたか。
Alice-san, did (you) eat already?
224
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.2. HONORIFIC AND HUMBLE FORMS
2. 仕事で何をなさっているんですか。
What are you doing at work?
3. 推薦状を書いてくださるんですか。
You're going to give me the favor of writing a recommendation letter?
4. どちらからいらっしゃいましたか。
Where did you come from?
5. 今⽇は、どちらへいらっしゃいますか。
Where are you going today?
Examples of humble form
The following examples are all actions done by the speaker so they all use the humble form.
1. 私はキムと申します。
As for me, (people) say Kim. (I am called Kim.)
2. 私が書いたレポートを⾒ていただけますか。
Will I be able to receive the favor of getting my report looked at?
3. 失礼致します。
Excuse me. (lit: I am doing a discourtesy.)
5.2.2
Other substitutions
Vocabulary
1. こちら - this way
2. 私【わたし】- me, myself, I
3. 部屋【へ・や】- room
4. ござる - to be (formal)
5. お⼿洗い【お・て・あら・い】- bathroom
6. この - this (abbr. of これの)
7. ビル - building
8. 〜階【〜かい】- counter for story/floor
9. いい (i-adj) - good
10. よろしい (i-adj) - good (formal)
11. 悪い【わる・い】(i-adj) - bad
225
5.2. HONORIFIC AND HUMBLE FORMS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
12. すいません - sorry (polite)
13. ごめん - sorry (casual)
14. ごめんなさい - sorry (polite)
15. すみません - sorry (polite)
16. 申し訳ありません【もう・し・わけ・ありません】- sorry (formal)
17. ⾔い訳【い・い・わけ】- excuse
18. 恐れ⼊ります【おそ・れ・い・ります】- sorry (formal)
19. 恐縮です【きょう・しゅく・です】- sorry (formal)
20. 〜様【〜さま】- honorific name suffix
21. 〜さん - polite name suffix
22. お客様【お・きゃく・さま】- customer (formal)
23. 神様【かみ・さま】- god (formal)
In addition to these set expressions, there are some words that also have more polite counterparts.
Probably the most important is the politer version of 「ある」, which is 「ござる」. This verb can be
used for both inanimate and animate objects. It is neither honorific nor humble but it is a step above 「あ
る」 in politeness. However, unless you want to sound like a samurai, 「ござる」 is always used in the
polite form: 「ございます」.
By extension, the politer version of 「です」 is 「でございます」 . This is essentially the masu-form
conjugation of 「でござる」, which comes from 「である」 literally meaning, "to exist as" (to be covered
much later).
Examples
1. こちらは、私の部屋です。
Over here is my room.
2. こちらは、私の部屋でございます。
This way is my room.
1. お⼿洗いはこのビルの⼆階にあります。
The bathroom is on the second floor of this building.
2. お⼿洗いはこのビルの⼆階にございます。
The bathroom is on the second floor of this building.
Other examples include 「いい」, which is more formally expressed as 「よろしい」. There are also
six different ways to say, "I'm sorry" (not counting 「悪いね」 or slight inflection changes like 「すいませ
ん」).
Successively politer expressions for apologizing:
226
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.2. HONORIFIC AND HUMBLE FORMS
1. ごめん。
2. ごめんなさい。
3. すみません。
4. 申し訳ありません。(申し訳 is the humble form of ⾔い訳)
5. 恐れ⼊ります。
6. 恐縮です。
In addition, the politest suffix for names is 「様」, one level above 「さん」. You won't be using this suffix
too often in actual speech even if you speak to that person in honorific/humble speech. However, expect
to use it when writing letters even to people you are somewhat familiar with. Also, service people such
as cashiers or waitresses/waiters will normally refer to the customer as 「お客様」. Of course, royalty
and deities are always accompanied by 「様」 such as 「神様」.
5.2.3
Honorific and Humble Conjugations
Vocabulary
1. お酒【お・さけ】- alcohol
2. お茶【お・ちゃ】- tea
3. お⾦【お・かね】- money
4. ⾳読み【おん・よ・み】- Chinese reading
5. 意⾒【い・けん】- opinion
6. ご飯【ご・はん】- rice; meal
7. 訓読み【くん・よ・み】- Japanese reading
8. 仕事【し・ごと】- job
9. お好み焼き【お・この・み・や・き】- okonomiyaki (Japanese-style pancake)
10. お⼟産【お・みやげ】- souvenir
11. 返事【へん・じ】- reply
12. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
13. ⾒える【み・える】(ru-verb) - to be visible
14. なる (u-verb) - to become
15. もう - already
16. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
227
5.2. HONORIFIC AND HUMBLE FORMS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
17. 店内【てん・ない】- store interior
18. 召し上がる【め・し・あ・がる】(ru-verb) - to eat; to drink (honorific)
19. ⼆重敬語【に・じゅう・けい・ご】- redundant honorific
20. 下さる【くだ・さる】- to give (honorific)
21. 少々【しょう・しょう】- just a minute; small quantity;
22. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
23. こちら - this way
24. ご覧下さい【ご・らん・くだ・さい】- please look (honorific)
25. 閉まる【し・まる】(u-verb) - to close
26. ドア - door
27. 注意【ちゅう・い】- caution
28. よろしい (i-adj) - good (formal)
29. 願う【ねが・う】(u-verb) - to wish; to request
30. する (exception) - to do
31. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
32. こと - event, matter
33. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
34. すみません - sorry (polite)
35. 千円【せん・えん】- 1,000 yen
36. 預かる【あず・かる】- to look after; to hold on to;
37. 致す【いた・す】(u-verb) - to do (humble)
For all other verbs without set expressions, there are conjugation rules to change them into honorific and
humble forms. They both involve a common practice of attaching a polite prefix 「御」 . In Japanese,
there is an practice of attaching an honorific prefix 「御」 to certain (not all) nouns to show politeness.
In fact, some words like 「お酒」、 「お茶」、or 「お⾦」 come with this prefix so often that it's become
practically the word itself. In general, 「御」 is written in hiragana as either 「ご」 for words read as ⾳
読み (e.g. ご意⾒、ご飯) or 「お」 for words read as 訓読み (e.g. お⾦、 お仕事). In fact, you may have
been using this prefix already without realizing it like 「お好み焼き」 or 「お⼟産」 . There are some
exceptions to this rule such as 「お返事」. Luckily since 「御」 is rarely written in kanji, identifying the
exceptions should not really be a problem.
Honorific Form
The honorific form of verbs that are not among the set honorific expressions given above can be formed
in two different ways.
228
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.2. HONORIFIC AND HUMBLE FORMS
Honorific Conjugation 1: お + stem + に + なる
This kind of makes sense if you think of it as a person becoming the honorific state of a verb. All subsequent conjugations follow the normal rules of conjugating the u-verb 「なる」. To be honest, this type of
sentence formulation is rarely used.
• 先⽣はお⾒えになりますか。
Have you seen the teacher?
Honorific Conjugation 2: お + stem + です
1. もうお帰りですか。
You're going home already?
2. 店内でお召し上がりですか。
Will you be dining in?
Service people want to be extra polite so they will often use this type of "double honorific" conjugation or
⼆重敬語 (in this case, the honorific 「召し上がる」 combined with the honorific conjugation). Whether
it's necessary or grammatically proper is another story.
Using 「ください」 with honorifics
You can also use 「下さい」 with a honorific verb by replacing 「になる」 with 「ください」. This is
useful for when you want to ask somebody to do something but still use a honorific verb.
Yet another often-used expression.
• 少々お待ちください。- Please wait a moment.
Similarly, with 「ご覧になる」, you simply replace 「になる」 with 「ください」.
• こちらにご覧下さい。
Please look this way.
This works for other nouns as well. For example, riding the trains...
• 閉まるドアにご注意下さい。
Please be careful of the closing doors.
229
5.2. HONORIFIC AND HUMBLE FORMS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Humble Form
Humble verbs are formed in the following fashion.
Humble Conjugation: お + stem + する
You've probably already heard the first example many times before but now you know exactly where it
comes from.
1. よろしくお願いします。
I properly make request.
2. 先⽣、お聞きしたいことがありますが。
Teacher, there's something I want to ask you.
3. すみません、お待たせしました。
Sorry, I made you wait (causative form).
4. 千円からお預かりいたします。
We'll be holding on [from?] your 1000 yen.
You'll hear something like example 4 when, for example, you need to get change after paying 1000 yen.
Again, the ⼆重敬語 where 「する」 has been converted to the humble 「致す」 form when it's already
in the お +stem+ する humble form. Some Japanese people complain that this makes no sense and that
「から」 should really be 「を」.
5.2.4
Making honorific requests
Vocabulary
1. 下さる【くだ・さる】- to give (honorific)
2. いらっしゃる - to be; to go; to come (honorific)
3. なさる - to do (honorific)
4. おっしゃる - to say (honorific)
5. する (exception) - to do
6. いらっしゃいませ - please come in (formal)
7. いらっしゃい - please come in
8. ありがとうございました - thank you (polite)
9. また - again
10. 越す【こ・す】- to go over
230
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.2. HONORIFIC AND HUMBLE FORMS
11. どうぞ - please
12. ゆっくり - slowly
We learned how to make polite requests using 「〜ください」 in a previous section and we just looked
at how to use honorific verbs with requests as well. However, there is yet another way to make requests
using honorific verbs. This grammar only applies to the honorific verbs with special 「〜ます」 conjugations that we just covered. This includes 「下さる」、「いらっしゃる」、「なさる」、and 「おっしゃ
る」. I've never actually seen this used with 「おっしゃる」, but it is grammatically possible.
Making requests for honorific actions
• Conjugate the honorific verb to the special masu-conjugation and replace the last「す」with「せ」
Examples
1. 下さる → 下さいます → 下さいませ
2. いらっしゃる → いらっしゃいます → いらっしゃいませ
.
• An abbreviated and less formal version of this is to simply remove the 「ます」 after conjugating
to the special masu-form
Examples
1. 下さる → 下さいます → 下さい
2. いらっしゃる → いらっしゃいます → いらっしゃい
Now you finally know where grammar such as 「しなさい」 and 「してください」 actually came from.
Let's look at a few quick examples.
Examples
You'll probably hear this one a million times every time you enter some kind of store in Japan.
• いらっしゃいませ。
Please come in!
However, a middle-aged sushi chef will probably use the abbreviated version.
• いらっしゃい!
Please come in!
Some more examples...
1. ありがとうございました。またお越しくださいませ。
Thank you very much. Please come again.
231
5.3. THINGS THAT HAPPEN UNINTENTIONALLY CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
2. どうぞ、ごゆっくりなさいませ。
Please take your time and relax.
5.3
Things that happen unintentionally (〜てしまう、 〜
ちゃう/〜じゃう)
This is the first of many useful tools that will become essential in your day-to-day conversations. We will
now learn how to express an action that has taken place unintentionally often with unsatisfactory results.
This is primarily done by the verb 「しまう」. Let's look at an example.
Vocabulary
1. 康介【こう・すけ】- Kousuke (first name)
2. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
3. やる (u-verb) - to do
4. しまう (u-verb) - to do something by accident; to finish completely
康介:宿題をやった?
Kousuke: Did you do homework?
アリス:しまった!
Alice: Oh no! (I screwed up!)
5.3.1
Using 「しまう」 with other verbs
Vocabulary
1. しまう (u-verb) - to do something by accident; to finish completely
2. その - that (abbr. of それの)
3. ケーキ - cake
4. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
5. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
6. 毎⽇【まい・にち】- everyday
7. キロ - kilo
8. 太る【ふと・る】(u-verb) - to become fatter
232
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS 5.3. THINGS THAT HAPPEN UNINTENTIONALLY
9. ちゃんと - properly
10. 痩せる【や・せる】(ru-verb) - to become thin
11. 結局【けっ・きょく】- eventually
12. 嫌【いや】(na-adj) disagreeable; unpleasant
13. こと - event, matter
14. する (exception) - to do
15. ごめん - sorry
16. 待つ【ま・つ】(u-verb) - to wait
17. ⾦⿂【きん・ぎょ】- goldfish
18. もう - already
19. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
When 「しまう」 is used in this sense, it is normal to attach it to the te-form of another verb to express
an action that is done or happened unintentionally. As is common with this type of grammar, the tense is
decided by the tense of 「しまう」.
1. そのケーキを全部⾷べてしまった。
Oops, I ate that whole cake.
2. 毎⽇ケーキを⾷べて、2キロ太ってしまいました。
I ate cake everyday and I (unintentionally) gained two kilograms.
3. ちゃんと⾷べないと、痩せてしまいますよ。
If you don't eat properly, you'll (unintentionally) lose weight you know.
4. 結局、嫌なことをさせてしまった。
In the end, I (unintentionally) made [someone] do something distasteful.
5. ごめん、待たせてしまって!
Sorry about (unintentionally) making you wait!
6. ⾦⿂がもう死んでしまった。
The goldfish died already (oops).
5.3.2
Using the casual version of 「〜てしまう」
Vocabulary
1. しまう (u-verb) - to do something by accident; to finish completely
2. ⾦⿂【きん・ぎょ】- goldfish
233
5.3. THINGS THAT HAPPEN UNINTENTIONALLY CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
3. もう - already
4. 死ぬ【し・ぬ】(u-verb) - to die
5. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
6. いい (i-adj) - good
7. 皆【みんな】- everybody
8. どっか - somewhere (abbr. of どこか)
9. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
10. そろそろ - gradually; soon
11. 遅い【おそ・い】(i-adj) - late
12. なる (u-verb) - to become
13. また - again
14. 遅刻【ち・こく】- tardiness
15. する (exception) - to do
16. ごめん - sorry
17. つい - just (now); unintentionally
18. お前【お・まえ】- you (casual)
19. 呼ぶ【よ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to call
In casual speech, the 「〜てしまう」 is often substituted by 「〜ちゃう」 while 「〜でしまう」 is
substituted by 「じゃう」. Both 「〜ちゃう」 and 「〜じゃう」 conjugate just like regular u-verbs.
1. ⾦⿂がもう死んじゃった。
The goldfish died already.
2. もう帰っちゃっていい?
Is it ok if I went home already?
3. みんな、どっか⾏っちゃったよ。
Everybody went off somewhere.
4. そろそろ遅くなっちゃうよ。
It'll gradually become late, you know.
There is yet another very colloquial version of 「〜てしまう」 and 「〜でしまう」 where it is replaced
by 「〜ちまう」 and 「〜じまう」 respectively. Unlike the cuter 「〜ちゃう」 and 「〜じゃう」 slang,
this version conjures a image of rough and coarse middle-aged man.
1. また遅刻しちまったよ。
Darn, I'm late again.
2. ごめん、ついお前を呼んじまった。
Sorry, I just ended up calling you unconsciously.
234
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.3.3
5.4. EXPRESSIONS WITH GENERIC NOUNS
Another meaning of 「しまう」
Vocabulary
1. しまう (u-verb) - to do something by accident; to finish completely
2. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
3. やる (u-verb) - to do
You may have noticed that 「しまう」 has another definition meaning "to finish something completely".
You may want to consider this a totally separate verb from the 「しまう」 we have covered so far.
Occasionally but not usually, 「しまう」 will have this meaning rather than the unintended action.
• 宿題をやってしまいなさい。
Finish your homework completely.
5.4
Special expressions with generic nouns (こと、ところ、
もの)
We've already learned how to use generic nouns in order to modify nouns. Now we will go over some
special expression used with generic nouns.
5.4.1
Using 「こと」 to say whether something has happened
Vocabulary
1. こと - event, matter
2. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
3. 徹夜【てつ・や】- staying up all night
4. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
5. する (exception) - to do
6. ⼀⼈【ひとり】- 1 person; alone
7. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
8. パリ - Paris
9. お寿司【お・す・し】- sushi
235
5.4. EXPRESSIONS WITH GENERIC NOUNS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
10. ⾷べる【たべ・る】(ru-verb) - to eat
11. ⽇本【に・ほん】- Japan
12. 映画【えい・が】- movie
13. 観る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to watch
14. ヨーロッパ - Europe
15. いい (i-adj) - good
16. そう - (things are) that way
17. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
18. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
19. 〜度【〜ど】- counter for number of times
When you combine 「こと」, the generic word for an event with 「ある」, you can talk about whether
an event exists or not.
Examples
1. 徹夜して、宿題することはある。
There are times when I do homework while staying up all night.
2. ⼀⼈で⾏くことはありません。
I never go by myself.
Using the past tense of the verb with 「こと」 , you can talk about whether an event has ever taken
place. This is essentially the only way you can say "have done" in Japanese so this is a very useful
expression. You need to use this grammar any time you want to talk about whether someone has ever
done something.
Examples
1. パリに⾏ったことはありますか。
Have you ever gone to Paris?
2. お寿司を⾷べたことがある。
I've had sushi before.
3. ⽇本の映画を観たことないの?
You've never seen a Japanese movie?
4. ヨーロッパに⾏ったことがあったらいいな。
It would be nice if I ever go to Europe.
236
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.4. EXPRESSIONS WITH GENERIC NOUNS
5. そういうのを⾒たことがなかった。
I had never seen anything like that.
6. ⼀度⾏ったこともないんです。
I've never gone, not even once.
5.4.2
Using 「ところ」 as an abstract place
Vocabulary
1. 所【ところ】- place
2. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
3. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
4. 映画【えい・が】- movie
5. 今【いま】- now
6. ちょうど - just right; exactly
7. いい - good
8. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
9. 優しい【やさ・しい】(i-adj) - gentle; kind
10. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
11. 授業【じゅ・ぎょう】- class
12. 終わる【お・わる】(u-verb) - to end
13. これ - this
14. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
「ところ」(所) is usually used to indicate a generic physical location. However, it can also hold a much
broader meaning ranging from a characteristic to a place in time.
Examples
1. 早くきて。映画は今ちょうどいいところだよ。
Come quickly. We're at the good part of the movie.
2. 彼は優しいところもあるよ。
His personality has some gentle parts too.
3. 今は授業が終ったところです。
Class has ended just now.
4. これから⾏くところでした。
I was just about to go from now.
237
5.5. EXPRESSING LEVELS OF CERTAINTY
5.4.3
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Using 「もの」 as a casual feminine way to emphasize
Vocabulary
1. 物【もの】- object
2. どうして - why
3. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
4. 授業【じゅ・ぎょう】- class
5. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
The generic object noun 「もの」 can be used as a casual and feminine way of emphasizing something.
This is identical to the explanatory feminine emphasis expressed by the 「の」 particle. Just like the
explanatory 「の」 particle, the 「の」 is often changed into 「ん」 resulting in 「もん」. Using 「もん」
sounds very feminine and a little cheeky (in a cute way).
Examples
• どうしてこなかったの?
Why didn't (you) come?
1. 授業があったの。
(I) had class. [feminine explanatory]
2. 授業があったもの。
(I) had class. [feminine explanatory]
3. 授業があったもん。
(I) had class, so there. [feminine explanatory]
5.5
Expressing various levels of certainty (かもしれない、
でしょう、だろう)
In general, Japanese people don't assert themselves of something unless they are absolutely sure that
it is correct. This accounts for the incredibly frequent use of 「〜と思う」 and the various grammatical
expressions used to express specific levels of certainty. We will go over these expressions starting from
the less certain to the most certain.
238
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.5.1
5.5. EXPRESSING LEVELS OF CERTAINTY
Using 「かもしれない」 to express uncertainty
Vocabulary
1. 多分【た・ぶん】- perhaps; probably
2. 映画【えい・が】- movie
3. 観る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to watch
4. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
5. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
6. それ - that
7. ⾯⽩い【おも・し・ろい】(i-adj) - interesting
8. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
9. 退屈【たい・くつ】- boredom
10. ⾷堂【しょく・どう】- cafeteria
11. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
12. ⾬【あめ】- rain
13. 試合【し・あい】- match, game
14. 中⽌【ちゅう・し】- cancellation
15. なる (u-verb) - to become
16. この - this (abbr. of これの)
17. 映画【えい・が】- movie
18. 〜回【〜かい】- counter for number of times
19. こと - event, matter
20. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
21. あそこ - over there
22. 代々⽊公園【よ・よ・ぎ・こう・えん】- Yoyogi park
23. もう - already
24. 逃げる【に・げる】(ru-verb) - to escape; to run away
「かもしれない」 is used to mean "maybe" or "possibly" and is less certain than the word 「多分」 .
It attaches to the end of a complete clause. For noun and na-adjective clauses, the declarative 「だ」
must be removed. It can also be written in kanji as 「かも知れない」 and you can treat it the same as a
negative ru-verb (there is no positive equivalent) so the masu-form would become 「かもしれません」.
239
5.5. EXPRESSING LEVELS OF CERTAINTY
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
In casual speech, it can be abbreviated to just 「かも」. There is also a very masculine version 「かも
しれん」, which is simply a different type of negative verb.
Expressing uncertainty with 「かもしれない」
• Simply attach 「かもしれない」 or 「かも知れない」 to the clause
Examples
1. 映画を観たかもしれない
2. 彼は学⽣かもしれない
3. それは⾯⽩いかもしれない
• Noun and na-adjective clauses must not use the
. declarative 「だ」
Examples
1. 先⽣だかもしれない → 先⽣かもしれない
2. 退屈だかもしれない → 退屈かもしれない
• It can be abbreviated to just 「かも」 in casual speech
Example
1. ⾯⽩いかもしれない → ⾯⽩いかも
Examples
1. スミスさんは⾷堂に⾏ったかもしれません。
Smith-san may have gone to the cafeteria.
2. ⾬で試合は中⽌になるかもしれないね。
The game may become canceled by rain, huh?
3. この映画は⼀回観たことあるかも!
I might have already seen this movie once.
4. あそこが代々⽊公園かもしれない。
That might be Yoyogi park over there.
5. もう逃げられないかもしれんぞ。
Might not be able to escape anymore, you know.
5.5.2
Using 「でしょう」 to express a fair amount of certainty (polite)
Vocabulary
1. 多分【た・ぶん】- perhaps; probably
240
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.5. EXPRESSING LEVELS OF CERTAINTY
2. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
3. ⾬【あめ】- rain
4. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
5. これ - this
6. どこ - where
7. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
8. 休む【やす・む】(u-verb) - to rest
9. いただく (u-verb) - to receive; to eat; to drink (humble)
「でしょう」 is used to express a level of some certainty and is close in meaning to 「多分」 . Just
like 「〜です/〜ます」, it must come at the end of a complete sentence. It does not have any other
conjugations. You can also replace 「〜ですか」 with 「〜でしょうか」 to make the question sound
slightly more polite and less assuming by adding a slight level of uncertainty.
Examples
1. 明⽇も⾬でしょう。
Probably rain tomorrow too.
2. 学⽣さんでしょうか。
Are (you) student?
3. これからどこへ⾏くんでしょうか?
Where (are you) going from here?
If you want to sound really, really polite, you can even add 「〜でしょうか」 to the end of a 「〜ます」
ending.
• 休ませていただけますでしょうか。- May I receive the favor of resting, possibly?
5.5.3
Using 「でしょう」 and 「だろう」 to express strong amount of
certainty (casual)
Vocabulary
1. 遅刻【ち・こく】- tardiness
2. する (exception) - to do
3. 時間【じ・かん】- time
241
5.5. EXPRESSING LEVELS OF CERTAINTY
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
4. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
5. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
6. これ - this
7. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
8. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
9. 掃除【そう・じ】- cleaning
10. ⼿伝う【て・つだ・う】(u-verb) - to help, to assist
11. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
12. そう - (things are) that way
13. どこ - where
14. もう - already
15. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
16. 家【1) うち; 2) いえ】- 1) one's own home; 2) house
17. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
The casual equivalent of 「でしょう」 is surprisingly enough 「でしょう」 . However, when you are
speaking in a polite manner, the 「でしょう」 is enunciated flatly while in casual speech, it has a rising
intonation and can be shortened to 「でしょ」 . In addition, since people tend to be more assertive in
casual situations, the casual version has a much stronger flavor often sounding more like, "See, I told
you so!"
Example 1
A:あっ!遅刻しちゃう!
A: Ah! We're going to be late!
B:だから、時間がないって⾔ったでしょう!
B: That's why I told you there was no time!
Example 2
A:これから⾷べに⾏くんでしょ。
A: You're going to eat from now aren't you?
B:だったら?
B: So what if I am?
242
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
Example 3
A:掃除、⼿伝ってくれるでしょう。
A: You're going to help me clean, right?
B:え?そうなの?
B: Huh? Is that so?
「だろう」 means essentially the same thing as 「でしょう」 except that it sounds more masculine and
is used mostly by males.
Example 4
A:アリスはどこだ?
A: Where is Alice?
B:もう寝ているだろう。
B: Probably sleeping already.
Example 5
A:もう家に帰るんだろう。
A: You're going home already, right?
B:そうよ。
B: That's right.
5.6
Expressing amounts (だけ、のみ、しか、ばかり、す
ぎる、Amount+ も、ほど、さ)
This lesson will cover various expressions used to express various degrees of amounts. For example,
sentences like, "I only ate one", "That was all that was left", "There's just old people here", or "I ate too
much" all indicate whether there's a lot or little of something. Most of these expressions are made with
particles and not as separate words as you see in English.
243
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
5.6.1
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Indicating that's all there is using 「だけ」
Vocabulary
1. りんご - apple
2. これ - this
3. それ - that
4. ⾷べる【たべ・る】(ru-verb) - to eat
5. この - this (abbr. of これの)
6. 歌【うた】- song
7. 歌う【うた・う】(u-verb) - to sing
8. その - that (abbr. of それの)
9. ⼈【ひと】- person
10. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
11. 販売機【はん・ばい・き】- vending machine
12. 五百円⽟【ご・ひゃく・えん・だま】- 500 yen coin
13. ⼩林【こ・ばやし】- Kobayashi (last name)
14. 返事【へん・じ】- reply
15. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
16. 準備【じゅん・び】- preparations
17. 終わる【お・わる】(u-verb) - to end
18. ここ - here
19. 名前【な・まえ】- name
20. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
21. いい (i-adj) - good
The particle 「だけ」 is used to express that that's all there is. Just like the other particles we have
already learned, it is directly attached to the end of whichever word that it applies to.
244
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
Examples
1. りんごだけ。
Just apple(s) (and nothing else).
2. これとそれだけ。
Just that and this (and nothing else).
When one of the major particles are also applied to a word, these particles must come after 「だけ」. In
fact, the ordering of multiple particles usually start from the most specific to the most general.
1. それだけは、⾷べないでください。
Just don't eat that. (Anything else is assumed to be OK).
2. この歌だけを歌わなかった。
Didn't sing just this song.
3. その⼈だけが好きだったんだ。
That person was the only person I liked.
The same goes for double particles. Again 「だけ」 must come first.
• この販売機だけでは、五百円⽟が使えない。
Cannot use 500 yen coin in just this vending machine.
With minor particles such as 「から」 or 「まで」, it is difficult to tell which should come first. When in
doubt, try googling to see the level of popularity of each combination. It turns out that 「からだけ」 is
almost twice as popular as 「だけから」 with a hit number of 90,000 vs. 50,000.
• ⼩林さんからだけは、返事が来なかった。
A reply has not come from only Kobayashi-san.
Unlike some particles, you can directly attach 「だけ」 to verbs as well.
1. 準備が終わったから、これからは⾷べるだけだ。
Since the preparations are done, from here we just have to eat.
2. ここに名前を書くだけでいいですか?
Is it ok to just write [my] name here?
245
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
5.6.2
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Using 「のみ」 as a formal version of 「だけ」
Vocabulary
1. この - this (abbr. of これの)
2. 乗⾞券【じょう・しゃ・けん】- passenger ticket
3. 発売【はつ・ばい】- sale
4. 当⽇【とう・じつ】- that very day
5. 有効【ゆう・こう】- effective
6. アンケート - survey
7. 対象【たい・しょう】- target
8. ⼤学⽣【だい・がく・せい】- college student
A particle that is essentially identical both grammatically and in meaning to「だけ」is「のみ」. However,
unlike 「だけ」, which is used in regular conversations, 「のみ」 is usually only used in a written context.
It is often used for explaining policies, in manuals, and other things of that nature. This grammar really
belongs in the advanced section since formal language has a different flavor and tone from what we have
seen so far. However, it is covered here because it is essentially identical to 「だけ」. Just googling for
「のみ」 will quickly show the difference in the type of language that is used with 「のみ」 as opposed to
「だけ」.
1. この乗⾞券は発売当⽇のみ有効です。
This boarding ticket is only valid on the date on which it was purchased.
2. アンケート対象は⼤学⽣のみです。
The targets of this survey are only college students.
5.6.3
Indication that there's nothing else using 「しか」
Vocabulary
1. これ - this
2. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
3. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
4. 今⽇【きょう】- today
5. 忙しい【いそが・しい】(i-adj) - busy
6. 朝ご飯【あさ・ご・はん】- breakfast
246
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
7. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
8. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
9. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
10. ううん - no (casual)
11. 何【なに】- what
12. もらう - to receive
13. 頑張る【がん・ば・る】(u-verb) - to try one's best
14. こう - (things are) this way
15. なる (u-verb) - to become
16. 逃げる【に・げる】(ru-verb) - to escape; to run away
17. もう - already
18. 腐る【くさ・る】(u-verb) - to rot; to spoil
19. 捨てる【す・てる】(ru-verb) - to throw away
I carefully phrased the title of this section to show that 「しか」 must be used to indicate the lack of
everything else. In other words, the rest of the sentence must always be negative.
• これしかない。
There's nothing but this.
The following is incorrect.
• これしか ある。
(Should be using 「だけ」 instead)
As you can see, 「しか」has an embedded negative meaning while 「だけ」doesn't have any particular
nuance.
1. これだけ⾒る。
See just this.
2. これだけ⾒ない。
Don't see just this.
3. これしか⾒ない。
Don't see anything else but this.
247
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Examples
• 今⽇は忙しくて、朝ご飯しか⾷べられなかった。
Today was busy and couldn't eat anything but breakfast.
Notice that unlike 「だけ」, it is necessary to finish off the sentence.
• 全部買うの?
You're buying everything?
1. ううん、これだけ。
Nah, just this.
2. ううん、これしか買わない
Nah, won't buy anything else but this.
3. ううん、 これしか。
(Wrong, the sentence must explicitly indicate the negative.)
While the major particles always come last, it turns out that 「しか」 must come after 「から」 and 「ま
で」. A google search of 「からしか」 beats 「しかから」 by an overwhelming 60,000 to 600.
• アリスからしか何ももらってない。
I didn't receive anything except from Alice.
You can also use this grammar with verbs.
1. これから頑張るしかない!
There's nothing to do but try our best!
2. こうなったら、逃げるしかない。
There no choice but to run away once it turns out like this.
3. もう腐っているから、捨てるしかないよ。
It's rotten already so there's nothing to do but throw it out.
「っきゃ」, an alternative to 「しか」
Vocabulary
1. これ - this
2. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
248
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
3. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
4. こう - (things are) this way
5. なる (u-verb) - to become
6. もう - already
7. やる (u-verb) - to do
「っきゃ」 is another version of 「しか」 that means essentially the same thing and works exactly the
same way. Just substitute 「しか」 with 「っきゃ」 and you're good to go. This version is a bit stronger
than 「しか」 in emphasis but it's not used nearly as often so I wouldn't worry about it too much. I briefly
cover it here just in case you do run into this expression.
Examples
1. これは買うっきゃない!
There's nothing but to buy this!
2. こうなったら、もうやるっきゃない!
If things turn out like this, there nothing to do but to just do it!
5.6.4
Expressing the opposite of 「だけ」 with 「ばかり」
Vocabulary
1. 何【なに/なん】- what
2. おばさん - middle-aged lady
3. 嫌【いや】(na-adj) disagreeable; unpleasant
4. 崇【たかし】- Takashi (first name)
5. 〜君【〜くん】- name suffix
6. 漫画【まん・が】- comic book
7. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
8. かっこ悪い【かっこ・わる・い】(i-adj) - unattractive; uncool
9. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
10. ⿇雀【マー・ジャン】- mahjong
11. 直美【なお・み】- Naomi (first name)
12. 遊ぶ【あそ・ぶ】(u-verb) - to play
249
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
13. 最近【さい・きん】- recent; lately
14. 仕事【し・ごと】- job
「ばかり」is used to express the condition where there's so much of something to the point where there's
nothing else. Notice this is fundamentally different from 「しか」 which expresses a lack of everything
else but the item in question. In more casual situations, 「ばかり」 is usually pronounced 「ばっかり」
or just 「ばっか」. For example, let's say you went to a party to find, much to your dismay, the whole
room filled with middle-aged women. You might say the following.
• 何だよ!おばさんばっかりじゃないか?
What the? Isn't it nothing but obasan?
Or perhaps a little more girly:
• いやだ。おばさんばっかり。
Eww. It's nothing but obasan.
Examples
• 崇君は漫画ばっかり読んでてさ。かっこ悪い。
Takashi-kun is reading nothing but comic books... He's so uncool.
It is quite common in casual speech to end midsentence like this. Notice 「読んでて」 is the te-form of
「読んでいる」 with the 「い」 dropped. We assume that the conclusion will come somewhere later in
the story.
1. 彼は⿇雀ばかりです。
He's nothing but mahjong. (He does nothing but play mahjong.)
2. 直美ちゃんと遊ぶばっかりでしょう!
You're hanging out with Naomi-chan all the time, aren't you!
3. 最近は仕事ばっかだよ。
Lately, it's nothing but work.
5.6.5
Saying there's too much of something using 「すぎる」
Vocabulary
1. 過ぎる【す・ぎる】(ru-verb) - to exceed; to pass
250
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
2. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
3. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
4. 太る【ふと・る】(u-verb) - to become fatter
5. 静か【しず・か】(na-adj) - quiet
6. ⼤きい【おお・きい】(i-adj) - big
7. ⾯⽩い【おも・しろ・い】(i-adj) - interesting
8. もったいない (i-adj) - wasteful
9. 情けない【なさ・けない】(i-adj) - pitiable
10. 危ない【あぶ・ない】(i-adj) - dangerous
11. 少ない【すく・ない】(i-adj) - few
12. 佐藤【さ・とう】- Satou (last name)
13. 料理【りょう・り】- cooking; cuisine; dish
14. 上⼿【じょう・ず】(na-adj) - skillful
15. また - again
16. お酒【お・さけ】- alcohol
17. 気【き】- mood; intent
18. つける - to attach
19. 気をつける - (expression) to be careful
20. トランク - trunk
21. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
22. 罠【わな】- trap
23. 時間【じ・かん】- time
24. ⾜りる【た・りる】(ru-verb) - to be sufficient
25. 何【なに】- what
26. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
27. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
28. 彼⼥【かの・じょ】- she; girlfriend
29. 昨晩【さく・ばん】- last night
30. こと - event, matter
31. 全然【ぜん・ぜん】- not at all (when used with negative)
32. 覚える【おぼ・える】(ru-verb) - to memorize
251
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
33. それ - that
「すぎる」 is a regular ru-verb written 「過ぎる」 meaning, "to exceed". When 「すぎる」 is attached
to the end of other verbs and adjectives, it means that it is too much or that it has exceeded the normal
levels. For verbs, you must directly attach 「すぎる」 to the stem of the verb. For example, 「⾷べすぎ
る」 means "to eat too much" and 「飲みすぎる」 means "to drink too much". For adjectives, you just
attach it to the end after you remove the last 「い」 from the i-adjectives (as usual). One more rule is
that for both negative verbs and adjectives, one must remove the 「い」 from 「ない」 and replace with
「さ」 before attaching 「すぎる」. There is no tense (past or non-past) associated with this grammar.
Since 「すぎる」 is a regular ru-verb, this grammar always results in a regular ru-verb.
Using 「すぎる」to indicate there's too much of something
• For verbs: First change the verb to the stem and attach 「すぎる」.
Examples
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べすぎる
2. 太る → 太り → 太りすぎる
• For na-adjectives: Attach「すぎる」. For i-adjectives, remove the last「い」first before attaching
「すぎる」.
Examples
1. 静か → 静かすぎる
2. ⼤きい → ⼤きすぎる
• For negative verbs and adjectives: Replace the last 「い」 from 「ない」 with 「さ」 and then
attach 「すぎる」
Examples
.
1. ⾷べない → ⾷べなさ → ⾷べなさすぎる
2. ⾯⽩くない → ⾯⽩くなさ→ ⾯⽩くなさすぎる
• I-adjectives that end in 「ない」 which incorporate the negative 「無い」 such as 「もったいな
い」(勿体無い) or 「情けない」(情け無い) follow the third rule.
Examples
1. もったいない → もったいなさ → もったいなさすぎる
2. 情けない → 情けなさ → 情けなさすぎる
• Most regular i-adjectives such as 「危ない」 or 「少ない」 follow the regular rule (rule 2).
Examples
1. 危ない → 危なすぎる
2. 少ない → 少なすぎる
252
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
Examples
1. 佐藤さんは料理が上⼿で、また⾷べ過ぎました。
Satou-san is good at cooking and I ate too much again.
2. お酒を飲みすぎないように気をつけてね。
Be careful to not drink too much, ok?
3. ⼤きすぎるからトランクに⼊らないぞ。
It won't fit in the trunk cause it's too big, man.
4. 静かすぎる。罠かもしれないよ。
It's too quiet. It might be a trap, you know.
5. 時間が⾜りなさすぎて、何もできなかった。
Due to too much of a lack of time, I couldn't do anything.
6. 彼には、彼⼥がもったいなさすぎるよ。
She is totally wasted on him (too good for him).
It is also common to change 「すぎる」 into its stem and use it as a noun.
A:昨晩のこと、全然覚えてないな。
A: Man, I don't remember anything about last night.
B:それは飲みすぎだよ。
B: That's drinking too much.
5.6.6
Adding the 「も」 particle to express excessive amounts
Vocabulary
1. 昨⽇【きのう】- yesterday
2. 電話【でん・わ】- phone
3. 〜回【〜かい】- counter for number of times
4. する (exception) - to do
5. 試験【し・けん】- exam
6. ため - for the sake/benefit of
7. 〜時間【〜じ・かん】- counter for span of hour(s)
8. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
9. 今年【こ・とし】- this year
10. キロ - kilo
253
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
11. 太る【ふと・る】(u-verb) - to become fatter
When the 「も」 particle comes after some type of amount, it means that the amount indicated is way
too much. For instance, let's look at the next example.
• 昨⽇、電話三回もしたよ!
I called you like three times yesterday!
Notice that the 「も」 particle is attached to the amount "three times". This sentence implies that the
speaker called even three times and still the person didn't pick up the phone. We understand this to mean
that three times are a lot of times to call someone.
1. 試験のために三時間も勉強した。
I studied three whole hours for the exam.
2. 今年、⼗キロも太っちゃった!
I gained 10 whole kilograms this year!
5.6.7
Using 「ほど」 to express the extent of something
Vocabulary
1. 程【ほど】- degree, extent
2. 今⽇【きょう】- today
3. 天気【てん・き】- weather
4. それ - that
5. 暑い【あつ・い】(i-adj) - hot
6. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
7. 時間【じ・かん】- time
8. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
9. 忙しい【いそが・しい】(i-adj) - busy
10. 韓国【かん・こく】- Korea
11. 料理【りょう・り】- cooking; cuisine; dish
12. ⾷べる【たべ・る】(ru-verb) - to eat
13. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
14. なる (u-verb) - to become
254
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
15. 歩く【ある・く】(u-verb) - to walk
16. 迷う【まよ・う】(u-verb) - to get lost
17. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
18. 頭【あたま】- head
19. いい (i-adj) - good
20. ハードディスク - hard disk
21. 容量【よう・りょう】- capacity
22. ⼤きい【おお・きい】(i-adj) - big
23. もっと - more
24. たくさん - a lot (amount)
25. 曲【きょく】- tune
26. 保存【ほ・ぞん】- save
27. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
28. 航空券【こう・くう・けん】- plane ticket
29. 安い【やす・い】(i-adj) - cheap
30. 限る【かぎ・る】(u-verb) - to limit
31. ⽂章【ぶん・しょう】- sentence; writing
32. 短い【みじか・い】(i-adj) - short
33. 簡単【かん・たん】(na-adj) - simple
34. 良い【よ・い】(i-adj) - good
The noun 「ほど」 (程) is attached to a word in a sentence to express the extent of something. It can
modify nouns as well as verbs as seen in the next example.
1. 今⽇の天気はそれほど暑くない。
Today's weather is not hot to that extent.
2. 寝る時間がないほど忙しい。
Busy to the extent that there's no time to sleep.
When you use this with conditionals, you can express something that translates into English as, "The
more you [verb], the more..." The grammar is always formed in the following sequence: [conditional of
verb] followed immediately by [same verb+ ほど]
255
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
• 韓国料理は⾷べれば⾷べるほど、おいしくなる。
About Korean food, the more you eat the tastier it becomes.
The literal translation is, "About Korean food, if you eat, to the extent that you eat, it becomes tasty."
which essentially means the same thing. The example uses the 「ば」 conditional form, but the 「たら」
conditional will work as well. Since this is a general statement, the contextual 「なら」 conditional will
never work. The decided 「と」 conditional won't work very well here either since it may not always be
true depending on the extent of the action.
1. 歩いたら歩くほど、迷ってしまった。
The more I walked, the more I got lost.
2. 勉強をすればするほど、頭がよくなるよ。
The more you study, the more you will become smarter.
You can also use this grammar with i-adjectives by using the 「ば」 conditional.
1. iPod は、ハードディスクの容量が⼤きければ⼤きいほどもっとたくさんの曲が保存できます。
About iPod, the larger the hard disk capacity, the more songs you can save.
2. 航空券は安ければ安いほどいいとは限らない。
It's not necessarily the case that the cheaper the ticket, the better it is.
For na-adjectives, since you can't use the「ば」conditional you have to resort to the「なら」conditional.
Because it sounds strange to use the 「なら」 conditional in this fashion, you will hardly ever see this
grammar used with na-adjectives. Since 「ほど」 is treated as a noun, make sure you don't forget to
use 「な」 to attach the noun to the na-adjective.
• ⽂章は、短ければ短いほど、簡単なら簡単なほどよいです。
The shorter and simpler the sentences, the better it is.
5.6.8
Using 「〜さ」 with adjectives to indicate an amount
Vocabulary
1. ⾼い【たか・い】(i-adj) - high; tall; expensive
2. 低い【ひく・い】(i-adj) - short
3. 穏やか【おだ・やか】(na-adj) - calm, peaceful
4. この - this (abbr. of これの)
5. ビル - building
256
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.6. EXPRESSING AMOUNTS
6. 何【なに/なん】- what
7. ⽝【いぬ】- dog
8. 聴覚【ちょう・かく】- sense of hearing
9. 敏感【びん・かん】(na-adj) - sensitive
10. ⼈間【にん・げん】- human
11. ⽐べる【くら・べる】(ru-verb) - to compare
12. はるか - far more
13. 上【うえ】- above
We will now learn how to add 「さ」 to adjectives to indicate an amount of that adjective. For example,
we can attach 「さ」 to the adjective for "high" in order to get "height". Instead of looking at the height,
we can even attach 「さ」 to the adjective for "low" to focus on the amount of lowness as opposed to
the amount of highness. In fact, there is nothing to stop us from using this with any adjective to indicate
an amount of that adjective. The result becomes a regular noun indicating the amount of that adjective.
Adding 「〜さ」to adjectives to indicate an amount
• For i-adjectives: First remove the trailing 「い」 from the i-adjective and then attach 「さ」
1. ⾼い → ⾼さ
2. 低い → 低さ
.
• For na-adjectives: Just attach 「さ」 to the end
of the na-adjective
Example
1. 穏やか → 穏やかさ
The result becomes a regular noun.
Examples
1. このビルの⾼さは何ですか?
What is the height of this building?
2. ⽝の聴覚の敏感さを⼈間と⽐べると、はるかに上だ。
If you compare the level of sensitivity of hearing of dogs to humans, it is far above.
257
5.7. EXPRESS SIMILARITY AND HEARSAY
5.7
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Various ways to express similarity and hearsay (よう、
〜みたい、〜そう、〜そうだ、〜らしい、〜っぽい)
In Japanese there are many different ways to express likeness or similarity depending on appearance,
behavior, or outcome. When learning these expressions for the first time, it is difficult to understand what
the differences are between them because they all translate to the same thing in English. This lesson
is designed to study the differences between these expressions so that you can start to get a sense of
which is appropriate for what you want to say.
5.7.1
Expressing similarity with よう (様)
Vocabulary
1. ここ - here
2. 誰【だれ】- who
3. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
4. 映画【えい・が】- movie
5. 観る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to watch
6. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
7. 静か【しず・か】(na-adj) - quiet
8. あの - that (over there) (abbr. of あれの)
9. ⼈【ひと】- person
10. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
11. 気【き】- mood; intent
12. する (exception) - to do
13. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
14. 雰囲気【ふん・い・き】- atmosphere; mood
15. ちょっと - a little
16. 怒る【おこ・る】(u-verb) - to get angry
17. 聞こえる【き・こえる】(ru-verb) - to be audible
18. 何【なに/なん】- what
19. 起こる【おこ・る】(u-verb) - to happen
20. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
258
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.7. EXPRESS SIMILARITY AND HEARSAY
We've already briefly gone over 「よう」 and learned that 「よう」 means an appearance or manner.
We can use this definition to say that something has an appearance or manner of a certain state. This
word can be used in many ways to express similarity. The simplest example is by directly modifying the
relative clause. When the sentence ends in 「よう」, you must explicitly express the state-of-being by
adding 「だ」, 「です」, or 「でございます」.
1. ここには、誰もいないようだ。
Looks like no one is here.
2. 映画を観たようです。
Looks like (he) watched the movie.
When directly modifying nouns or na-adjectives, you must use the 「の」 particle for nouns or attach
「な」 to na-adjectives.
1. 学⽣のようだ。
Looks like it's a student.
2. ここは静かなようだ。
Looks like it's quiet.
Notice that example 1 does not say that the person looks like a student. Rather, the declarative 「だ」
states that the person appears to be a student. On a side note, you can't say 「おいしいようだ」 to say
that something looks tasty. This is like saying, "This dish apparently is tasty," which can actually be kind
of rude.
You can also use it as a na-adjective to describe something that appears to be something else.
1. あの⼈を⾒たような気がした。
Had a feeling like I saw that person before.
2. 彼は学⽣のような雰囲気ですね。
He has a student-like atmosphere.
Finally, we can attach the target particle to say things like, "I heard it like that" or "I said it like...".
1. ちょっと怒ったように聞こえた。
Was able to hear it like (she) was a little mad.
2. 何も起こらなかったように⾔った。
Said (it) like nothing happened.
259
5.7. EXPRESS SIMILARITY AND HEARSAY
5.7.2
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Using 「みたい」 to say something looks like something else
Vocabulary
1. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
2. ⽝【いぬ】- dog
3. もう - already
4. 売り切れ【う・り・き・れ】- sold out
5. 制服【せい・ふく】- uniform
6. 着る【き・る】(ru-verb) - to wear
7. 姿【すがた】- figure
8. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
9. この - this (abbr. of これの)
10. ピザ - pizza
11. お好み焼き【お・この・み・や・き】- okonomiyaki (Japanese-style pancake)
12. ⾒える【み・える】(ru-verb) - to be visible
Another way to express similarity which is considered more casual is by using「みたい」. Do not confuse
this with the「たい」conjugation of「⾒る」. The main difference is that this「みたい」can be attached
directly to nouns, adjectives, and verbs just like particles which i-adjectives like 「〜たい」 obviously
can't do.
Using 「みたい」to say something looks like something else
Attach 「みたい」 to the noun that bears the resemblance. 「みたい」 conjugates like a noun or
na-adjective and not an i-adjective.
Conjugation Example with 「⽝」
Positive .
Negative
Non-Past
⽝みたい
⽝じゃないみたい
looks like a dog
doesn't look like a dog
Past
⽝だったみたい ⽝じゃなかったみたい
looked like a dog
didn't look like a dog
Examples
1. もう売り切れみたい。
Looks like it's sold out already.
260
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.7. EXPRESS SIMILARITY AND HEARSAY
2. 制服を着ている姿をみると、学⽣みたいです。
Looking at the uniform-wearing figure, (person) looks like a student.
The implied meaning here is the person wearing the uniform is not really a student because he/she only
looks like a student. This is different from example 3 from the previous 「よう」 section which implied
that the person appears to be (but might not be) a student. Again, we also can't say 「おいしいみた
い」 to say that something looks tasty because it implies that, in actuality, the food might not be so good.
Similarly, you would never say 「かわいいみたい」 to say that something looks cute.
Don't forget that 「みたい」 does not conjugate like the 「〜たい」 form or i-adjectives.
• このピザはお好み焼きみたくない?
(みたい conjugates like a na-adjective.)
• このピザはお好み焼きみたいじゃない?
Doesn't this pizza looks like okonomiyaki?
「みたい」 is a grammar used mostly for conversational Japanese. Do not use it in essays, articles, or
anything that needs to sound authoritative. You can use 「よう」 instead in the following fashion.
1. もう売り切れのようだ。
It appears that it is sold-out already.
2. このピザはお好み焼きのように⾒える。
This pizza looks like okonomiyaki.
5.7.3
Guessing at an outcome using 「〜そう」
Vocabulary
1. いい (i-adj) - good
2. バランス - balance
3. 崩れる【くず・れる】(ru-verb) - to collapse; to crumble
4. ⼀瞬【いっ・しゅん】- an instant
5. 倒れる【たお・れる】(ru-verb) - to collapse; to fall
6. この - this (abbr. of これの)
7. 辺り【あた・り】- vicinity
8. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
261
5.7. EXPRESS SIMILARITY AND HEARSAY
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
9. 漬物【つけ・もの】- pickled vegetable
10. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
11. これ - this
12. 結構【けっ・こう】- fairly, reasonably
13. やはり/やっぱり - as I thought
14. ⾼い【たか・い】(i-adj) - high; tall; expensive
15. お前【お・まえ】- you (casual)
16. ⾦髪【きん・ぱつ】- blond hair
17. ⼥【おんな】- woman; girl
18. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
19. もう - already
20. 〜時【〜じ】- counter for hours
21. なる (u-verb) - to become
22. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
23. ただ - free of charge; only
24. 試合【し・あい】- match, game
25. その - that (abbr. of それの)
26. ⼈【ひと】- person
27. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
28. かわいい (i-adj) - cute
29. かわいそう (i-adj) - pitiable
30. ⽝【いぬ】- dog
The problem with English is that the expression, "seems like" has too many meanings. It can mean
similarity in appearance, similarity in behavior or even that current evidence points to a likely outcome.
We will now learn how to say the third meaning: how to indicate a likely outcome given the situation.
Just like the grammar we have learned so far in this lesson, we can use this grammar by simply attaching
「そう」 to the end of verbs, and adjectives. However, there are four important different cases. Actually, I
just noticed this but the conjugation rules are exactly the same as the 「〜すぎる」 grammar we learned
in the last section. The only difference is that for the adjective 「いい」, you need to change it to 「よさ」
before attaching 「そう」 to create 「よさそう」.
262
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.7. EXPRESS SIMILARITY AND HEARSAY
Rules for conjugation
1. Verbs must be changed to the stem.
2. The 「い」 in i-adjectives must be dropped except for 「いい」.
3. 「いい」 must first be conjugated to 「よさ」..
4. For all negatives, the 「い」 must be replaced with 「さ」.
5. This grammar does not work with plain nouns.
1. Verb must be changed to the stem.
For ru-verbs, remove the 「る」
• バランスが崩れて、⼀瞬倒れそうだった。
Losing my balance, I seemed likely to fall for a moment.
For u-verbs, change the / u / vowel sound to an / i / vowel sound
• この辺りにありそうだけどな。
It seems likely that it would be around here but...
2. The 「い」 in i-adjectives must be dropped.
In the next example, the 「い」 has been dropped from 「おいしい」.
• この漬物はおいしそう!
I bet this pickled vegetable is tasty! (This pickled vegetable looks good!)
Exception: The only exception to this rule is the adjective 「いい」. When using this grammar with
「いい」, you must first change it to 「よさ」.
• これも結構よさそうだけど、やっぱり⾼いよね。
This one also seems to be good but, as expected, it's expensive, huh?
Nothing needs to be done for na-adjectives.
• お前なら、⾦髪の⼥が好きそうだな。
Knowing you, I bet you like blond-haired girls.
263
5.7. EXPRESS SIMILARITY AND HEARSAY
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
3. For all negatives, the 「い」 must be replaced with 「さ」.
The negative of 「来る」 is 「こない」 so when used with 「〜そう」, it becomes 「こなさそう」.
1. もう 10 時になったから、来なさそうだね。
Since it already became 10:00, it's likely that (person) won't come.
2. これはただの試合じゃなさそうだ。
This isn't likely to be an ordinary match.
Identical to the 「〜すぎる」 grammar, i-adjectives that are derived from the negative 「〜ない」
like 「もったいない」 or 「情けない」 also follow this rule as well (which would be 「もったいなさそ
う」 and 「情けなさそう」 in this case).
4. This grammar does not work with plain nouns.
• その⼈は学⽣そう。
There are other grammar we have already covered that can be used to indicate that something is likely
to be something else.
1. その⼈は学⽣でしょう。
That person is probably student.
2. その⼈は学⽣だろう。
That person is probably student.
Be careful never to use 「かわいい」 with this grammar. 「かわいそう」 is a completely different word
used when you feel sorry for something or someone. 「かわいい」 means, "to look cute" already so you
never need to use any of the grammar in this lesson to say something looks cute.
1. この⽝はかわいそう。
Oh, this poor dog.
2. この⽝はかわいい。
This dog is cute.
5.7.4
Expressing hearsay using 「〜そうだ」
Vocabulary
1. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
264
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.7. EXPRESS SIMILARITY AND HEARSAY
2. ⾬【あめ】- rain
3. 降る【ふ・る】(u-verb) - to precipitate
4. 毎⽇【まい・にち】- everyday
5. 会う【あ・う】(u-verb) - to meet
6. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
7. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
8. ⾼校⽣【こう・こう・せい】- high school student
9. 今⽇【きょう】- today
10. ⽥中【た・なか】- Tanaka (last name)
11. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
The reason that there are so many annoying rules to using 「〜そう」 is to distinguish it from this next
grammar we will learn. This is a useful grammar for talking about things you heard that doesn't necessary
have anything to do with how you yourself, think or feel. Unlike the last grammar we learned, you can
simply attach 「そうだ」 to verbs and i-adjectives. For na-adjectives and nouns, you must indicate the
state-of-being by adding 「だ」 to the noun/na-adjective. Also, notice that 「そう」 itself must always
end in 「だ」、「です」、or 「でございます」. These differences are what distinguishes this grammar
from the one we learned in the last section. There are no tenses for this grammar.
1. 明⽇、⾬が降るそうだ。
I hear that it's going to rain tomorrow.
2. 毎⽇会いに⾏ったそうです。
I heard he went to meet everyday.
Don't forget to add 「だ」 for nouns or na-adjectives.
• 彼は、⾼校⽣だそうです。
I hear that he is a high school student.
When starting the sentence with this grammar, you also need to add 「だ」 just like you do with 「だか
ら」
A:今⽇、⽥中さんはこないの?
A: Is Tanaka-san not coming today?
B:だそうです。
B: So I hear.
265
5.7. EXPRESS SIMILARITY AND HEARSAY
5.7.5
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Expressing hearsay or behavior using 「〜らしい」
Vocabulary
1. 今⽇【きょう】- today
2. ⽥中【た・なか】- Tanaka (last name)
3. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
4. あの - that (over there) (abbr. of あれの)
5. ⼈【ひと】- person
6. 何【なん】- what
7. 美由紀【み・ゆ・き】- Miyuki (first name)
8. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
9. ⼦【こ】- child
10. ⼦供【こ・ども】- child
11. ⼤⼈【おとな】- adult
12. する (exception) - to do
13. つもり - intention, plan
14. ⼤騒ぎ【おお・さわ・ぎ】- big commotion
「らしい」 can be directly attached to nouns, adjectives, or verbs to show that things appear to be a
certain way due to what you've heard. This is different from 「〜そうだ」because 「〜そうだ」 indicates
something you heard about specifically while 「らしい」 means things seem to be a certain way based
on some things you heard about the subject. 「らしい」 conjugates like a normal i-adjective.
Example 1
A:今⽇、⽥中さんはこないの?
A: Is Tanaka-san not coming today?
B:こないらしい。
B: Seems like it (based on what I heard).
266
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.7. EXPRESS SIMILARITY AND HEARSAY
Example 2
A:あの⼈は何なの?
A: What is that person over there?
B:美由紀さんの友達らしいですよ。
B: Seems to be Miyuki-san's friend (based on what I heard).
Another way to use「らしい」is to indicate that a person seems to be a certain thing due to his behavior.
1. あの⼦は⼦供らしくない。
That child does not act like a child.
2. ⼤⼈らしくするつもりだったのに、⼤騒ぎしてしまった。
Despite the fact that I planned to act like an adult, I ended up making a big ruckus.
5.7.6
「っぽい」: Slang expression of similarity
Vocabulary
1. あの - that (over there) (abbr. of あれの)
2. ⼈【ひと】- person
3. 韓国⼈【かん・こく・じん】- Korean person
4. 皆【みんな】- everybody
5. もう - already
6. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
7. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
8. 恭⼦【きょう・こ】- Kyouko (first name)
9. 全然【ぜん・ぜん】- not at all (when used with negative)
10. ⼥【おんな】- woman; girl
A really casual way to express similarity is to attach 「っぽい」 to the word that reflects the resemblance.
Because this is a very casual expression, you can use it as a casual version for all the different types of
expression for similarity covered above.
「っぽい」 conjugates just like an i-adjective, as seen by example 3 below.
1. あの⼈はちょっと韓国⼈っぽいよね。
That person looks a little like Korean person, huh?
267
5.8. USING ⽅ AND よる FOR COMPARISONS, ETC
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
2. みんなで、もう全部⾷べてしまったっぽいよ。
It appears that everybody ate everything already.
3. 恭⼦は全然⼥っぽくないね。
Kyouko is not womanly at all, huh?
5.8
Using ⽅ and よる for comparisons and other functions
(より、の⽅、stem +⽅、によって、によると)
If you were wondering how to make comparison in Japanese, well wonder no more. We will learn how
to use 「⽅」 and 「より」 to make comparisons between two things. We will also learn other uses of
「⽅」 and 「よる」 along the way.
5.8.1
Using 「⽅」 for comparisons
Vocabulary
1. ⽅【1) ほう; 2) かた】- 1) direction; side; 2) person; way of doing
2. ご飯【ご・はん】- rice; meal
3. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
4. 鈴⽊【すず・き】- Suzuki (last name)
5. 若い【わか・い】(i-adj) - young
6. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
7. いい (i-adj) - good
8. ⾚ちゃん【あか・ちゃん】- baby
9. 静か【しず・か】(na-adj) - quiet
10. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
11. ゆっくり - slowly
12. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
13. 健康【けん・こう】- health
14. こちら - this way
15. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
16. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
17. 怖い【こわ・い】(i-adj) - scary
268
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.8. USING ⽅ AND よる FOR COMPARISONS, ETC
18. 映画【えい・が】- movie
19. 観る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to watch
20. そんな - that sort of
21. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
The noun 「⽅」 is read as 「ほう」 when it is used to mean a direction or orientation. As an aside, it
can also be read as 「かた」 when it is used as a politer version of 「⼈」.
When we use 「⽅」 to mean direction, we can use it for comparison by saying one way of things is
better, worse, etc., than the other way. Grammatically, it works just like any other regular nouns.
Examples
Use it with nouns by utilizing the 「の」 particle.
1. ご飯の⽅がおいしい
Rice is tastier. (lit: The way of rice is tasty.)
2. 鈴⽊さんの⽅が若い。
Suzuki-san is younger. (lit: The way of Suzuki is young.)
Grammatically, it's no different from a regular noun.
1. 学⽣じゃない⽅がいいよ。
It's better to not be a student. (lit: The way of not being student is good.)
2. ⾚ちゃんは、静かな⽅が好き。
Like quiet babies more. (lit: About babies, the quiet way is desirable.)
For non-negative verbs, you can also use the past tense to add more certainty and confidence, particularly
when making suggestions.
1. ゆっくり⾷べた⽅が健康にいいよ。
It's better for your health to eat slowly.
2. こちらから⾏った⽅が早かった。
It was faster to go from this way.
The same thing does not apply for negative verbs.
269
5.8. USING ⽅ AND よる FOR COMPARISONS, ETC
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
• 怖い映画は観ない⽅がいいよ。
It's better not to watch scary movie(s).
The negative verb is only in the past tense when the comparison is of something that happened in the
past.
• そんなに飲まなかった⽅がよかった。
It was better not to have drunk that much.
5.8.2
Using 「より」 for comparisons
Vocabulary
1. ⽅【1) ほう; 2) かた】- 1) direction; side; 2) person; way of doing
2. 花【はな】- flower
3. 団⼦【だん・ご】- dango (dumpling)
4. ご飯【ご・はん】- rice; meal
5. パン - bread
6. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
7. 若い【わか・い】(i-adj) - young
8. 鈴⽊【すず・き】- Suzuki (last name)
9. 毎⽇【まい・にち】- everyday
10. 仕事【し・ごと】- job
11. 嫌【いや】(na-adj) disagreeable; unpleasant
12. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
13. まし - not as bad
14. ゆっくり - slowly
15. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
16. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
17. いい (i-adj) - good
You can think of 「より」 as being the opposite of 「⽅」. It means, "rather than" or "as opposed to". It
attaches directly to the back of any word. It is usually used in conjunction with 「⽅」 to say something
like, "This way is better as opposed to that way."
270
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.8. USING ⽅ AND よる FOR COMPARISONS, ETC
Examples
1. 花より団⼦。
Dango rather than flowers. (This is a very famous saying.)
2. ご飯の⽅が、パンよりおいしい。
Rice tastes better than bread. (lit: The rice way is tasty as opposed to bread.)
3. キムさんより鈴⽊さんの⽅が若い。
Suzuki-san is younger than Kim-san. (lit: The way of Suzuki is young as opposed to Kim-san.)
For those curious about the meaning of the proverb, dango is a sweet doughy treat usually sold at festivals. The proverb is saying that people prefer this treat to watching the flowers, referring to the 「花⾒」
event where people go out to see the cherry blossoms (and get smashed). The deeper meaning of the
proverb, like all good proverbs, depends on how you apply it.
Of course, there is no rule that 「より」 must be used with 「⽅」 . The other way of things can be
gleaned from context.
鈴⽊:毎⽇仕事に⾏くのが嫌だ。
Suzuki: I don't like going to work everyday.
スミス:仕事がないよりましだよ。
Smith: It's not as bad as opposed to not having a job.
Words associated with 「より」 do not need any tense. Notice in the following sentence that 「⾷べる」
in front of 「より」 is present tense even though 「⾷べる」 in front of 「⽅」 is past tense.
• ゆっくり⾷べた⽅が早く⾷べるよりいい。
It is better to eat slowly as opposed to eating quickly.
Using 「より」 as a superlative
Vocabulary
1. 誰【だれ】- who
2. 何【なに】- what
3. どこ - where
4. 商品【しょう・ひん】- product
5. 品質【ひん・しつ】- quality of a good
6. ⼤切【たい・せつ】(na-adj) - important
7. する (exception) - to do
271
5.8. USING ⽅ AND よる FOR COMPARISONS, ETC
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
8. この - this (abbr. of これの)
9. 仕事【し・ごと】- job
10. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
11. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
You can also use「より」with question words such as「誰」、「何」、or「どこ」to make a superlative by
comparing with everything or everybody else. In this case, though not required, it is common to include
the 「も」 particle.
Examples
1. 商品の品質を何より⼤切にしています。
We place value in product's quality over anything else.
2. この仕事は誰よりも早くできます。
Can do this job more quickly than anyone else.
5.8.3
Using 「⽅」 to express a way to do something
Vocabulary
1. ⽅【1) ほう; 2) かた】- 1) direction; side; 2) person; way of doing
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
4. 新宿【しん・じゅく】- Shinjuku
5. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
6. そう - (things are) that way
7. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
8. 体【からだ】- body
9. いい (i-adj) - good
10. 漢字【かん・じ】- Kanji
11. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
12. 教える【おし・える】(ru-verb) - to teach; to inform
13. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
14. パソコン - computer, PC
272
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.8. USING ⽅ AND よる FOR COMPARISONS, ETC
15. 使う【つか・う】(u-verb) - to use
16. 皆【みんな】- everybody
17. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
You can also attach 「⽅」 to the stem of verbs to express a way to do that verb. In this usage, 「⽅」 is
read as 「かた」 and the result becomes a noun. For example, 「⾏き⽅」(いきかた) means, "the way
to go" or 「⾷べ⽅」(たべかた)means, "the way to eat". This expression is probably what you want to
use when you want to ask how to do something.
Examples
1. 新宿の⾏き⽅は分かりますか。
Do you know the way to go to Shinjuku?
2. そういう⾷べ⽅は体によくないよ。
Eating in that way is not good for your body.
3. 漢字の書き⽅を教えてくれますか?
Can you teach me the way of writing kanji?
4. パソコンの使い⽅は、みんな知っているでしょう。
Probably everybody knows the way to use PC's.
When verbs are transformed to this form, the result becomes a noun clause. Sometimes, this requires a
change of particles. For instance, while 「⾏く」 usually involves a target (the 「に」 or 「へ」 particle),
since 「⾏き⽅」 is a noun clause, example 1 becomes 「新宿の⾏き⽅」 instead of the familiar 「新
宿に⾏く」.
5.8.4
Using 「によって」 to express dependency
Vocabulary
1. ⼈【ひと】- person
2. 話【はなし】- story
3. 違う【ちが・う】(u-verb) - to be different
4. 季節【き・せつ】- season
5. 果物【くだ・もの】- fruit
6. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
7. なる (u-verb) - to become
8. まずい (i-adj) - unpleasant
273
5.8. USING ⽅ AND よる FOR COMPARISONS, ETC
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
9. 和⼦【かず・こ】- Kazuko (first name)
10. 今⽇【きょう】- today
11. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
12. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
13. ⼤樹【だい・き】- Daiki (first name)
14. それ - that
15. 裕⼦【ゆう・こ】- Yuuko (first name)
When you want to say, "depending on [X]", you can do this in Japanese by simply attaching 「によって」
to [X].
Examples
1. ⼈によって話が違う。
The story is different depending on the person.
2. 季節によって果物はおいしくなったり、まずくなったりする。
Fruit becomes tasty or nasty depending on the season.
This is simply the te-form of 「よる」 as seen by the following simple exchange.
和⼦:今⽇は飲みに⾏こうか?
Kazuko: Shall we go drinking today?
⼤樹:それは、裕⼦によるね。
Daiki: That depends on Yuuko.
5.8.5
Indicating a source of information using 「によると」
Vocabulary
1. 天気【てん・き】- weather
2. 予報【よ・ほう】- forecast
3. 今⽇【きょう】- today
4. ⾬【あめ】- rain
5. 友達【とも・だち】- friend
6. 話【はなし】- story
274
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.9. SAYING SOMETHING IS EASY OR DIFFICULT TO DO
7. 朋⼦【とも・こ】- Tomoko (first name)
8. やっと - finally
9. ボーイフレンド - boyfriend
10. ⾒つける【み・つける】(ru-verb) - to find
Another expression using 「よる」 is by using it with the target and the decided conditional 「と」 to
indicate a source of information. In English, this would translate to "according to [X]" where 「によると」
is attached to [X].
Examples
1. 天気予報によると、今⽇は⾬だそうだ。
According to the weather forecast, I hear today is rain.
2. 友達の話によると、朋⼦はやっとボーイフレンドを⾒つけたらしい。
According to a friend's story, it appears that Tomoko finally found a boyfriend.
5.9
Saying something is easy or difficult to do (〜やすい、
〜にくい)
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. しゃべる (u-verb) - to talk
3. この - this (abbr. of これの)
4. 字【じ】- character; hand-writing
5. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
6. カクテル - cocktail
7. ビール - beer
8. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
9. 部屋【へ・や】- room
10. 暗い【くら・い】(i-adj) - dark
11. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
12. 難しい【むずか・しい】(i-adj) - difficult
275
5.9. SAYING SOMETHING IS EASY OR DIFFICULTCHAPTER
TO DO
5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
13. 易しい【やさ・しい】(i-adj) - easy
14. 簡単【かん・たん】(na-adj) - simple
15. 容易【よう・い】(na-adj) - simple
16. その - that (abbr. of それの)
17. ⾁【にく】- meat
This is a short easy lesson on how to transform verbs into adjectives describing whether that action is
easy or difficult to do. Basically, it consists of changing the verb into the stem and adding 「やすい」 for
easy and 「にくい」 for hard. The result then becomes a regular i-adjective. Pretty easy, huh?
Using 「〜やすい、〜にくい」to describe easy and difficult actions
To describe an action as being easy, change the verb to the stem and add 「やすい」. To describe
an action as being difficult, attach 「にくい」 to the stem.
Examples
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べやすい
2. しゃべる → しゃべり → しゃべりにくい.
The result becomes a regular i-adjective.
Positive
Negative
Non-Past
⾷べにくい
⾷べにくくない
Past
⾷べにくかった ⾷べにくくなかった
Examples
1. この字は読みにくい
This hand-writing is hard to read.
2. カクテルはビールより飲みやすい。
Cocktails are easier to drink than beer.
3. 部屋が暗かったので、⾒にくかった。
Since the room was dark, it was hard to see.
As an aside: Be careful with 「⾒にくい」 because 「醜い」 is a rarely used adjective meaning, "ugly".
I wonder if it's just coincidence that "difficult to see" and "ugly" sound exactly the same?
Of course, you can always use some other grammatical structure that we have already learned to express
the same thing using appropriate adjectives such as 「難しい」、 「易しい」、 「簡単」、 「容易」、
etc. The following two sentences are essentially identical in meaning.
276
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.9. SAYING SOMETHING IS EASY OR DIFFICULT TO DO
1. その⾁は⾷べにくい。
That meat is hard to eat.
2. その⾁を⾷べるのは難しい。
The thing of eating that meat is difficult.
5.9.1
Variations of 「〜にくい」 with 「〜がたい」 and 「〜づらい」
Vocabulary
1. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
2. 忘れる【わす・れる】(ru-verb) - to forget
3. 思い出【おも・い・で】- memories
4. ⼤切【たい・せつ】(na-adj) - important
5. する (exception) - to do
6. とても - very
7. 信じる【しん・じる】(ru-verb) - to believe
8. 話【はなし】- story
9. 本当【ほん・とう】- real
10. 起こる【おこ・る】(u-verb) - to happen
11. ⾟い【1) から・い; 2) つら・い】(i-adj) - 1) spicy; 2) painful
12. ⽇本語【に・ほん・ご】- Japanese (language)
13. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
14. 待ち合わせ【ま・ち・あわ・せ】- meeting arrangement
15. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
16. 場所【ば・しょ】- location
The kanji for 「にくい」 actually comes from 「難い」 which can also be read as 「かたい」. As a result,
you can also add a voiced version 「〜がたい」 as a verb suffix to express the same thing as 「にく
い」. 「にくい」 is more common for speaking while 「がたい」 is more suited for the written medium.
「にくい」 tends to be used for physical actions while 「がたい」 is usually reserved for less physical
actions that don't actually require movement. However, there seems to be no hard rule on which is more
appropriate for a given verb so I suggest searching for both versions in google to ascertain the popularity
of a given combination. You should also always write the suffix in hiragana to prevent ambiguities in the
reading.
277
5.10. MORE NEGATIVE VERBS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Examples
1. 彼との忘れがたい思い出を⼤切にしている。
I am treating importantly the hard to forget memories of and with him.
2. とても信じがたい話だが、本当に起こったらしい。
It's a very difficult to believe story but it seems (from hearsay) that it really happened.
Yet another, more coarse variation of stem + 「にくい」 is to use 「づらい」 instead which is a slightly
transformed version of 「⾟い」(つらい). This is not to be confused with the same 「⾟い」(からい),
which means spicy!
Examples
1. ⽇本語は読みづらいな。
Man, Japanese is hard to read.
2. 待ち合わせは、分かりづらい場所にしないでね。
Please don't pick a difficult to understand location for the meeting arrangement.
5.10 More negative verbs (ないで、ず、〜ん、ぬ)
We already learned the most common type of negative verbs; the ones that end in 「ない」. However,
there are couple more different types of negatives verbs. The ones you will find most useful are the first
two, which expresses an action that was done without having done another action. The others are fairly
obscure or useful only for very casual expressions. However, you will run into them if you learn Japanese
for a fair amount of time.
5.10.1
Doing something without doing something else
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
3. 何【なに/なん】- what
4. ⻭【は】- tooth
5. 磨く【みが・く】(u-verb) - to brush; to polish
6. 学校【がっ・こう】- school
7. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
278
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.10. MORE NEGATIVE VERBS
8. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
9. する (exception) - to do
10. 授業【じゅ・ぎょう】- class
11. ⽌める【や・める】(ru-verb) - to stop
12. ⽅【1) ほう; 2) かた】- 1) direction; side; 2) person; way of doing
13. いい (i-adj) - good
14. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
15. 相談【そう・だん】- consultation
16. この - this (abbr. of これの)
17. 取る【と・る】(u-verb) - to take
18. こと - event, matter
19. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
20. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
21. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
22. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
23. そんな - that sort of
24. お酒【お・さけ】- alcohol
25. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
26. 当然【とう・ぜん】- naturally
27. 酔っ払う【よ・っ・ぱ・らう】(u-verb) - to get drunk
28. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
29. 東⼤【とう・だい】- Tokyo University (abbr. for 「東京⼤学」)
30. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
31. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
Way back when, we learned how to express a sequence of actions and this worked fine for both positive
and negative verbs. For instance, the sentence "I didn't eat, and then I went to sleep" would become「⾷
べなくて寝た。」 However, this sentence sounds a bit strange because eating doesn't have much to do
with sleeping. What we probably really want to say is that we went to sleep without eating. To express
this, we need to use a more generalized form of the negative request we covered at the very end of the
giving and receiving lesson. In other words, instead of substituting the last 「い」 with 「くて」, we need
only append 「で」 instead.
279
5.10. MORE NEGATIVE VERBS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Doing something without doing something else
To indicate an action that was done without doing another action, add 「で」 to the negative of the
action that was not done.
.
Example
⾷べる → ⾷べない → ⾷べないで
Examples
1. 何も⾷べないで寝ました。
Went to sleep without eating anything.
2. ⻭を磨かないで、学校に⾏っちゃいました。
Went to school without brushing teeth (by accident).
3. 宿題をしないで、授業に⾏くのは、やめた⽅がいいよ。
It's better to stop going to class without doing homework.
4. 先⽣と相談しないで、この授業を取ることは出来ない。
You cannot take this class without consulting with teacher.
Hopefully not too difficult. Another way to express the exact same thing is to replace the last 「ない」
part with 「ず」. However, the two exception verbs 「する」 and 「くる」 become 「せず」 and 「こ
ず」 respectively. It is also common to see this grammar combined with the target 「に」 particle. This
version is more formal than 「ないで」 and is not used as much in regular conversations.
Doing something without doing something else
• Another way to indicate an action that was done without doing another action is to replace the 「な
い」 part of the negative action that was not done with 「ず」.
Examples
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べない → ⾷べず
.
2. ⾏く → ⾏かない → ⾏かず
• Exceptions:
1. する → せず
2. くる → こず
280
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.10. MORE NEGATIVE VERBS
Examples
1. 彼は何も⾔わず、帰ってしまった。
He went home without saying anything.
2. 何も⾷べずにそんなにお酒を飲むと当然酔っ払いますよ。
Obviously, you're going to get drunk if you drink that much without eating anything.
3. 勉強せずに東⼤に⼊れると思わないな。
I don't think you can get in Tokyo University without studying.
5.10.2
A casual masculine type of negative that ends in 「ん」
Vocabulary
1. する (exception) - to do
2. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
3. すまん - sorry (masculine)
4. すみません - sorry (polite)
5. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
6. 韓国⼈【かん・こく・じん】- Korean person
7. 結婚【けっ・こん】- marriage
8. なる (u-verb) - to become
9. そんな - that sort of
10. こと - event, matter
11. 皆【みんな】- everybody
12. 今⽇【きょう】- today
13. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
Finally, we cover another type of negative that is used mostly by older men. Since 「ない」 is so long
and difficult to say (sarcasm), you can shorten it to just 「ん」. However, you can't directly modify other
words in this form; in other words, you can't make it a modifying relative clause. In the same manner as
before, 「する」 becomes 「せん」 and 「くる」 becomes 「こん」 though I've never heard or seen 「こ
ん」 actually being used. If you have ever heard 「すまん」 and wondered what that meant, it's actually
an example of this grammar. Notice that 「すみません」 is actually in polite negative form. Well, the
plain form would be 「すまない」, right? That further transforms to just 「すまん」. The word brings up
an image of おじさん but that may be just me. Anyway, it's a male expression.
281
5.10. MORE NEGATIVE VERBS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
A shorter way to say negative verbs
• A shorter way to say a negative verb is to use 「ん」 instead of 「ない」.
Example
知る → 知らない → 知らん
.
• Exceptions:
1. する → せん
2. くる → こん
Examples
1. すまん。
Sorry.
2. 韓国⼈と結婚しなくてはならん!
You must marry a Korean!
3. そんなことはさせん!
I won't let you do such a thing!
You can even use this slang for past tense verbs by adding 「かった」.
• 皆、今⽇⾏くって、知らんかったよ。
I didn't know everybody was going today.
5.10.3
A classical negative verb that ends in 「ぬ」
Vocabulary
1. する (exception) - to do
2. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
3. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
4. 韓国⼈【かん・こく・じん】- Korean person
5. 結婚【けっ・こん】- marriage
6. なる (u-verb) - to become
7. 模擬【も・ぎ】- mock
282
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.10. MORE NEGATIVE VERBS
8. 試験【し・けん】- exam
9. 何回【なん・かい】- how many times
10. 失敗【しっ・ぱい】- failure
11. 実際【じっ・さい】- actual
12. 受ける【う・ける】(ru-verb) - to receive
13. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
14. 結果【けっ・か】- result
15. 出る【で・る】(ru-verb) - to come out
There is yet another version of the negative verb conjugation and it uses 「ぬ」 instead of the 「ない」
that attaches to the end of the verb. While this version of the negative conjugation is old-fashioned and
part of classical Japanese, you will still encounter it occasionally. In fact, I just saw this conjugation on a
sign at the train station today, so it's not too uncommon.
For any verb, you can replace 「ない」 with 「ぬ」 to get to an old-fashion sounding version of the
negative. Similar to the last section, 「する」 becomes 「せぬ」 and 「くる」 becomes 「こぬ」. You
may hear this grammar being used from older people or your friends if they want to bring back ye olde
days.
An old-fashioned way to say negative verbs
• An old-fashioned way to say a negative verb is to use 「ぬ」 instead of 「ない」.
Example
知る → 知らない → 知らぬ
.
• Exceptions:
1. する → せぬ
2. くる → こぬ
Examples
1. 韓国⼈と結婚してはならぬ!
You must not marry a Korean!
2. 模擬試験に何回も失敗して、実際に受けてみたら思わぬ結果が出た。
After having failed mock examination any number of times, a result I wouldn't have thought came
out when I actually tried taking the test.
283
5.11. HYPOTHESIZING AND CONCLUDING
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.11 Hypothesizing and Concluding (わけ、〜とする)
In this section, we're going to learn how to make hypotheses and reach conclusions using: 「とする」
and 「わけ」(訳).
5.11.1 Coming to a conclusion with 「わけ」
Vocabulary
1. 訳【わけ】- meaning; reason; can be deduced
2. 直⼦【なお・こ】- Naoko (first name)
3. いくら - how much
4. 英語【えい・ご】- English (language)
5. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
6. する (exception) - to do
7. うまい (i-adj) - skillful; delicious
8. なる (u-verb) - to become
9. つまり - in short
10. 語学【ご・がく】- language study
11. 能⼒【のう・りょく】- ability
12. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
13. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
14. 失礼【しつ・れい】- discourtesy
15. 中国語【ちゅう・ごく・ご】- Chinese language
16. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
17. 広⼦【ひろ・こ】- Hiroko (first name)
18. 家【1) うち; 2) いえ】- 1) one's own home; 2) house
19. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
20. こと - event, matter
21. ⼀郎【いち・ろう】- Ichirou (first name)
22. 微積分【び・せき・ぶん】- (differential and integral) calculus
23. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
284
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.11. HYPOTHESIZING AND CONCLUDING
24. ここ - here
25. 試験【し・けん】- exam
26. 合格【ごう・かく】- pass (as in an exam)
27. 今度【こん・ど】- this time; another time
28. 負ける【ま・ける】(ru-verb) - to lose
29. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
30. あきらめる (ru-verb) - to give up
The noun「わけ」(訳) is a bit difficult to describe but it's defined as: "meaning; reason; can be deduced".
You can see how this word is used in the following mini-dialogue.
Example 1
直⼦:いくら英語を勉強しても、うまくならないの。
Naoko: No matter how much I study, I don't become better at English.
ジム:つまり、語学には、能⼒がないという訳か。
Jim: So basically, it means that you don't have ability at language.
直⼦:失礼ね。
Naoko: How rude.
As you can see, Jim is concluding from what Naoko said that she must not have any skills at learning
languages. This is completely different from the explanatory 「の」, which is used to explain something
that may or may not be obvious. 「わけ」 is instead used to draw conclusions that anyone might be able
to arrive at given certain information.
A very useful application of this grammar is to combine it with 「ない」 to indicate that there is no
reasonable conclusion. This allows some very useful expression like, "How in the world am I supposed
to know that?"
• 中国語が読めるわけがない。
There's no way I can read Chinese. (lit: There is no reasoning for [me] to be able to read Chinese.)
Under the normal rules of grammar, we must have a particle for the noun 「わけ」 in order to use it with
the verb but since this type of expression is used so often, the particle is often dropped to create just 「〜
わけない」.
285
5.11. HYPOTHESIZING AND CONCLUDING
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Example 2
直⼦:広⼦の家に⾏ったことある?
Naoko: Have you ever gone to Hiroko's house?
⼀郎:あるわけないでしょう。
Ichirou: There's no way I would have ever gone to her house, right?
Example 3
直⼦:微積分は分かる?
Naoko: Do you understand (differential and integral) calculus?
⼀郎:分かるわけないよ!
Ichirou: There's no way I would understand!
There is one thing to be careful of because 「わけない」 can also mean that something is very easy (lit:
requires no explanation). You can easily tell when this meaning is intended however, because it is used
in the same manner as an adjective.
• ここの試験に合格するのはわけない。
It's easy to pass the tests here.
Finally, although not as common, 「わけ」 can also be used as a formal expression for saying that
something must or must not be done at all costs. This is simply a stronger and more formal version of
「〜てはいけない」 . This grammar is created by simply attaching 「わけにはいかない」 . The 「は」
is the topic particle and is pronounced 「わ」. The reason 「いけない」 changes to 「いかない」 is
probably related to intransitive and transitive verbs but I don't want to get too caught up in the logistics of
it. Just take note that it's 「いかない」 in this case and not 「いけない」.
1. 今度は負けるわけにはいかない。
This time, I must not lose at all costs.
2. ここまできて、あきらめるわけにはいかない。
After coming this far, I must not give up.
5.11.2 Making hypotheses with 「とする」
Vocabulary
1. する (exception) - to do
2. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
286
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.11. HYPOTHESIZING AND CONCLUDING
3. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
4. 今【いま】- now
5. 〜時【〜じ】- counter for hours
6. 着く【つ・く】(u-verb) - to arrive
7. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
8. 観客【かん・きゃく】- spectator
9. 参加【さん・か】- participation
10. もらう - to receive
11. 被害者【ひ・がい・しゃ】- victim
12. ⾮常【ひ・じょう】- extreme
13. 幸い【さいわ・い】(na-adj) - fortunate
14. 朝ご飯【あさ・ご・はん】- breakfast
15. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
16. もう - already
17. 昼【ひる】- afternoon
18. お腹【お・なか】- stomach
19. 空く【す・く】(u-verb) - to become empty
While this next grammar doesn't necessarily have anything directly related to the previous grammar, I
thought it would fit nicely together. In a previous lesson, we learn how to combine the volitional form with
「とする」 to indicate an attempt to perform an action. We will now learn several other ways 「とする」
can be used. It may help to keep in mind that 「とする」 is really just a combination of the quotation
particle 「と」 and the verb 「する」 meaning "to do". Let's say you have a sentence: [verb]とする. This
means literally that you are doing like "[verb]" (in quotes). As you can see, when used with the volitional,
it becomes: "Doing like making motion to do [verb]". In other words, you are acting as if to make a motion
to do [verb]. As we have already seen, this translates to "attempt to do [verb]". Let's see what happens
when we use it on plain verbs.
Examples
• 明⽇に⾏くとする。
Assume we go tomorrow.
The example above is considering what would happen supposing that they should decide to go tomorrow.
You can see that the literal translation "do like we go tomorrow" still makes sense. However, in this
situation, we are making a hypothesis unlike the grammar we have gone over before with the volitional
form of the verb. Since we are considering a hypothesis, it is reasonable to assume that the conditional
will be very handy here and indeed, you will often see sentences like the following:
287
5.12. EXPRESSING TIME-SPECIFIC ACTIONS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
• 今から⾏くとしたら、9時に着くと思います。
If we suppose that we go from now, I think we will arrive at 9:00.
As you can see, the verb 「する」 has been conjugated to the 「たら」 conditional form to consider
what would happen if you assume a certain case. You can also change 「する」 to the te-form (して)
and use it as a sequence of actions like so:
1. 観客として参加させてもらった。
Received favor of allowing to participate as spectator.
2. 被害者としては、⾮常に幸いだった。
As a victim, was extremely fortunate.
3. 朝ご飯を⾷べたとしても、もう昼だからお腹が空いたでしょう。
Even assuming that you ate breakfast, because it's already noon, you're probably hungry, right?
The same idea applies here as well. In example 1, you are doing like a "spectator" and doing like a
"victim" in example 2 and finally, doing like you ate breakfast in example 3. So you can see why the same
grammar applies for all these types of sentences because they all mean the same thing in Japanese
(minus the use of additional particles and various conjugations of 「する」).
5.12 Expressing time-specific actions(ばかり、とたんに、な
がら、まくる)
In this lesson, we will go over various ways to express actions that take place in a certain time-frame. In
particular, we will learn how to say: 1) an action has just been completed, 2) an action is taken immediately after another action took place, 3) an action occurs while another action is ongoing, and 4) one
continuously repeats an action.
5.12.1
Expressing what just happened with 「〜ばかり」
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【たべ・る】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. すみません - sorry (polite)
3. 今【いま】- now
4. お腹【お・なか】- stomach
5. いっぱい - full
6. キロ - kilo
288
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.12. EXPRESSING TIME-SPECIFIC ACTIONS
7. ⾛る【はし・る】(u-verb) - to run
8. 凄い【すご・い】(i-adj) - to a great extent
9. 疲れる【つか・れる】(ru-verb) - to get tired
10. 家【1) うち; 2) いえ】- 1) one's own home; 2) house
11. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
12. 昼ご飯【ひる・ご・はん】- lunch
13. もう - already
14. 空く【す・く】(u-verb) - to become empty
15. まさか - no way, you can't mean to say
16. 起きる【お・きる】(ru-verb) - to wake; to occur
This is a very useful grammar that is used to indicate that one has just finished doing something. For
instance, the first time I really wished I knew how to say something like this was when I wanted to politely
decline an invitation to eat because I had just eaten. To do this, take the past tense of verb that you want
to indicate as just being completed and add 「ばかり」. This is used with only the past tense of verbs
and is not to be confused with the 「ばかり」 used with nouns to express amounts.
Just like the other type of 「ばかり」 we have covered before, in slang, you can hear people use 「ばっ
か」 instead of 「ばかり」.
Using 「ばかり」for actions just completed
• To indicate that an action has ended just recently, take the past tense of the verb and add 「ばか
り」.
Example: ⾷べる → ⾷べた → ⾷べたばかり
• For casual speech, you can abbreviate 「ばかり」 to just 「ばっか」
.
Example: ⾷べたばかり → ⾷べたばっか
You can treat the result as you would with any noun.
Positive
Negative
⾷べたばかり (だ) Just ate ⾷べたばかりじゃない Didn't just eat
Examples
1. すみません、今⾷べたばかりなので、お腹がいっぱいです。
Sorry, but I'm full having just eaten.
2. 10 キロを⾛ったばかりで、凄く疲れた。
I just ran 10 kilometers and am really tired.
289
5.12. EXPRESSING TIME-SPECIFIC ACTIONS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
3. 今、家に帰ったばかりです。
I got back home just now.
Here are some examples of the abbreviated version.
1. 昼ご飯を⾷べたばっかなのに、もうお腹が空いた。
Despite the fact that I just ate lunch, I'm hungry already.
2. まさか、今起きたばっかなの?
No way, did you wake up just now?
5.12.2
Express what occurred immediately after with 「とたん」
Vocabulary
1. 開ける【あ・ける】(ru-verb) - to open
2. 取る【と・る】(u-verb) - to take
3. 窓【まど】- window
4. 猫【ねこ】- cat
5. 跳ぶ【と・ぶ】(u-verb) - to jump
6. 映画【えい・が】- movie
7. 観る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to watch
8. トイレ - bathroom; toilet
9. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
10. 眠い【ねむ・い】(i-adj) - sleepy
11. なる (u-verb) - to become
Kind of as a supplement to 「ばかり」, we will cover one way to say something happened as soon as
something else occurs. To use this grammar, add 「とたん」 to the past tense of the first action that
happened. It is also common to add the 「に」 target particle to indicate that specific point in time.
290
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.12. EXPRESSING TIME-SPECIFIC ACTIONS
Using 「とたん」to describe what happened immediately after
Change the verb that happened first to the past tense and attach 「とたん」 or 「とたんに」.
Examples
1. 開ける → 開けた → 開けたとたん (に) .
2. 取る → 取った → 取ったとたん (に)
�Note: You can only use this grammar for things that happen outside your control.
Examples
1. 窓を開けたとたんに、猫が跳んでいった。
As soon as I opened window, cat jumped out.
For many more examples, check these examples sentences from our old trusty WWWJDIC.
An important thing to realize is that you can only use this grammar for things that occur immediately after
something else and not for an action that you, yourself carry out. For instance, compare the following
two sentences.
• 映画を観たとたんに、トイレに⾏きました。
(You carried out the action of going to the bathroom so this is not correct.)
• 映画を観たとたんに、眠くなりました。
(Since becoming sleepy is something that happened outside your control, this sentence is ok.)
5.12.3
Using 「ながら」 for two concurrent actions
Vocabulary
1. ⾛る【はし・る】(u-verb) - to run
2. テレビ - TV, television
3. 観る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to watch
4. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
5. する (exception) - to do
6. ⾳楽【おん・がく】- music
291
5.12. EXPRESSING TIME-SPECIFIC ACTIONS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
7. 聴く【き・く】(u-verb) - to listen (e.g. to music);
8. 学校【がっ・こう】- school
9. 歩く【ある・く】(u-verb) - to walk
10. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable
11. 相⼿【あい・て】- other party
12. 何【なに/なん】- what
13. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
14. ⾃分【じ・ぶん】- oneself
15. 気持ち【き・も・ち】- feeling
16. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
17. 欲しい【ほ・しい】(i-adj) - desirable
18. 単なる【たん・なる】- simply
19. わがまま (na-adj) - selfish
20. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
21. ポップコーン - popcorn
22. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
23. 映画【えい・が】- movie
24. ⼝笛【くち・ぶえ】- whistle
25. ⼿紙【て・がみ】- letter
26. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
You can use 「ながら」 to express that one action is taking place in conjunction with another action. To
use 「ながら」, you must change the first verb to the stem and append 「ながら」. Though probably
rare, you can also attach 「ながら」 to the negative of the verb to express the negative. This grammar
has no tense since it is determined by the second verb.
Using 「ながら」for concurrent actions
• Change the first verb to the stem and append 「ながら」
Example
⾛る → ⾛り → ⾛りながら
.
• For the negative, attach 「ながら」
Example
⾛る → ⾛らない → ⾛らないながら
292
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.12. EXPRESSING TIME-SPECIFIC ACTIONS
Examples
1. テレビを観ながら、宿題をする。
Do homework while watching TV.
2. ⾳楽を聴きながら、学校へ歩くのが好き。
Like to walk to school while listening to music.
3. 相⼿に何も⾔わないながら、⾃分の気持ちをわかってほしいのは単なるわがままだと思わない?
Don't you think that wanting the other person to understand one's feelings while not saying anything
is just simply selfishness?
Notice that the sentence ends with the main verb just like it always does. This means that the main action
of the sentence is the verb that ends the clause. The 「ながら」 simply describes another action that is
also taking place. For example, if we switched the verbs in the first example to say, 「宿題をしながら、
テレビを観る。」, this changes the sentence to say, "Watch TV while doing homework." In other words,
the main action, in this case, becomes watching TV and the action of doing homework is describing an
action that is taking place at the same time.
The tense is controlled by the main verb so the verb used with 「ながら」 cannot have a tense.
1. ポップコーンを⾷べながら、映画を観る。
Watch movie while eating popcorn.
2. ポップコーンを⾷べながら、映画を観た。
Watched movie while eating popcorn.
3. ⼝笛をしながら、⼿紙を書いていた。
Was writing letter while whistling.
5.12.4
Using 「ながら」 with state-of-being
Vocabulary
1. 残念【ざん・ねん】(na-adj) - unfortunate
2. 貧乏【びん・ぼう】(na-adj) - poor
3. 仕事【し・ごと】- job
4. いっぱい - full
5. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
6. 今⽇【きょう】- today
7. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
8. なる (u-verb) - to become
293
5.12. EXPRESSING TIME-SPECIFIC ACTIONS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
9. ⾼級【こう・きゅう】(na-adj) - high class, high grade
10. バッグ - bag
11. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
12. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
13. 初⼼者【しょ・しん・しゃ】- beginner
14. 実⼒【じつ・りょく】- actual ability
15. プロ - pro
16. 同じ【おな・じ】- same
A more advanced use of 「ながら」 is to use it with the implied state-of-being. In other words, you
can use it with nouns or adjectives to talk about what something is while something else. The implied
state-of-being means that you must not use the declarative 「だ」 , you just attach 「ながら」 to the
noun or adjective. For example, a common way this grammar is used is to say, "While it's unfortunate,
something something..." In Japanese, this would become 「残念ながら・・・」
You can also attach the inclusive 「も」 particle to 「ながら」 to get 「ながらも」. This changes the
meaning from "while" to "even while".
Using 「ながら」or 「ながらも」with state-of-being
• To say [X] is something while something else, attach 「ながら」 to [X]
Example
残念 → 残念ながら
.
• To say [X] is something even while something else, attach 「ながらも」 to [X]
Example
貧乏 → 貧乏ながらも
Examples
1. 仕事がいっぱい⼊って、残念ながら、今⽇は⾏けなくなりました。
While it's unfortunate, a lot of work came in and it became so that I can't go today.
2. 貧乏ながらも、⾼級なバッグを買っちゃったよ。
Even while I'm poor, I ended up buying a high quality bag.
3. 彼は、初⼼者ながらも、実⼒はプロと同じだ。
Even while he is a beginner, his actual skills are the same as a pro.
294
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.12.5
5.12. EXPRESSING TIME-SPECIFIC ACTIONS
To repeat something with reckless abandon using 「まくる」
Vocabulary
1. やる (u-verb) - to do
2. ゲーム - game
3. はまる (u-verb) - to get hooked
4. 最近【さい・きん】- recent; lately
5. パソコン - computer, PC
6. 使う【つか・う】(u-verb) - to use
7. アメリカ - America
8. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
9. 時【とき】- time
10. コーラ - cola
11. 飲む【の・む】(u-verb) - to drink
The WWWJDIC very succinctly defines the definition of this verb as a "verb suffix to indicate reckless
abandon to the activity". Unfortunately, it doesn't go on to tell you exactly how it's actually used. Actually,
there's not much to explain. You take the stem of the verb and simply attach 「まくる」. However, since
this is a continuing activity, it is an enduring state unless you're going to do it in the future. This is a very
casual expression.
Using 「まくる」for frequent actions
Change the first verb to the stem and append 「まくっている」.
Example
やる → やり → やりまくっている
You can use all the normal conjugations. you would expect with any other verb.
Positive
Negative
Non-Past やりまくっている
やりまくっていない
doing all the time
don't do all the time
Past
やりまくっていた
やりまくっていなかった
did all the time
didn't do all the time
295
5.13. LEAVING SOMETHING THE WAY IT IS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
Examples
1. ゲームにはまっちゃって、最近パソコンを使いまくっているよ。
Having gotten hooked by games, I do nothing but use the computer lately.
2. アメリカにいた時はコーラを飲みまくっていた。
When I was in the US, I drank coke like all the time.
5.13 Leaving something the way it is (まま、っぱなし)
Up until now, we've mostly been talking about things that have happened or changed in the course of
events. We will now learn some simple grammar to express a lack of change.
5.13.1
Using 「まま」 to express a lack of change
Vocabulary
1. この - this (abbr. of これの)
2. 宜しい【よろ・しい】(i-adj) - good (formal)
3. 半分【はん・ぶん】- half
4. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
5. 捨てる【す・てる】(ru-verb) - to throw away
6. 駄⽬【だめ】- no good
7. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
8. 今⽇【きょう】- today
9. 悲しい【かな・しい】(i-adj) - sad
10. その - that (abbr. of それの)
11. 格好【かっ・こう】- appearance
12. クラブ - club; nightclub
13. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
「まま」, not to be confused with the childish expression for "mother" (ママ), is a grammatical phrase
to express a lack of change in something. Grammatically, it is used just like a regular noun. You'll most
likely hear this grammar at a convenience store when you buy a very small item. Since store clerks use
super polite expressions and at lightening fast speeds, learning this one expression will help you out a
bit in advance. (Of course, upon showing a lack of comprehension, the person usually repeats the exact
same phrase... at the exact same speed.)
296
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
5.13. LEAVING SOMETHING THE WAY IT IS
Examples
• このままで宜しいですか?
Is it ok just like this?
In other words, the clerk wants to know if you'll take it just like that or whether you want it in a small bag.
「宜しい」, in case I haven't gone over it yet, is simply a very polite version of 「いい」. Notice that 「ま
ま」 grammatically works just like a regular noun which means, as usual, that you can modify it with verb
phrases or adjectives.
• 半分しか⾷べてないままで捨てちゃダメ!
You can't throw it out leaving it in that half-eaten condition!
Ok, the translation is very loose, but the idea is that it's in an unchanged state of being half-eaten and
you can't just throw that out.
Here's a good example I found googling around.
Hint: The 「いさせる」 is the causative form of 「いる」 meaning "let/make me exist".
• 今⽇だけは悲しいままでいさせてほしい。
For only today, I want you to let me stay in this sad condition.
Finally, just in case, here's an example of direct noun modification.
• その格好のままでクラブに⼊れないよ。
You can't get in the club in that getup (without changing it).
5.13.2
Using 「っぱなし」 to leave something the way it is
Vocabulary
1. 放す【はな・す】(u-verb) - to release; to set loose
2. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
3. ほったらかす (u-verb) - to neglect
4. テレビ - TV, television
5. 開ける【あ・ける】(ru-verb) - to open
6. 書く【か・く】(u-verb) - to write
7. つける (ru-verb) - to attach; to turn on
297
5.13. LEAVING SOMETHING THE WAY IT IS
CHAPTER 5. SPECIAL EXPRESSIONS
8. する (exception) - to do
9. 眠れる【ねむ・れる】(ru-verb) - to fall asleep
10. ⼈【ひと】- person
11. 結構【けっ・こう】- fairly, reasonably
12. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
13. 窓【まど】- window
14. 蚊【か】- mosquito
15. いっぱい - full
16. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
17. しまう (u-verb) - to do something by accident; to finish completely
The verb 「放す」 meaning "to set loose", can be used in various ways in regards to leaving something
the way it is. For instance, a variation 「放っとく」 is used when you want to say "Leave me alone". For
instance, you might use the command form of a request (くれる) and say, 「ほっといてくれ!」(Leave
me alone!). Yet another variant 「ほったらかす」 means "to neglect".
The grammar I would like to discuss here is the 「っぱなし」 suffix variant. You can attach this suffix to
the stem of any verb to describe the act of doing something and leaving it that way without changing it.
You can treat the combination like a regular noun.
Here's a link with more examples of this grammar. As you can see by the examples, this suffix carries a
nuance that the thing left alone is due to oversight or neglect. Here are the (simple) conjugation rules for
this grammar.
Using 「っぱなし」to complete an action and leave it that way
Take the stem of the verb and attach 「っぱなし」.
Examples
.
1. 開ける → 開けっぱなし
2. 書く → 書き → 書きっぱなし
Examples
1. テレビをつけっぱなしにしなければ眠れない⼈は、結構いる。
There exists a fair number of people who cannot sleep unless they turn on the TV and leave it that
way.
2. 窓が開けっ放しだったので、蚊がいっぱい⼊ってしまった。
The window was left wide open so a lot of mosquitoes got in.
298
Chapter 6
Advanced Topics
Whew! We've come a long way from learning the basic phonetic alphabet to covering almost all the
grammar you're going to need for daily conversations. But wait, we're not finished yet! In fact, things
are going to get even more challenging and interesting because, especially toward the latter part of this
section, we are going to learn grammar that only might come in handy. In my experience, the most
useful things are easiest to learn as they come up again and again. However, in order to completely
master a language, we also must work hard to conquer the bigger area of things that don't come up very
often and yet every native Japanese speaker instinctively understands. Believe it or not, even the more
obscure grammar will come up eventually leaving you wondering what it's supposed to mean. That's why
I bothered to learn them at least.
6.1
6.1.1
Formal Expressions (である、ではない)
What do you mean by formal expressions?
So far we have learned casual, polite, and honorific/humble types of languages. So what do I mean by
formal expressions? I think we are all aware of the type of language I am talking about. We hear it in
speeches, read it in reports, and see it on documentaries. While discussing good writing style is beyond
the scope of this guide, we will go over some of the grammar that you will commonly find in this type of
language. Which is not to say that it won't appear in regular everyday speech. (Because it does.)
6.1.2
Using 「である」 for formal state-of-being
Vocabulary
1. 我輩【わが・はい】- I; we
2. 猫【ねこ】- cat
299
6.1. FORMAL EXPRESSIONS
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
3. 夏⽬【なつ・め】- Natsume (last name)
4. 漱⽯【そう・せき】- Souseki (first name)
5. お任せ【お・まか・せ】- leaving a decision to someone else
6. 表⽰【ひょう・じ】- display
7. 混合物【こん・ごう・ぶつ】- mixture, amalgam
8. 種類【しゅ・るい】- type, kind, category
9. 以上【い・じょう】- greater or equal
10. 純物質【じゅん・ぶっ・しつ】- pure material
11. 混じりあう【ま・じりあう】(u-verb) - to mix together
12. 物質【ぶっ・しつ】- pure material
13. 何【なに/なん】- what
We have already learned how to speak with your friends in casual speech, your superiors in polite speech,
and your customers in honorific / humble speech. We've learned 「だ」 、 「です」 、 and 「でござ
います」 to express a state-of-being for these different levels of politeness. There is one more type of
state-of-being that is primarily used to state facts in a neutral, official sounding manner - 「である」. Just
like the others, you tack 「である」 on to the adjective or noun that represents the state.
Examples
• 吾輩は猫である
I am a cat. (This is the title of a famous novel by 夏⽬漱⽯)
Since I'm too lazy to look up facts, let's trot on over to the Japanese version of Wikipedia and look at
some random articles by clicking on 「おまかせ表⽰」.
• 混合物 (こんごうぶつ, mixture)とは、 2 種類以上の純物質が混じりあっている物質である。
(Wikipedia - 混合物, July 2004)
An amalgam is a mixture of two or more pure materials.
To give you an idea of how changing the 「である」 changes the tone, I've included some fake content
around that sentence.
1. 混合物は何?
混合物は、2 種類以上の純物質が混じりあっている物質だ。
2. 混合物は何ですか?
混合物は、2 種類以上の純物質が混じりあっている物質です。
300
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.1. FORMAL EXPRESSIONS
3. 混合物は何でしょうか。
混合物は、2 種類以上の純物質が混じりあっている物質でございます。
4. 混合物とは?
混合物は、2 種類以上の純物質が混じりあっている物質である。
6.1.3
Negative of 「である」
Vocabulary
1. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
2. それ - that
3. 不公平【ふ・こう・へい】- unfair
4. ⾔語【げん・ご】- language
5. 簡単【かん・たん】(na-adj) - simple
6. マスター- master
7. する (exception) - to do
8. こと - event, matter
9. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
10. 学⽣【がく・せい】- student
Because the negative of 「ある」 is 「ない」, you might expect the opposite of 「である」 to be 「で
ない」. However, for some reason I'm not aware of, you need to insert the topic particle before 「ない」
to get 「ではない」.
Examples
1. それは不公平ではないでしょうか。
Wouldn't you consider that to be unfair?
2. ⾔語は簡単にマスターできることではない。
Language is not something that can be mastered easily.
301
6.1. FORMAL EXPRESSIONS
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Using 「である」to sound official
Attach 「である」 to the verb or adjective that the state-of-being applies to.
Example: 学⽣ → 学⽣である
For the negative, attach 「ではない」 to the verb or adjective that the state-of-being applies to.
Example: 学⽣ → 学⽣ではない
.
For the past tense state-of-being, apply the regular past tenses of 「ある」
Complete conjugation chart for 「である」
Positive
Negative
学⽣である
is student 学⽣ではないis not student
学⽣であった was student 学⽣ではなかったwas not student
6.1.4
Sequential relative clauses in formal language
Vocabulary
1. 花⽕【はな・び】- fireworks
2. ⽕薬【か・やく】- gunpowder
3. ⾦属【きん・ぞく】- metal
4. 粉末【ふん・まつ】- fine powder
5. 混ぜる【ま・ぜる】(ru-verb) - to mix
6. 物【もの】- object
7. ⽕【ひ】- flame, light
8. 付ける【つ・ける】(ru-verb) - to attach
9. 燃焼時【ねん・しょう・じ】- at time of combustion
10. ⽕花【ひ・ばな】- spark
11. 楽しむ【たの・しむ】(u-verb) - to enjoy
12. ため - for the sake/benefit of
13. 企業内【き・ぎょう・ない】- company-internal
14. 顧客【こ・きゃく】- customer, client
15. データ - data
302
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.1. FORMAL EXPRESSIONS
16. 利⽤【り・よう】- usage
17. する (exception) - to do
18. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
19. ⾏⽅【ゆく・え】- whereabouts
20. 調べる【しら・べる】(ru-verb) - to investigate
21. こと - event, matter
22. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
23. 封筒【ふう・とう】- envelope
24. 写真【しゃ・しん】- photograph
25. 数枚【すう・まい】- several sheets (flat objects)
26. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
27. ⼿紙【て・がみ】- letter
28. 添える 【そ・える】(ru-verb) - to garnish; to accompany (as a card does a gift)
29. この - this (abbr. of これの)
30. ファイル - file
31. パスワード - password
32. 設定【せっ・てい】- setting
33. 開く【ひら・く】(u-verb) - to open
34. 〜際【〜さい】- on the occasion of
35. それ - that
36. ⼊⼒【にゅう・りょく】- input
37. 必要【ひつ・よう】- necessity
38. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
In the Compound Sentence lesson, we learned how to use the te-form of verbs to express multiples
sequential actions in one sentence. This practice, however, is used only in regular everyday speech.
Formal speeches, narration, and written publications employ the verb stem instead of the te-form to
describe sequential actions. Particularly, newspaper articles, in the interest of brevity, always prefer verb
stems to the te-form.
303
6.2. THINGS THAT SHOULD BE A CERTAIN WAY
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Examples
1. 花⽕ (はなび)は、⽕薬と⾦属の粉末を混ぜたものに⽕を付け、燃焼時の⽕花を楽しむためのもの。
(Wikipedia - 花⽕, August 2004)
Fireworks are for the enjoyment of sparks created from combustion created by lighting up a mixture
of gunpowder and metal powder.
2. 企業内の顧客データを利⽤し、彼の⾏⽅を調べることが出来た。
Was able to investigate his whereabouts using the company's internal customer data.
For the 「〜ている」 forms, the stem becomes 「〜てい」 but because that doesn't fit very well into the
middle of a sentence, it is common to use the humble form of 「いる」 which you will remember is 「お
る」. This is simply so you can employ 「おり」 to connect relative clauses instead of just 「い」. It has
nothing to do with the humble aspect of 「おる」
1. 封筒には写真が数枚⼊っており、⼿紙が添えられていた。
Several photos were inside the envelope, and a letter was attached.
2. このファイルにはパスワードが設定されており、開く際にはそれを⼊⼒する必要がある。
A password has been set on this file, and it needs to entered when opening.
6.2
Things that should be a certain way (はず、べき、べく、
べからず)
In this lesson, we'll learn how to express the way things are supposed depending on what we mean by
"supposed". While the first two grammar points 「はず」 and 「べき」 come up often and are quite
useful, you'll rarely ever encounter 「べく」 or 「べからず」. You can safely skip those lessons unless
you are studying for the JLPT.
6.2.1
Using 「はず」 to describe an expectation
Vocabulary
1. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
2. ⽇曜⽇【にち・よう・び】- Sunday
3. 可能【か・のう】(na-adj) - possible
4. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
5. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
6. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
304
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.2. THINGS THAT SHOULD BE A CERTAIN WAY
7. 漫画【まん・が】- comic book
8. マニア - mania
9. これ - this
10. 〜ら - pluralizing suffix
11. もう - already
12. 全部【ぜん・ぶ】- everything
13. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
14. この - this (abbr. of これの)
15. 料理【りょう・り】- cooking; cuisine; dish
16. 焦げる【こ・げる】(ru-verb) - to burn, to be burned
17. まずい (i-adj) - unpleasant
18. ⾊々【いろ・いろ】(na-adj) - various
19. 予定【よ・てい】- plans, arrangement
20. する (exception) - to do
21. 今年【こ・とし】- this year
22. 楽しい【たの・しい】(i-adj) - fun
23. クリスマス - Christmas
24. そう - (things are) that way
25. 簡単【かん・たん】(na-adj) - simple
26. 直す【なお・す】(u-verb) - to correct, to fix
27. 打合せ【うち・あわ・せ】- meeting
28. 毎週【まい・しゅう】- every week
29. 〜時【〜じ】- counter for hours
30. 始まる【はじ・まる】(u-verb) - to begin
The first grammar we will learn is 「はず」, which is used to express something that was or is supposed
to be. You can treat 「はず」 just like a regular noun as it is usually attached to the adjective or verb that
is supposed to be or supposed to happen.
The only thing to be careful about here is expressing an expectation of something not happening. To do
this, you must use the negative existence verb 「ない」 to say that such an expectation does not exist.
This might be in the form of 「〜はずがない」 or 「〜はずはない」 depending on which particle you
want to use. The negative conjugation 「はずじゃない」 is really only used when you want to confirm in
a positive sense such as 「〜はずじゃないか?」.
305
6.2. THINGS THAT SHOULD BE A CERTAIN WAY
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Using 「はず」to describe an expectation
Use 「はず」 just like a regular noun to modify the expected thing
Examples
1. ⽇曜⽇のはず (noun)
2. 可能なはず (na-adjective)
.
3. おいしいはず (i-adjective)
4. 帰るはず (verb)
For the case where you expect the negative, use the 「ない」 verb for nonexistence
Example: 帰るはず → 帰るはずがない
Examples
1. 彼は漫画マニアだから、これらをもう全部読んだはずだよ。
He has a mania for comic book(s) so I expect he read all these already.
2. この料理はおいしいはずだったが、焦げちゃって、まずくなった。
This dish was expected to be tasty but it burned and became distasteful.
3. ⾊々予定してあるから、今年は楽しいクリスマスのはず。
Because various things have been planned out, I expect a fun Christmas this year.
4. そう簡単に直せるはずがないよ。
It's not supposed to be that easy to fix.
5. 打合せは毎週2時から始まるはずじゃないですか?
This meeting is supposed to start every week at 2 o'clock, isn't it?
Here are more examples from the WWWJDIC. You may also want to check out the jeKai entry.
6.2.2
Using 「べき」 to describe actions one should do
Vocabulary
1. 絶対【ぜっ・たい】(na-adj) - absolutely, unconditionally
2. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
3. 強い【つよ・い】(i-adj) - strong
4. 推奨【すい・しょう】- recommendation
306
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.2. THINGS THAT SHOULD BE A CERTAIN WAY
5. する (exception) - to do
6. 擦る【す・る】(u-verb) - to rub
7. ⾏う【おこな・う】(u-verb) - to conduct, to carry out
8. 何【なに/なん】- what
9. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
10. 前【まえ】- front; before
11. 本当【ほん・とう】- real
12. 必要【ひつ・よう】- necessity
13. どう - how
14. いい (i-adj) - good
15. 考える【かんが・える】(ru-verb) - to think
16. 例え【たと・え】- example
17. 国【くに】- country
18. 国⺠【こく・みん】- people, citizen
19. 騙す【だま・す】(u-verb) - to trick, to cheat, to deceive
20. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
21. 預⾦者【よ・きん・しゃ】- depositor
22. ⼤⼿【おお・て】- large corporation
23. 銀⾏【ぎん・こう】- bank
24. 相⼿【あい・て】- other party
25. 取る【と・る】(u-verb) - to take
26. 訴訟【そ・しょう】- litigation, lawsuit
27. 起こす【お・こす】(u-verb) - to cause, to wake someone
28. ケース - case
29. 出る【で・る】(ru-verb) - to come out
30. ⾦融庁【きん・ゆう・ちょう】- Financial Services Agency
31. 被害者【ひ・がい・しゃ】- victim
32. 救済【きゅう・さい】- relief, aid
33. 優先【ゆう・せん】- preference, priority, precedence
34. ⾦融【きん・ゆう】- financing
35. 機関【き・かん】- institution
307
6.2. THINGS THAT SHOULD BE A CERTAIN WAY
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
36. 犯罪【はん・ざい】- crime
37. 防⽌【ぼう・し】- prevention
38. 強化【きょう・か】- strengthen
39. 促す【うなが・す】(u-verb) - to urge
40. 判断【はん・だん】- judgement, decision
41. 朝⽇【あさ・ひ】- Asahi
42. 新聞【しん・ぶん】- newspaper
「べき」 is a verb suffix used to describe something that is supposed to be done. This suffix is commonly
defined as "should", however, one must realize that it cannot be used to make suggestions like the
sentence, "You should go to the doctor." If you use 「べき」, it sounds more like, "You are supposed to
go to the doctor."「べき」has a much stronger tone and makes you sound like a know-it-all telling people
what to do. For making suggestions, it is customary to use the comparison「⽅がいい」grammar instead.
For this reason, this grammar is almost never used to directly tell someone what to do. It is usually used in
reference to oneself where you can be as bossy as you want or in a neutral context where circumstances
dictate what is proper and what is not. One such example would be a sentence like, "We are supposed
to raise our kids properly with a good education."
Unlike the 「はず」 grammar, there is no expectation that something is going to happen. Rather, this
grammar describes what one should do in a given circumstance. In Japanese, you might define it as
meaning 「絶対ではないが、強く推奨されている」.
There is very little of grammatical interest. 「べき」 works just like a regular noun and so you can
conjugate it as 「べきじゃない」、「べきだった」, and so on. The only thing to note here is that when
you're using it with 「する」, the verb meaning "to do", you can optionally drop the 「る」 from 「するべ
き」 to produce 「すべき」. You can do this with this verb only and it does not apply for any other verbs
even if the verb is written as 「する」 such as 「擦る」, the verb meaning "to rub".
Using 「べき」for actions that should be done
Attach 「べき」 to the action that should be done
Examples
1. ⾏う → ⾏うべき
.
2. する → するべき
For the generic "to do " verb 「する」 only, you can remove the 「る」
Example: する+べき → すべき
308
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.2. THINGS THAT SHOULD BE A CERTAIN WAY
Examples
1. 何かを買う前に本当に必要かどうかをよく考えるべきだ。
Before buying something, one should think well on whether it's really necessary or not.
2. 例え国のためであっても、国⺠を騙すべきではないと思う。
Even if it is, for example, for the country, I don't think the country's citizens should be deceived.
3. 預⾦者が⼤⼿銀⾏を相⼿取って訴訟を起こすケースも出ており、⾦融庁は被害者の救済を優先さ
せて、⾦融機関に犯罪防⽌対策の強化を促すべきだと判断。(朝⽇新聞)
With cases coming out of depositors suing large banks, the Financial Services Agency decided it
should prioritize relief for victims and urge banks to strengthen measures for crime prevention.
6.2.3
Using 「べく」 to describe what one tries to do
Vocabulary
1. 連⽤形【れん・よう・けい】- conjunctive form
2. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
3. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
4. 準備【じゅん・び】- preparations
5. する (exception) - to do
6. 始める【はじ・める】(ru-verb) - to begin
7. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
8. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
9. ⾏う【おこな・う】(u-verb) - to conduct, to carry out
10. 試験【し・けん】- exam
11. 合格【ごう・かく】- pass (as in an exam)
12. 皆【みんな】- everybody
13. ⼀⽣懸命【いっ・しょう・けん・めい】- with utmost effort
14. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
15. 今後【こん・ご】- from now on
16. お客様【お・きゃく・さま】- guest, customer
17. 対話【たい・わ】- interaction
18. 窓⼝【まど・ぐち】- teller window, counter; point of contact
19. より - more
309
6.2. THINGS THAT SHOULD BE A CERTAIN WAY
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
20. 充実【じゅう・じつ】- fulfilled
21. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
22. 努⼒【ど・りょく】- effort
23. 参る【まい・る】(u-verb) - to go; to come (humble)
Grammatically, 「べく」 is really a conjunctive form (連⽤形) of 「べき」, similar to what the te-form does
to connect another phrase. However, what needs mentioning here is that by changing it into a conjunctive
and adding a predicate, the meaning of 「べく」 changes from the ordinary meaning of 「べき」. While
「べき」 describes a strong suggestion, changing it to 「べく」 allows you to describe what one did
in order to carry out that suggestion. Take a look that the following examples to see how the meaning
changes.
1. 早く帰るべき。
Should go home early.
2. 早く帰るべく、準備をし始めた。
In trying to go home early, started the preparations.
As we can see in this example, adding the 「準備をし始めた」 tells us what the subject did in order to
carry out the action he/she was supposed to do.In this way we can define 「べく」 as meaning, "in order
to" or "in an effort to". Similarly, 「べく」 might mean the Japanese equivalent of 「しようと思って」 or
「できるように」. This is a very seldom-used old-fashioned expression and is merely presented here to
completely cover all aspects of 「べき」.
Using 「べく」for actions that are attempted to be done
Attach 「べく」 to the action that is attempted to be done
Examples
1. ⾏う → ⾏うべく
.
2. する → するべく
Same as 「べき」, you can remove the 「る」 for the generic "to do " verb 「する」 only
Example: する+べく → すべく
Examples
1. 試験に合格すべく、皆⼀⽣懸命に勉強している。
Everybody is studying very hard in an effort to pass the exam.
2. 今後もお客様との対話の窓⼝として、より充実していくべく努⼒してまいります
We are working from here in an effort to provide a enriched window for customer interaction.
310
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.2.4
6.2. THINGS THAT SHOULD BE A CERTAIN WAY
Using 「べからず」 to describe things one must not do
Vocabulary
1. 未然形【み・ぜん・けい】- imperfective form
2. ⾏う【おこな・う】(u-verb) - to conduct, to carry out
3. する (exception) - to do
4. ゴミ - garbage
5. 捨てる【す・てる】(ru-verb) - to throw away
6. 安全【あん・ぜん】- safety
7. 措置【そ・ち】- measures
8. 忘れる【わす・れる】(ru-verb) - to forget
Moving on to yet another from of 「べき」 is 「べからず」 . This is undoubtedly related to the 「ず」
negative ending we learned in a previous section. However, it seems to be a conjugation of an old 未然
形 of 「べから」. I have no idea what that means and you don't have to either. The only thing we need
to take away from this is that 「べからず」 expresses the opposite meaning of 「べき」 as an action that
one must not do. I suppose the short and abrupt ending of the 「ず」 form makes this more useful for
laying out rules. In fact, searching around on google comes up with a bunch of 「べし ・ ベからず」 or
"do's and don'ts". (べし is an older form of べき, which I doubt you'll ever need.)
Using 「べからず」for actions that must not be done
Attach 「べからず」 to the action that must not be done
Examples
1. ⾏う → ⾏うべからず
.
2. する → するべからず
Same as 「べき」, you can remove the 「る」 for the generic "to do " verb 「する」 only
Example: する+べからず → すべからず
Examples
1. ゴミ捨てるべからず。
You must not throw away trash.
2. 安全措置を忘れるべからず。
You must not forget the safety measures.
311
6.3. EXPRESSING THE MINIMUM EXPECTATION
6.3
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Expressing the minimum expectation (でさえ、ですら、
おろか)
In this section, we'll learn various ways to express the minimum expectation. This grammar is not used
as often as you might think as there are many situations where a simpler expression would sound more
natural, but you should still become familiar with it.
6.3.1
Using 「(で)さえ」 to describe the minimum requirement
Vocabulary
1. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
2. ⼦供【こ・ども】- child
3. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
4. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
5. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
6. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
7. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
8. 多い【おお・い】(i-adj) - numerous
9. トイレ - bathroom; toilet
10. 時間【じ・かん】- time
11. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
12. お⾦【お・かね】- money
13. 何【なに/なん】- what
14. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
15. お弁当【お・べん・とう】- box lunch
16. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
17. あんた - you (slang)
18. 楽ちん【らく・ちん】(na-adj) - easy
19. ビタミン - vitamin
20. 健康【けん・こう】- health
21. 保証【ほ・しょう】- guarantee
312
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.3. EXPRESSING THE MINIMUM EXPECTATION
22. する (exception) - to do
23. ⾃分【じ・ぶん】- oneself
24. 過ち【あやま・ち】- fault, error
25. 認める【みと・める】(ru-verb) - to recognize, to acknowledge
26. 問題【もん・だい】- problem
27. 解決【かい・けつ】- resolution
28. 教科書【きょう・か・しょ】- textbook
29. もっと - more
30. ちゃんと - properly
31. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
32. 合格【ごう・かく】- pass (as in an exam)
33. ⼀⾔【ひと・こと】- a few words
34. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
35. こんな - this sort of
36. こと - event, matter
37. なる (u-verb) - to become
In English, we might say, "not even close" to show that not even the minimum expectation has been met.
In Japanese, we can express this by attaching 「さえ」 to the object or verb that miserably failed to
reach what one would consider to be a bare minimum requirement. Conversely, you can also use the
same grammar in a positive sense to express something is all you need.
Using 「(で)さえ」to describe the minimum requirement
For nouns: Attach 「さえ」 or 「でさえ」 to the minimum requirement.
Examples
1. 私さえ - even me
2. ⼦供でさえ - even children
For verbs: Change the verb to the stem and attach 「さえ」. For verbs in te-form, attach 「さえ」
.
to 「て/で」.
Examples
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べさえ
2. ⾏く → ⾏き → ⾏きさえ
3. ⾔ってくれる → ⾔ってさえくれる
4. 読んでいる → 読んでさえいる
313
6.3. EXPRESSING THE MINIMUM EXPECTATION
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Examples
1. 宿題が多すぎて、トイレに⾏く時間さえなかった。
There was so much homework, I didn't even have time to go to the bathroom.
2. お⾦さえあれば、何でも出来るよ。
The least you need is money and you can do anything.
3. お弁当を買うお⾦さえなかった。
I didn't even have money to buy lunch.
For nouns only, you can add「で」and use「でさえ」instead of just「さえ」. There are no grammatical
differences but it does sound a bit more emphatic.
1. 私でさえ出来れば、あんたには楽ちんでしょう。
If even I can do it, it should be a breeze for you.
You can also attach 「さえ」 to the stem of verbs to express a minimum action for a result. This is
usually followed up immediately by 「する」 to show that the minimum action is done (or not). If the verb
happens to be in a te-form, 「さえ」 can also be attached directly to the end of the 「て」 or 「で」 of
the te-form.
1. ビタミンを⾷べさえすれば、健康が保証されますよ。
If you just eat vitamins, your health will be guaranteed.
2. ⾃分の過ちを認めさえしなければ、問題は解決しないよ。
The problem won't be solved if you don't even recognize your own mistake, you know.
3. 教科書をもっとちゃんと読んでさえいれば、合格できたのに。
If only I had read the textbook more properly, I could have passed.
4. ⼀⾔⾔ってさえくれればこんなことにならなかった。
If you only had said something things wouldn't have turned out like this.
6.3.2
「(で)すら」 - Older version of 「(で)さえ」
Vocabulary
1. 私【わたし】- me; myself; I
2. ⼦供【こ・ども】- child
3. この - this (abbr. of これの)
4. 天才【てん・さい】- genius
5. 分かる【わ・かる】(u-verb) - to understand
314
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.3. EXPRESSING THE MINIMUM EXPECTATION
6. 緊張【きん・ちょう】- nervousness
7. する (exception) - to do
8. ちらっと - a peek
9. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
10. こと - event, matter
11. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
12. ⼈【ひと】- person
13. 漢字【かん・じ】- Kanji
14. 知る【し・る】(u-verb) - to know
15. ⽣徒【せい・と】- student
16. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
「(で)すら」 is a older variation of 「(で)さえ」 that is not as commonly used. It is essentially interchangeable with 「(で)さえ」 except that it is generally used only with nouns.
「(で)すら」is used in the same way as 「(で)さえ」for nouns
For nouns: Attach 「すら」 or 「ですら」 to the minimum requirement.
Examples
.
1. 私すら - Even me
2. ⼦供ですら - Even children
Examples
1. この天才の私ですらわからなかった。
Even a genius such as myself couldn't solve it.
2. 私は緊張しすぎて、ちらっと⾒ることすら出来ませんでした。
I was so nervous that I couldn't even take a quick peek.
3. 「⼈」の漢字すら知らない⽣徒は、いないでしょ!
There are no students that don't even know the 「⼈」 Kanji!
315
6.3. EXPRESSING THE MINIMUM EXPECTATION
6.3.3
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
「おろか」 - It's not even worth considering
Vocabulary
1. 愚か【おろ・か】(na-adj) - foolish
2. 漢字【かん・じ】- Kanji
3. ひらがな - Hiragana
4. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
5. 結婚【けっ・こん】- marriage
6. 〜ヶ⽉【〜か・げつ】- counter for span of month(s)
7. 付き合う【つ・き・あ・う】(u-verb) - to go out with; to accompany
8. 結局【けっ・きょく】- eventually
9. 別れる【わか・れる】(ru-verb) - to separate; to break up
10. ⼤学【だい・がく】- college
11. ⾼校【こう・こう】- high school
12. 卒業【そつ・ぎょう】- graduate
13. する (exception) - to do
This grammar comes from the adjective 「愚か」 which means to be foolish or stupid. However, in this
case, you're not making fun of something, rather by using 「おろか」, you can indicate that something
is so ridiculous that it's not even worth considering. In English, we might say something like, "Are you
kidding? I can't touch my knees much less do a full split!" In this example, the full split is so beyond the
person's abilities that it would be foolish to even consider it.
Examples
1. 漢字はおろか、ひらがなさえ読めないよ!
Forget about Kanji, I can't even read Hiragana!
2. 結婚はおろか、2ヶ⽉付き合って、結局別れてしまった。
We eventually broke up after going out two months much less get married.
3. ⼤学はおろか、⾼校すら卒業しなかった。
I didn't even graduate from high school much less college.
This grammar is rarely used and is primarily useful for JLPT level 1. The expression 「どころか」 is far
more common and has a similar meaning. However, unlike 「おろか」 which is used as an adjective,
「どころか」 is attached directly to the noun, adjective, or verb.
1. 漢字どころか、ひらがなさえ読めないよ!
Forget about Kanji, I can't even read Hiragana!
316
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.4
6.4. SHOWING SIGNS OF SOMETHING
Showing signs of something (〜がる、ばかり、〜めく)
In this lesson, we'll learn various expressions involving how to describe people who are expressing themselves without words. For example, we'll learn how to say expressions in Japanese such as "They acted
as if they were saying goodbye," "He acted disgusted," and "She acts like she wants to go."
6.4.1
Showing outward signs of an emotion using 「〜がる」
Vocabulary
1. 嫌【いや】(na-adj) disagreeable; unpleasant
2. 怖い【こわ・い】(i-adj) - scary
3. 嬉しい【うれ・しい】(i-adj) - happy
4. 恥ずかしい【は・ずかしい】(i-adj) - embarrassing
5. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
6. する (exception) - to do
7. 何【なに/なん】- what
8. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
9. 彼⼥【かの・じょ】- she; girlfriend
10. 朝【あさ】- morning
11. 起こす【お・こす】(u-verb) - to cause, to wake someone
12. タイプ - type
13. うち - referring to one's in-group, i.e. company, etc.
14. ⼦供【こ・ども】- child
15. プール - pool
16. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
17. 理由【り・ゆう】- reason
18. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
19. 欲しい【ほ・しい】(i-adj) - desirable
20. カレー- curry
21. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
22. 家【1) うち; 2) いえ】- 1) one's own home; 2) house
317
6.4. SHOWING SIGNS OF SOMETHING
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
23. 帰る【かえ・る】(u-verb) - to go home
24. すぐ - soon
25. パソコン - computer, PC
26. 使う【つか・う】(u-verb) - to use
27. 皆【みんな】- everybody
28. イタリア - Italy
29. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
30. 私【わたし】- me, myself, I
31. 予算【よ・さん】- budget
32. どう - how
33. とても - very
34. 怪しい【あや・しい】(i-adj) - suspicious; dubious; doubtful
35. 妻【つま】- wife
36. バッグ - bag
37. そんな - that sort of
38. もん - object (short for もの)
39. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
40. 訳【わけ】- meaning; reason; can be deduced
41. 恥ずかしがり屋【は・ずかしがり・や】- one who easily feels or acts embarrassed
42. 寒がり屋【さむ・がり・や】- one who easily feels cold
43. 暑がり屋【あつ・がり・や】- one who easily feels hot
44. ミネソタ - Minnesota
45. 暮らす【く・らす】(u-verb) - to live
46. ⾟い【つら・い】(i-adj) - harsh
The 「〜がる」 grammar is used when you want to make an observation about how someone is feeling.
This is simply an observation based on some type of sign(s). Therefore, you would not use it for your
own emotions since guessing about your own emotions is not necessary. This grammar can only be used
with adjectives so you can use this grammar to say, "He is acting scared," but you cannot say "He acted
surprised," because "to be surprised" is a verb in Japanese and not an adjective. This grammar is also
commonly used with a certain set of adjectives related to emotions such as: 「嫌」、「怖い」、「嬉し
い」、or 「恥ずかしい」.
318
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.4. SHOWING SIGNS OF SOMETHING
Using 「〜がる」for observing the emotions or feelings of others
For i-adjectives: Remove the last 「い」 from the i-adjective and then attach 「がる」
Example: 怖い → 怖がる
For na-adjectives: Attach 「がる」 to the end of the na-adjective
Example: 嫌 → 嫌がる
.
All adjectives that are conjugated with 「〜がる」 become an u-verb
Positive
Negative
Non-Past
怖がる
怖がらない
act scared
not act scared
Past
怖がった
怖がらなかった
acted scared
didn't act scared
Examples
1. 早くきてよ!何を恥ずかしがっているの?
Hurry up and come here. What are you acting all embarrassed for?
2. 彼⼥は朝早く起こされるのを嫌がるタイプです。
My girlfriend is the type to show dislike towards getting woken up early in the morning.
3. うちの⼦供はプールに⼊るのを理由もなく怖がる。
Our child acts afraid about entering a pool without any reason.
This grammar is also used to observe very frankly on what you think someone other than yourself wants.
This involves the adjective 「欲しい」 for things one wants or the 「〜たい」 conjugation for actions one
wants to do, which is essentially a verb conjugated to an i-adjective. This type of grammar is more suited
for things like narration in a story and is rarely used in this fashion for normal conversations because of
its impersonal style of observation. For casual conversations, it is more common to use 「でしょう」
such as in, 「カレーを⾷べたいでしょう。」 . For polite conversations, it is normal to not make any
assumptions at all or to use the 「よね」 sentence ending such as in 「カレーを⾷べたいですか。」 or
「カレーを⾷べたいですよね。」
Examples
1. 家に帰ったら、すぐパソコンを使いたがる。
(He) soon acts like wanting to use computer as soon as (he) gets home.
2. みんなイタリアに⾏きたがってるんだけど、私の予算で⾏けるかどうかはとても怪しい。
Everybody is acting like they want to go to Italy but it's suspicious whether I can go or not going by
my budget.
319
6.4. SHOWING SIGNS OF SOMETHING
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
3. 妻はルイヴィトンのバッグを欲しがっているんだけど、そんなもん、買えるわけないでしょう!
My wife was showing signs of wanting a Louis Vuitton bag but there's no way I can buy something
like that!
「〜がる」 is also used with 「屋」 to indicate a type of person that often feels a certain way such as
「恥ずかしがり屋」 (one who easily feels or acts embarrassed)、 「寒がり屋」 (one who easily feels
cold)、or 「暑がり屋」 (one who easily feels hot).
• 私は寒がり屋だから、ミネソタで暮らすのは⾟かった。
I'm the type who easily gets cold and so living in Minnesota was painful.
6.4.2
Using 「ばかり」 to act as if one might do something
Vocabulary
1. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
2. ボール - ball
3. 爆発【ばく・はつ】- explosion
4. する (exception) - to do
5. 膨らむ【ふく・らむ】(u-verb) - to expand; to swell
6. あんた - you (slang)
7. 関係【かん・けい】- relation, relationship
8. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
9. 彼⼥【かの・じょ】- she; girlfriend
10. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
11. 無視【む・し】- ignore
12. 昨⽇【きのう】- yesterday
13. 喧嘩【けん・か】- quarrel
14. 何【なに/なん】- what
15. 平気【へい・き】(na-adj) - coolness; calmness
16. 顔【かお】- face
We just learned how to observe the emotions and feelings of other by using 「〜がる」 with adjectives.
But what about verbs? Indeed, there is a separate grammar used to express the fact that someone else
looks like they are about to do something but actually does not. Similar to the 「〜がる」 grammar, this
320
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.4. SHOWING SIGNS OF SOMETHING
is usually not used in normal everyday conversations. I have seen it several times in books and novels
but have yet to hear this grammar in a conversation.
For the regular non-past, non-negative verb, you must first conjugate the verb to the negative ending with
「ん」, which was covered here. Then, you just attach 「ばかり」 to the end of the verb. For all other
conjugations, nothing else is necessary except to just add 「ばかり」 to the verb. The most common
verb used with this grammar is 「⾔う」 . It is also usually used with the 「に」 target particle attached
to the end of 「ばかり」.
This grammar is completely different from the 「ばかり」 used to express amounts and the 「ばかり」
used to express the proximity of an action.
Using 「ばかり」to indicate that one seems to want to do something
For present, non-negative: Conjugate the verb to the 「ん」 negative form and attach 「ばかり」
Example: ⾔う → ⾔わない → ⾔わん → ⾔わんばかり
For all other tenses: Attach 「ばかり」 to the end of the verb
Example: ⾔わなかった → ⾔わなかったばかり
.
Summary of basic conjugations
Positive
Negative
Non-Past ⾔わんばかり
⾔わないばかり
as if to say
as if [she] doesn't say
Past
⾔ったばかり ⾔わなかったばかり
as if [she] said
as if [she] didn't say
Examples
1. ボールは爆発せんばかりに、膨らんでいた。
The ball was expanding as if it was going to explode.
2. 「あんたとは関係ない」と⾔わんばかりに彼⼥は彼を無視していた。
She ignored him as if to say, "You have nothing to do with this."
3. 昨⽇の喧嘩で何も⾔わなかったばかりに、平気な顔をしている。
Has a calm face as if [he] didn't say anything during the fight yesterday.
6.4.3
Using 「めく」 to indicate an atmosphere of a state
Vocabulary
1. 謎【なぞ】- puzzle
321
6.4. SHOWING SIGNS OF SOMETHING
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
2. 秘密【ひ・みつ】- secret
3. ⽪⾁【ひ・にく】- irony
4. 紅葉【こう・よう】- leaves changing color
5. 始まる【はじ・まる】(u-verb) - to begin
6. すっかり - completely
7. 秋【あき】- autumn
8. 空気【くう・き】- air; atmosphere
9. なる (u-verb) - to become
10. そんな - that sort of
11. 顔【かお】- face
12. する (exception) - to do
13. うまい (i-adj) - skillful; delicious
14. 説明【せつ・めい】- explanation
15. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
16. いつも - always
17. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
18. 〜⽅【〜かた】- way of doing 〜
19. 皆【みんな】- everybody
20. 嫌【いや】(na-adj) disagreeable; unpleasant
By now, you're probably thinking, "Ok, we've done adjectives and verbs. What about nouns?" As a matter
of fact, there is a similar grammar that is used usually for nouns and na-adjectives. It is used to indicate
that something is showing the signs of a certain state. Unlike the 「〜がる」 grammar, there is no action
that indicates anything; merely the atmosphere gives off the impression of the state. Just like the previous
grammar we learned in this section, this grammar has a list of commonly used nouns such as 「謎」、
「秘密」、or 「⽪⾁」. This grammar is used by simply attaching 「めく」 to the noun or na-adjective.
The result then becomes a regular u-verb.
322
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.5. FORMAL EXPRESSIONS OF NON-FEASIBILITY
Using 「めく」to indicate that one seems to want to do something
Attach 「めく」 to the noun or na-adjective. The result then becomes a regular u-verb.
Example: 謎 → 謎めく
Non-Past
Past
Summary of basic conjugations
Positive
Negative
謎めく
*
謎めかない
.
puzzling atmosphere not puzzling atmosphere
謎めいた
* 謎めかなかった
puzzled atmosphere not puzzled atmosphere
*The negatives conjugations are theoretically possible but are not likely used. The most common usage
is the past tense.
Examples
1. 紅葉が始まり、すっかり秋めいた空気になってきた。
With the leaves starting to change color, the air came to become quite autumn like.
2. そんな謎めいた顔をされても、うまく説明できないよ。
Even having that kind of puzzled look done to me, I can't explain it very well, you know.
3. いつも⽪⾁めいた⾔い⽅をしたら、みんなを嫌がらせるよ。
You'll make everyone dislike you if you keep speaking with that ironic tone, you know.
For a whole slew of additional real world examples, check out the jeKai entry. It states that the grammar
can be used for adverbs and other parts of speech but none of the numerous examples show this and
even assuming it's possible, it's probably not practiced in reality.
6.5
Formal expressions of non-feasibility (〜ざるを得な
い、やむを得ない、〜かねる)
We learned how to express feasibility in the section on the potential form quite a while ways back. In this
section, we'll learn some advanced and specialized ways to express certain types of feasibility or the lack
thereof. Like much of the grammar in the Advanced Section, the grammar covered here is mostly used
for written works and rarely used in regular speech.
323
6.5. FORMAL EXPRESSIONS OF NON-FEASIBILITY
6.5.1
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Expressing the inability to not do using 「〜ざるを得ない」
Vocabulary
1. 得る【え・る】(ru-verb) - to obtain
2. 意図【い・と】- intention; aim; design
3. する (exception) - to do
4. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
5. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
6. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
7. この - this (abbr. of これの)
8. テレビ - TV, television
9. これ - this
10. 以上【い・じょう】- greater or equal
11. 壊れる【こわ・れる】(ru-verb) - to break
12. 新しい【あたら・しい】(i-adj) - new
13. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
14. ずっと - the whole time, all along
15. 我慢【が・まん】- tolerance; self-control
16. 状態【じょう・たい】- situation
17. ⻭医者【は・い・しゃ】- dentist
18. 上司【じょう・し】- superior; boss
19. 話【はなし】- story
20. 聞く【き・く】(u-verb) - to ask; to listen
21. どうしても - by any means, no matter what
22. 海外【かい・がい】- overseas
This grammar is used when there's something that just can't be helped and must be done. It is the
negative version of the grammar we previously covered for something that has to be done. It uses the
negative of the verb 「得る」 or "obtain", to roughly mean that "one cannot obtain not doing of an action".
This means that you can't not do something even if you wanted to. As a result of the use of double
negatives, this grammar carries a slight suggestion that you really don't want to do it, but you have to
because it can't be helped. Really, the negative connotation is the only difference between this grammar
and the grammar we covered in this "have to" section. That, and the fact that this grammar is fancier and
more advanced.
324
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.5. FORMAL EXPRESSIONS OF NON-FEASIBILITY
This grammar uses an archaic negative form of verbs that ends in 「〜ざる」 . It is really not used in
modern Japanese with the exception of this grammar and some expressions such as 「意図せざる」.
The rules for conjugation are the same as the negative verbs, except this grammar attaches 「ざる」
instead. To reiterate, all you have to do is conjugate the verb to the negative form and then replace the
「ない」 with 「ざる」. The two exception verbs are 「する」 which becomes 「せざる」 and 「くる」
which becomes 「こざる」. Finally, all that's left to be done is to attach 「を得ない」 to the verb. It is
also not uncommon to use Hiragana instead of the Kanji.
Using 「〜ざるを得ない」for actions that must be done
• To say that you can't not do something replace the 「ない」 part of the negative verb with 「ざる」
, then attach 「を得ない」 to the end of the verb.
Examples
1. ⾷る → ⾷べない → ⾷べざる → ⾷べざるを得ない
.
2. ⾏く → ⾏かない → ⾏かざる → ⾏かざるを得ない
• Exceptions:
1. する → せざる → せざるをえない
2. くる → こざる → こざるをえない
Examples
1. このテレビがこれ以上壊れたら、新しいのを買わざるを得ないな。
If this TV breaks even more, there's no choice but to buy a new one.
2. ずっと我慢してきたが、この状態だと⻭医者さんに⾏かざるを得ない。
I tolerated it all this time but in this situation, I can't not go to the dentist.
3. 上司の話を聞くと、どうしても海外に出張をせざるを得ないようです。
Hearing the story from the boss, it seems like I can't not go on a business trip overseas no matter
what.
6.5.2
Expressing the inability to stop doing something using 「やむを得
ない」
Vocabulary
1. ⽌む【や・む】(u-verb) - to stop
2. 仕⽅【し・かた】- way, method
3. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
325
6.5. FORMAL EXPRESSIONS OF NON-FEASIBILITY
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
4. しょうがない - it can't be helped, nothing can be done
5. 得る【え・る】(ru-verb) - to obtain
6. 事由【じ・ゆう】- reason; cause
7. ⼿続【て・つづき】- procedure, paperwork
8. 遅れる【おく・れる】(ru-verb) - to be late
9. 必ず【かなら・ず】- without exception, without fail
10. 連絡【れん・らく】- contact
11. この - this (abbr. of これの)
12. 仕事【し・ごと】- job
13. 厳しい【きび・しい】(i-adj) - strict
14. 最近【さい・きん】- recent; lately
15. 不景気【ふ・けい・き】- recession, depression
16. 新しい【あたら・しい】(i-adj) - new
17. ⾒つかる【み・つかる】(u-verb) - to be found
18. 状態【じょう・たい】- situation
This grammar is very similar to the one we just learned above except that it uses the verb 「⽌む」 to
say that one cannot obtain the stopping of something. Remember that we normally can't just attach the
「を」 direct object particle to verbs, so this is really a set expression. Just like the previous grammar
we learned, it is used to describe something that one is forced to do due to some circumstances. The
difference here is that this is a complete phrase, which can be used for a general situation that doesn't
involve any specific action. In other words, you're not actually forced to do something; rather it describes
a situation that cannot be helped. If you have already learned 「仕⽅がない」 or 「しょうがない」, this
grammar means pretty much the same thing. The difference lies in whether you want to say, "Looks like
we're stuck" vs "Due to circumstances beyond our control..."
Since this is a set expression, there are really no grammar points to discuss. You only need to take the
phrase and use it as you would any regular relative clause.
Examples
1. やむを得ない事由により⼿続が遅れた場合、必ずご連絡下さい。
If the paperwork should be late due to uncontrollable circumstance, please make sure to contact
us.
2. この仕事は厳しいかもしれませんが、最近の不景気では新しい仕事が⾒つからないのでやむを得
ない状態です。
This job may be bad but because (I) can't find a new job due to the recent economic downturn, it's
a situation where nothing can be done.
326
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.5.3
6.5. FORMAL EXPRESSIONS OF NON-FEASIBILITY
Expressing what cannot be done with 「〜かねる」
Vocabulary
1. かねる (ru-verb) - to be unable to; to find difficult (unpleasant, awkward, painful) to do;
2. 決める【き・める】(ru-verb) - to decide
3. する (exception) - to do
4. なる (u-verb) - to become
5. この - this (abbr. of これの)
6. 場【ば】- place, spot
7. ちょっと - a little
8. また - again
9. 別途【べっ・と】- separate
10. 会議【かい・ぎ】- meeting
11. 設ける【もう・ける】(ru-verb) - to establish
12. 個⼈【こ・じん】- personal
13. 情報【じょう・ほう】- information
14. 漏洩【ろう・えい】- disclosure; leakage
15. 速やか【すみ・やか】(na-adj) - speedy; prompt
16. 対応【たい・おう】- dealing with; support
17. 願う【ねが・う】(u-verb) - to wish; to request
18. 致す【いた・す】(u-verb) - to do (humble)
The meaning and usage of 「かねる」 is covered pretty well in this jeKai entry with plenty of examples.
While much of this is a repetition of what's written there, 「かねる」 is a ru-verb that is used as a suffix
to other verbs to express a person's inability, reluctance, or refusal to do something
「かねる」 is often used in the negative as 「かねない」 to indicate that there is a possibility that the
verb in question might happen. As the jeKai entry mentions, this is usually in reference to something bad,
which you might express in English as, "there is a risk that..." or "there is a fear that..."
One important thing that the jeKai doesn't mention is how you would go about using this grammar. It's
not difficult and you may have already guessed from the example sentences that all you need to do is
just attach 「かねる」 or 「かねない」 to the stem of the verb.
327
6.6. TENDENCIES
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Using 「〜かねる」for things that cannot be done
• To say that something cannot be done using 「かねる」, change the verb to the stem and attach
「かねる」.
Examples
1. 決める → 決めかねる
2. する → しかねる
.
• 「かねる」is a ru-verb so use the negative「かねない」to say that something (bad) might happen.
Examples
1. なる → なりかねる → なりかねない
2. する → しかねる → しかねない
Examples
1. この場ではちょっと決めかねますので、また別途会議を設けましょう。
Since making a decision here is impossible, let's set up a separate meeting again.
2. このままでは、個⼈情報が漏洩しかねないので、速やかに対応をお願い致します。
At this rate, there is a possibility that personal information might leak so I request that this be dealt
with promptly.
6.6
Tendencies (〜がち、〜つつ、きらいがある)
In this lesson, we will go over various types of grammar that deal with tendencies. Like much of the
Advanced Section, all the grammar in this lesson are used mostly in written works and are generally not
used in conversational Japanese.
6.6.1
Saying something is prone to occur using 「〜がち」
Vocabulary
1. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
2. なる (u-verb) - to become
3. 病気【びょう・き】- disease; sickness
4. 確定【かく・てい】- decision; settlement
328
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.6. TENDENCIES
5. 申告【しん・こく】- report; statement; filing a return
6. 確定申告【かく・てい・しん・こく】- final income tax return
7. 忘れる【わす・れる】(ru-verb) - to forget
8. ⼿続【て・つづき】- procedure, paperwork
9. 留守【るす】- being away from home
10. 家庭【か・てい】- household
11. ⽝【いぬ】- dog
12. 猫【ねこ】- cat
13. 勧め【すす・め】- recommendation
14. ⽗親【ちち・おや】- father
15. 皆【みんな】- everybody
16. ⼼配【しん・ぱい】- worry; concern
17. する (exception) - to do
This is arguably the most useful grammar in this lesson in terms of practically. By that, I mean that it's
the only grammar here that you might actually hear in a regular conversation though again, it is far more
common in a written context.
With this grammar, you can say that something is likely to occur by simply attaching 「がち」 to the stem
of the verb. While, 「がち」 is a suffix, it works in much same way as a noun or na-adjective. In other
words, the result becomes a description of something as being likely. This means that we can do things
like modifying nouns by attaching 「な」 and other things we're used to doing with na-adjectives. You
can also say that something is prone to be something by attaching 「がち」 to the noun.
As the word "prone" suggest, 「がち」 is usually used for tendencies that are bad or undesirable.
329
6.6. TENDENCIES
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Using 「〜がち」as a description of an action prone to occur
• For verbs: Attach 「がち」 to the stem of the verb.
Examples
1. ⾒る → ⾒がち
2. なる → なり → なりがち
• For nouns: Attach 「がち」 to the appropriate noun
.
Example: 病気 → 病気がち
All adjectives that are conjugated with 「〜がち」 become a noun/na-adjective
Positive
Negative
Non-Past
なりがち
なりがちじゃない
prone to become
is not prone to become
Past
なりがちだった
なりがちじゃなかった
was prone to become
was not prone to become
Examples
1. 確定申告は忘れがちな⼿続のひとつだ。
Filing income taxes is one of those processes that one is prone to forget.
2. 留守がちなご家庭には、⽝よりも、猫の⽅がおすすめです。
For families that tend to be away from home, cats are recommended over dogs.
3. ⽗親は病気がちで、みんなが⼼配している。
Father is prone to illness and everybody is worried.
For more examples, check out the WWWJDIC examples.
6.6.2
Describing an ongoing occurrence using 「〜つつ」
Vocabulary
1. テレビ - TV, television
2. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
3. 寝る【ね・る】(ru-verb) - to sleep
4. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
5. なる (u-verb) - to become
330
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.6. TENDENCIES
6. ⼆⽇酔い【ふつ・か・よい】- hangover
7. 痛む【いた・む】(u-verb) - to feel pain
8. 頭【あたま】- head
9. 押さえる【おさ・える】(ru-verb) - to hold something down; to grasp
10. トイレ - bathroom; toilet
11. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
12. 体【からだ】- body
13. いい (i-adj) - good
14. 最近【さい・きん】- recent; lately
15. 全然【ぜん・ぜん】- not at all (when used with negative)
16. 運動【うん・どう】- exercise
17. する (exception) - to do
18. 電気【でん・き】- electricity; (electric) light
19. 製品【せい・ひん】- manufactured goods, product
20. 発展【はっ・てん】- development; growth; advancement
21. つれる (ru-verb) - to lead
22. ハードディスク - hard disk
23. 容量【よう・りょう】- capacity
24. ますます - increasingly
25. ⼤きい【おお・きい】(i-adj) - big
26. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
27. 今【いま】- now
28. ⽇本【に・ほん】- Japan
29. 終⾝【しゅう・しん】- lifetime
30. 雇⽤【こ・よう】- employment
31. 年功【ねん・こう】- long service
32. 序列【じょ・れつ】- order
33. 年功序列【ねん・こう・じょ・れつ】- seniority system
34. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
35. 慣⾏【かん・こう】- customary practice
36. 崩れる【くず・れる】(ru-verb) - to collapse; to crumble
331
6.6. TENDENCIES
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
「つつ」 is a verb modifier that can be attached to the stem of verbs to express an ongoing occurrence.
Though the meaning stays essentially the same, there are essentially two ways to use this grammar. The
first is almost identical to the 「〜ながら」 grammar. You can use 「つつ」 to describe an action that
is taking place while another action is ongoing. However, there are several major differences between
「つつ」 and 「〜ながら」. First, the tone of 「つつ」 is very different from that of 「〜ながら」 and
you would rarely, if ever, use it for regular everyday occurences. To go along with this, 「つつ」 is more
appropriate for more literary or abstract actions such as those involving emotions or thoughts. Second,
「〜ながら」 is used to describe an auxiliary action that takes place while the main action is going on.
However, with 「つつ」, both actions have equal weight.
For example, it would sound very strange to say the following.
• テレビを⾒つつ、寝ちゃダメよ!
(Sounds unnatural)
• テレビを⾒ながら、寝ちゃダメよ!
Don't watch TV while sleeping!
The second way to use this grammar is to express the existence of a continuing process by using 「あ
る」, the verb for existence. Everything is the same as before except that you attach 「ある」 to 「つつ」
to produce 「〜つつある」. This is often used in magazine or newspaper articles to describe a certain
trend or tide.
Using 「〜つつ」to describe a repetitive occurrence
• To describe an ongoing action, attach 「つつ」 to the stem of the verb.
Examples
1. ⾒る → ⾒つつ
.
2. 思う → 思い → 思いつつ
• To show the existence of a trend or tide, add 「ある」 to 「つつ」
Example: なる → なり → なりつつ → なりつつある
Examples
1. ⼆⽇酔いで痛む頭を押さえつつ、トイレに⼊った。
Went into the bathroom while holding an aching head from a hangover.
2. 体によくないと思いつつ、最近は全然運動してない。
While thinking it's bad for body, haven't exercised at all recently.
3. 電気製品の発展につれて、ハードディスクの容量はますます⼤きくなりつつある。
Lead by the advancement of electronic products, hard disk drive capacities are becoming ever
larger.
332
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.6. TENDENCIES
4. 今の⽇本では、終⾝雇⽤や年功序列という雇⽤慣⾏が崩れつつある。
In today's Japan, hiring practices like life-time employment and age-based ranking are tending to
break down.
For more examples, check out the WWWJDIC examples.
6.6.3
Describing a negative tendency using 「きらいがある」
Vocabulary
1. 嫌い【きら・い】(na-adj) - distasteful, hateful
2. 依存症【い・ぞん・しょう】- dependence; addiction
3. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
4. 多い【おお・い】(i-adj) - numerous
5. ⼤学⽣【だい・がく・せい】- college student
6. 締切⽇【しめ・きり・び】- closing day; deadline
7. ぎりぎり - at the last moment; just barely
8. 宿題【しゅく・だい】- homework
9. やる (u-verb) - to do
10. コーディング - coding
11. 好き【す・き】(na-adj) - likable; desirable
12. 開発者【かい・はつ・しゃ】- developer
13. ちゃんと - properly
14. する (exception) - to do
15. ドキュメント - document
16. 作成【さく・せい】- creation
17. ⼗分【じゅう・ぶん】- sufficient, adequate
18. テスト - test
19. 怠る【おこた・る】(u-verb) - to shirk
「きらいがある」 is a fixed expression used to describe a bad tendency or habit. I suspect that 「きら
い」 here might have something to do with the word for hateful: 「嫌い」. However, unlike 「嫌い」,
which is a na-adjective, the 「きらい」 in this grammar functions as a noun. This is made plain by the
333
6.7. ADVANCED VOLITIONAL
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
fact that the 「が」 particle comes right after 「きらい」, which is not allowed for adjectives. The rest of
the phrase is simply expressing the fact that the negative tendency exists.
Using 「きらいがある」to describe a negative tendency
• The 「きらい」 in this grammar functions as a noun. 「ある」 is simply the existence verb for
.
inanimate objects.
Example: 依存症のきらいがある。
Examples
1. 多くの⼤学⽣は、締切⽇ぎりぎりまで、宿題をやらないきらいがある。
A lot of college students have a bad tendency of not doing their homework until just barely it's due
date.
2. コーディングが好きな開発者は、ちゃんとしたドキュメント作成と⼗分なテストを怠るきらいが
ある。
Developers that like coding have a bad tendency to neglect proper documents and adequate testing.
6.7
Advanced Volitional (まい、であろう、かろう)
We learned in a previous lesson that the volitional form is used when one is set out to do something. In
this section, we're going to cover some other ways in which the volitional form is used, most notably, the
negative volitional form.
6.7.1
Negative Volitional
Vocabulary
1. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. する (exception) - to do
4. 来る【く・る】(exception) - to come
5. なる (u-verb) - to become
6. 相⼿【あい・て】- other party
7. 剣【けん】- sword
334
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.7. ADVANCED VOLITIONAL
8. 達⼈【たつ・じん】- master, expert
9. そう - (things are) that way
10. 簡単【かん・たん】(na-adj) - simple
11. 勝つ【か・つ】(u-verb) - to win
12. そんな - that sort of
13. 無茶【む・ちゃ】- unreasonable; excessive
14. ⼿段【しゅ・だん】- method
15. 認める【みと・める】(ru-verb) - to recognize, to acknowledge
16. その - that (abbr. of それの)
17. 時【とき】- time
18. 決して【けっ・して】- by no means; decidedly
19. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
20. 会う【あ・う】(u-verb) - to meet
21. ⼼【こころ】- heart; mind
22. 決める【き・める】(ru-verb) - to decide
23. あの - that (over there) (abbr. of あれの)
24. ⼈【ひと】- person
25. 〜度【〜ど】- counter for number of times
26. 嘘【うそ】- lie
27. つく (u-verb) - to be attached
28. 誓う【つか・う】(u-verb) - to swear, to pledge
29. 明⽇【あした】- tomorrow
30. やめる (ru-verb) - to stop; to quit
31. ⾁【にく】- meat
32. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
You may have seen the negative volitional form in a verb conjugation table and wondered, "What the
heck is that used for?" Well the answer is not much, or to put it more accurately, there are various ways
it can be used but almost all of them are extremely stiff and formal. In fact, it's so rare that I only found
one explanation in English on the web or anywhere else. (I also found this one in Japanese.)
The negative volitional is used to express negative intention. This means that there is a will for something
to not happen or that someone is set out to not do something. As a result, because one is trying not to
do something, it's probably not going to happen. Essentially, it is a very stiff and formal version of 「で
335
6.7. ADVANCED VOLITIONAL
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
しょう」 and 「だろう」. While this form is practically never used in daily conversations, you might still
hear it in movies, etc.
Verbs are conjugated to the negative volitional by simply attaching「まい」to the verb. Another alternative
is to attach 「まい」 to the stem. The conjugation for the negative volitional is quite different from those
we are used to because it is always the last conjugation to apply even for the masu-form. There is no
way to conjugate 「まい」 to the masu-form, you simply attach 「まい」 to the masu-form conjugation.
Using 「まい」to express a will to not do something
• For ru-verbs: Attach「まい」 to the stem.
Example: ⾒ る → ⾒まい
• For u-verbs: Attach 「まい」 to the end of the verb
Example: ⾏くまい
.
• Exceptions:
1. する → するまい or しまい
2. くる → くるまい
• This conjugation must always come last. For masu-form, attach 「まい」 to the masu-form verb.
Example: なる → なり → なります → なりますまい
Examples
1. 相⼿は剣の達⼈だ。そう簡単には勝てまい。
Your opponent is a master of the sword. I doubt you can win so easily.
2. そんな無茶な⼿段は認めますまい!
I won't approve of such an unreasonable method!
We already learned that you could use the volitional form to say "let's" and to express an attempt do
something. But that doesn't mean you can use the negative volitional to say "let's not" or "try not to".
The tone of this grammar is one of very strong determination to not do something, as you can see in the
following examples.
1. その時までは決して彼に会うまいと⼼に決めていた。
Until that time, I had decided in my heart to not meet him by any means.
2. あの⼈は、⼆度と嘘をつくまいと誓ったのです。
That person had sworn to never lie again.
In order to express "let's not", you can use the verb, 「やめる」 with the regular volitional. In order to
express an effort to not do something, you can use 「ようにする」 with the negative verb.
336
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.7. ADVANCED VOLITIONAL
1. 明⽇に⾏くのをやめよう。
Let's not go tomorrow. (lit: Let's quit going tomorrow.)
2. ⾁を⾷べないようにしている。
Trying not to eat meat.
6.7.2
Using the volitional to express a lack of relation
Vocabulary
1. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
2. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
3. あいつ - that guy (derogatory)
4. ⼤学【だい・がく】- college
5. ⼊る【はい・る】(u-verb) - to enter
6. 俺【おれ】- me; myself; I (masculine)
7. 関係【かん・けい】- relation, relationship
8. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
9. 時間【じ・かん】- time
10. 合う【あ・う】(u-verb) - to match
11. 間に合う【ま・に・あ・う】- to be in time
12. 最近【さい・きん】- recent; lately
13. ウィルス - virus
14. 強⼒【きょう・りょく】(na-adj) - powerful, strong
15. プログラム - program
16. 実⾏【じっ・こう】- execute
17. する (exception) - to do
18. ページ - page
19. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
20. 感染【かん・せん】- infection
We will now learn a grammar that's actually practical for everyday use using the negative volitional grammar. Basically, we can use both volitional and negative volitional forms to say it doesn't matter whether
something is going to happen or not. This is done by attaching 「が」 to both the volitional and the
negative volitional form of the verb that doesn't matter.
337
6.7. ADVANCED VOLITIONAL
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Using the volitional to express a lack of relation
• Attach 「が」 to the volitional and negative volitional form of the verb.
Examples
.
1. ⾷べる → ⾷べよう、⾷べまい → ⾷べようが⾷べまいが
2. ⾏く → ⾏こう、⾏くまい → ⾏こうが⾏くまいが
Examples
1. あいつが⼤学に⼊ろうが⼊るまいが、俺とは関係ないよ。
Whether that guy is going to college or not, it has nothing to do with me.
2. 時間があろうがあるまいが、間に合わせるしかない。
Whether there is time or not, there's nothing to do but make it on time.
3. 最近のウィルスは強⼒で、プログラムを実⾏しようがしまいが、ページを⾒るだけで感染するら
しい。
The viruses lately have been strong and whether you run a program or not, I hear it will spread just
by looking at the page.
6.7.3
Using 「であろう」 to express likelihood
Vocabulary
1. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
2. 困難【こん・なん】(na-adj) - difficulty, distress
3. する (exception) - to do
4. 今後【こん・ご】- hereafter
5. 〜年【〜ねん】- counter for year
6. ⼈間【にん・げん】- human
7. 直⾯【ちょく・めん】- confrontation
8. 問題【もん・だい】- problem
9. 正⾯【しょう・めん】- front; facade
10. 向き合う【む・き・あ・う】(u-verb) - to face each other
11. ⾃ら【みずか・ら】- for one's self
12. 解決【かい・けつ】- resolution
338
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.7. ADVANCED VOLITIONAL
13. はかる (u-verb) - to plan, to devise
14. その - that (abbr. of それの)
15. ノウハウ - know-how
16. 次【つぎ】- next
17. 産業【さん・ぎょう】- industry
18. なる (u-verb) - to become
19. シナリオ - scenario
20. 考える【かんが・える】(ru-verb) - to think
21. もちろん - of course
22. ⽣徒数【せい・と・すう】- number of students
23. 減少【げん・しょう】- decline, reduction
24. 現在【げん・ざい】- present time
25. 学科【がっ・か】- course of study
26. 新設【しん・せつ】- newly organized or established
27. 職業科【しょく・ぎょう・か】- occupational studies
28. 統廃合【とう・はい・ごう】- reorganization
29. 科内【か・ない】- within study course
30. コース - course
31. 改編【かい・へん】- reorganization
32. 時代【じ・だい】- period, era
33. 合う【あ・う】(u-verb) - to match
34. 変⾰【へん・かく】- reform
35. 求める【もと・める】(ru-verb) - to request; to seek
We already found out that the negative volitional can be used as kind of a formal version of 「でしょう」
and 「だろう」. You may wonder, how would you do the same thing for the volitional? The answer is to
conjugate the verb 「ある」 from the formal state-of-being 「である」 to the volitional to produce 「であ
ろう」. Remember 「でしょう」 can already be used as a polite form, so this form is even a step above
that in formality. We'll see what kind of language uses this form in the examples.
339
6.7. ADVANCED VOLITIONAL
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Using 「であろう」to express likelihood
• Attach 「であろう」 to the noun, adjective, or verb.
Examples
.
1. 困難 → 困難であろう
2. する → するであろう
Examples
1. 今後 50 年、⼈間が直⾯するであろう問題に正⾯から向き合って、⾃ら解決をはかりつつ、その
ノウハウが次の産業となるシナリオを考えたい。(from www.jkokuryo.com)
I would like to directly approach problems that humans have likely encounter the next 50 years and
while devising solutions, take that knowledge and think about scenarios that will become the next
industry.
2. もちろん、⽣徒数減少の現在、学科の新設は困難であろうが、職業科の統廃合や科内コースの改
編などで時代に合わせた変⾰が求められているはずである。(from www1.normanet.ne.jp)
Of course, setting up new courses of study will likely be difficult with this period of decreasing
student population but with reorganizations of occupational studies and courses within subjects,
there is supposed to be demand for reform fit for this period.
6.7.4
Using 「かろう」 as volitional for 「い」 endings
Vocabulary
1. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
2. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
3. どんな - what kind of
4. 商品【しょう・ひん】- product
5. ネット - net
6. 販売【はん・ばい】- selling
7. 売上【うり・あげ】- amount sold, sales
8. 伸びる【の・びる】(ru-verb) - to extend, to lengthen
9. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
10. 物【もの】- object
11. 運動【うん・どう】- exercise
340
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.7. ADVANCED VOLITIONAL
12. 始める【はじ・める】(ru-verb) - to begin
13. 遅い【おそ・い】(i-adj) - late
14. 健康【けん・こう】- health
15. いい (i-adj) - good
16. 変わる【か・わる】(u-verb) - to change
17. 休⽇【きゅう・じつ】- holiday, day off
18. この - this (abbr. of これの)
19. 関係【かん・けい】- relation, relationship
We learned in the lesson about formal grammar that 「ではない」 was the negative of 「である」. So
how would we say something like 「であろう」 but for the negative? The answer is to use yet another
type of volitional for negatives and i-adjectives used only in formal and literary contexts. You can think of
this grammar as a very old-fashioned version for i-adjectives and negative 「い」 endings.
The conjugation rule is simple: remove the last「い」and attach「かろう」. You can use it for negatives
and i-adjectives just like the 「かった」 past conjugation form.
Using 「かろう」to express volition for 「い」endings
• Drop the last 「い」 and attach 「かろう」
Examples
.
1. ではない → ではなかろう
2. 早い → 早かろう
Examples
1. どんな商品でもネットで販売するだけで売上が伸びるというものではなかろう。
It's not necessarily the case that sales go up just by selling any type of product on the net.
2. 運動を始めるのが早かろうが遅かろうが、健康にいいというのは変わりません。
Whether you start exercising early or late, the fact that it's good for your health doesn't change.
3. 休⽇であろうが、なかろうが、この仕事では関係ないみたい。
Whether it's a holiday or not, it looks like it doesn't matter for this job.
341
6.8. COVERED BY SOMETHING
6.8
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Covered by something (だらけ、まみれ、ずくめ)
This is a short lesson to cover several specialized expressions that describe the state of being covered
by something. Mostly, we will focus on the differences between 「だらけ」、「まみれ」 and 「ずくめ」.
6.8.1
Using 「だらけ」 when an object is riddled everywhere with something
Vocabulary
1. 間違い【ま・ちが・い】- mistake
2. ゴミ - garbage
3. 埃【ほこり】- dust
4. この - this (abbr. of これの)
5. ドキュメント - document
6. 全然【ぜん・ぜん】- not at all (when used with negative)
7. 役に⽴つ【やく・に・たつ】(u-verb) - to be useful
8. 携帯【けい・たい】- handheld (phone)
9. 〜年【〜ねん】- counter for year
10. 使う【つか・う】(u-verb) - to use
11. 傷【き・ず】- injury; scratch; scrape
12. なる (u-verb) - to become
13. テレビ - TV, television
14. ちゃんと - properly
15. 拭く【ふ・く】(u-verb) - to wipe; to dry
16. くれる (ru-verb) - to give
「だらけ」 is usually used when something is riddled everywhere. It generally carries a negative
connotation. As a result, you'll often see 「だらけ」 used with expressions like 「間違いだらけ」, 「ゴ
ミだらけ」, or 「埃だらけ」. There is no conjugation rule to cover here, all you need to do is attach 「だ
らけ」 to the noun that is just all over the place. You should treat the result just like you would a regular
noun.
342
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.8. COVERED BY SOMETHING
Using 「だらけ」to describe the state of being riddled everywhere by something
• Attach 「だらけ」 to the noun that is covering the object or place
Examples
.
1. 間違い → 間違いだらけ (riddled with mistakes)
2. 埃 → 埃だらけ (riddled with dust)
Examples
1. このドキュメントは間違いだらけで、全然役に⽴たない。
This document is just riddled with mistakes and is not useful at all.
2. 携帯を2年間使ってたら、傷だらけになった。
After using cell phone for 2 years, it became covered with scratches.
�Notice how the 「の」 particle is used to modify since 「だらけ」 functions like a noun.
1. この埃だらけのテレビをちゃんと拭いてくれない?
Can you properly dust this TV completely covered in dust?
6.8.2
Using 「まみれ」 to describe a covering
Vocabulary
1. 間違い【ま・ちが・い】- mistake
2. ⾎ 【ち】- blood
3. 油【あぶら】- oil
4. ゴミ - garbage
5. 彼【かれ】- he; boyfriend
6. なる (u-verb) - to become
7. ⾞【くるま】- car
8. 修理【しゅう・り】- repair
9. 頑張る【がん・ば・る】(u-verb) - to try one's best
10. たった - only, merely
343
6.8. COVERED BY SOMETHING
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
11. キロ - kilo
12. ⾛る【はし・る】(u-verb) - to run
13. 汗【あせ】- sweat
14. 情けない【なさ・けない】(i-adj) - shameful; deplorable
「まみれ」 may seem very similar to 「だらけ」 but there are some very important subtle differences.
First, it's only used for actually physical objects so you can't say things like 「間違いまみれ」 like you
can with 「だらけ」. Plus, you can only use it for things that literally cover the object. In other words,
you can't use it to mean "littered" or "riddled" like we have done with 「だらけ」 So you can use it for
things like liquids and dust, but you can't use it for things like scratches and garbage.
The grammatical rules are the same as 「だらけ」.
Using 「まみれ」to describe a covering by sticking
• Like 「だらけ」, you attach 「まみれ」 to the noun that is doing covering.
Examples
1. ⾎ → ⾎まみれ (covered in blood)
2. 油 → 油まみれ (covered in oil)
.
• You can only use 「まみれ」 for physical objects that literally covers the object.
Examples
1. 間違いまみれ (not a physical object)
2. ゴミまみれ (doesn't actually cover anything)
Examples
1. 彼は油まみれになりながら、⾞の修理に頑張りました。
While becoming covered in oil, he worked hard at fixing the car.
2. たった1キロを⾛っただけで、汗まみれになるのは情けない。
It's pitiful that one gets covered in sweat from running just 1 kilometer.
6.8.3
「ずくめ」 to express entirety
Vocabulary
1. ⿊【くろ】- black
344
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.8. COVERED BY SOMETHING
2. ⽩【しろ】- white
3. いい (i-adj) - good
4. こと - event, matter
5. 団体【だん・たい】- group
6. 去年【きょ・ねん】- last year
7. ニュース - news
8. なる (u-verb) - to become
9. この - this (abbr. of これの)
10. シェーク - shake
11. おいしい (i-adj) - tasty
12. 栄養【えい・よう】- nutrition
13. たっぷり - filled with
14. 体【からだ】- body
The 「⼤辞林」 dictionary describes exactly what 「ずくめ」 means very well.
名詞およびそれに準ずる語句に付いて、何から何まで、そればかりであることを表す。すべて…であ
る。
「うそ ― の⾔いわけ」「いいこと ―」「⿊ ― の服装」「結構 ―」
In other words, 「ずくめ」 describes something that applies to the whole thing. For instance, if we were
talking about the human body, the expression "is [X] from head to toe" might be close to what 「ずくめ」
means.
In actuality, 「ずくめ」 is an expression that is rarely used and usually with a color to describe people
completely dressed in that color. For example, you can see what 「⿊ずくめ」 looks like via Google
Images.
Grammatically, 「ずくめ」 works in exactly the same ways as 「だらけ」 and 「まみれ」.
Using 「ずくめ」to describe something that applies to the whole thing
• Attach 「ずくめ」 to the noun that applies to the whole thing.
Examples
.
1. ⽩ → ⽩ずくめ
2. いいこと → いいことずくめ
345
6.9. ADVANCED PROXIMITY OF ACTIONS
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Examples
1. ⽩ずくめ団体は去年ニュースになっていた。
The organization dressed all in white was on the news last year.
2. このシェークは、おいしいし、栄養たっぷりで体にいいですから、いいことずくめですよ。
This shake is tasty and filled with nutrients, it's good for (your) body so it's entirely good things.
6.9
Advanced proximity of actions (が早いか、や否や、そば
から)
In this section, we will be covering some advanced grammar that describe an action that takes place right
after something else has occurred. I suggest you look over this section if you are really serious about
completely mastering Japanese, or if you plan to take the level 1 JLPT exam, or if you enjoy reading a
lot of Japanese literature.
6.9.1
Using 「が早いか」 to describe the instant something occurred
Vocabulary
1. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
2. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
3. 彼⼥【かの・じょ】- she; girlfriend
4. 教授【きょう・じゅ】- professor
5. 姿【すがた】- figure
6. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
7. 教室【きょう・しつ】- classroom
8. 逃げ出す【に・げ・だ・す】(u-verb) - to run away
9. ⾷べる【た・べる】(ru-verb) - to eat
10. ⼝【くち】- mouth
11. 中【なか】- inside
12. 放り込む【ほう・り・こ・む】(u-verb) - to throw into
The phrase 「が早いか」 is used to describe something that happened the instant something else
occurred.
346
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.9. ADVANCED PROXIMITY OF ACTIONS
While very similar to the「とたんに」grammar, it has a strong emphasis on how soon one thing occurred
after another as if it's almost simultaneous. This grammar is rarely used outside of Japanese language
tests.
To use this grammar, you attach「が早いか」to the first verb, then you describe the event that happened
the next instant. While it's conventional to use the non-past tense (dictionary form) for the first verb, you
can also use the past tense. For example, you can say either 「⾔うが早いか」 or 「⾔ったが早いか」.
The curious thing about this grammar is that the 「が」 particle comes right after the verb. Remember,
you can do this only with this specific grammatical phrase.
Using 「が早いか」to describe what happened the instant something occurred
• Attach 「が早いか」 to the non-past or past tense of the verb that just occurred
Examples
1. ⾔う → ⾔うが早いか
.
2. ⾔う → ⾔った → ⾔ったが早いか
• You can only use this grammar only for events that are directly related.
• You can only use this grammar only for events that actually happened (past tense).
Examples
1. 彼⼥は、教授の姿を⾒るが早いか、教室から逃げ出した。
The instant (she) saw the professor's figure, (she) ran away from the classroom.
2. 「⾷べてみよう」と⾔うが早いか、⼝の中に放り込んだ。
The instant (he) said "let's try eating it", he threw (it) into his mouth.
3. 「⾷べてみよう」と⾔ったが早いか、⼝の中に放り込んだ。
The instant (he) said "let's try eating it", he threw (it) into his mouth.
6.9.2
Using 「や/や否や」 to describe what happened right after
Vocabulary
1. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
2. 否定【ひ・てい】- denial
3. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
4. 私【わたし】- me, myself, I
5. 顔【かお】- face
347
6.9. ADVANCED PROXIMITY OF ACTIONS
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6. 何【なに/なん】- what
7. ⾔う【い・う】(u-verb) - to say
8. する (exception) - to do
9. 搭乗【とう・じょう】- boarding
10. アナウンス - announcement
11. 聞こえる【き・こえる】(ru-verb) - to be audible
12. 皆【みんな】- everybody
13. ゲート - gate
14. ⽅【ほう】- direction, way
15. ⾛り出す【はし・り・だ・す】(u-verb) - to break into a run
The 「や」 or 「や否や」(やいなや) phrase, when appended to a verb, is used to described something
that happened right after that verb. Its meaning is essential the same as 「が早いか」. It is also another
type of grammar that is not really used in regular conversational Japanese.
「否」 (read here as 「いな」) is a Kanji meaning "no" used in words like 「否定」. The literal meaning of
this grammar is "whether the action was taken or not". In order words, the second action is taken before
you even take the time to determine whether the first event really happened or not.
You can use this grammar by attaching 「や」 or 「や否や」 to the dictionary form of the first verb that
occurred. Since this grammar is used for events that already have occurred, the second verb is usually
in the past tense. However, you can use the dictionary tense to indicate that the events happen regularly.
Using 「や/や否や」to describe what happened right after
• Attach 「や」 or 「や否や」(やいなや) to the dictionary form of the first verb that occurred
Examples
1. ⾒る → ⾒るや
.
2. ⾒る → ⾒るや否や
• This grammar is almost always used for events that actually happened (past tense).
• This grammar can be used with the present tense for regularly occurring events.
Examples
1. 私の顔を⾒るや、何か⾔おうとした。
(He) tried to say something as soon as he saw my face.
348
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.9. ADVANCED PROXIMITY OF ACTIONS
2. 搭乗のアナウンスが聞こえるや否や、みんながゲートの⽅へ⾛り出した。
As soon as the announcement to board was audible, everybody started running toward the gate.
6.9.3
Using「そばから」to describe an event that repeatedly occurs soon
after
Vocabulary
1. 早い【はや・い】(i-adj) - fast; early
2. 読む【よ・む】(u-verb) - to read
3. する (exception) - to do
4. ⼦供【こ・ども】- child
5. 掃除【そう・じ】- cleaning
6. 散らかす【ち・らかす】(u-verb) - to scatter around; to leave untidy
7. もう - already
8. あきらめる (ru-verb) - to give up
9. なる (u-verb) - to become
10. 教科書【きょう・か・しょ】- textbook
11. 忘れる【わす・れる】(ru-verb) - to forget
12. 勉強【べん・きょう】- study
13. 出来る【で・き・る】(ru-verb) - to be able to do
「そばから」 is yet another grammar that describes an event that happens right after another. However,
unlike the expressions we have covered so far, 「そばから」 implies that the events are a recurring
pattern. For example, you would use this grammar to express the fact that you just clean and clean your
room only for it to get dirty again soon after.
Besides this difference, the rules for using this expression are exactly the same as「が早いか」and「や否
や」. Just attach「そばから」to the dictionary form of the first verb that occurred. The past tense, though
rare, also appears to be acceptable. However, the event that immediately follows is usually expressed
with the non-past dictionary form because this grammar is used for repeated events and not a specific
event in the past.
349
6.10. OTHERS
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
Using 「そばから」to describe an event that repeatedly occurs soon after
• Attach 「そばから」 to the dictionary form of the first verb that occurred
Examples
1. 読む → 読むそばから
.
2. する → するそばから
• This grammar implies that the events occur repeatedly.
Examples
1. ⼦供が掃除するそばから散らかすから、もうあきらめたくなった。
The child messes up (the room) [repeatedly] as soon as I clean so I already became wanting to
give up.
2. 教科書を読んだそばから忘れてしまうので勉強ができない。
Forget [repeatedly] right after I read the textbook so I can't study.
6.10 Others (思いきや、がてら、あげく)
Hopefully, you've managed to get a good grasp of how grammar works in Japanese and how to use them
to communicate your thoughts in the Japanese way. In this final section, we'll be covering some left-over
grammar that I couldn't fit into a larger category.
6.10.1
Using 「思いきや」 to describe something unexpected
Vocabulary
1. 思う【おも・う】(u-verb) - to think
2. ある (u-verb) - to exist (inanimate)
3. 昼間【ひる・ま】- daytime
4. 絶対【ぜっ・たい】(na-adj) - absolutely, unconditionally
5. 込む【こ・む】(u-verb) - to become crowded
6. ⼀⼈【ひとり】- 1 person; alone
7. いる (ru-verb) - to exist (animate)
350
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.10. OTHERS
8. この - this (abbr. of これの)
9. レストラン - restaurant
10. 安い【やす・い】(i-adj) - cheap
11. 会計【かい・けい】- accountant; bill
12. 千円【せん・えん】- 1,000 yen
13. 以上【い・じょう】- greater or equal
This is a grammar I learned out of a book and was surprised to actually hear it used in real life on a number
of occasions. You use this grammar when you think one thing, but much to your astonishment, things
actually turn out to be very different. You use it in the same way as you would express any thoughts, by
using the quotation 「と」 and 「思う」 . The only difference is that you use 「思いきや」 instead
of 「思う」. There is no tense in 「思いきや」, or rather, since the results already went against your
expectations, the original thought is implicitly understood to be past tense.
Using 「思いきや」to describe something unforeseen or unexpected
• Attach 「思いきや」 to the thought using the quotation
「と」.
.
Example: ある → あると → あると思いきや
Examples
1. 昼間だから絶対込んでいると思いきや、⼀⼈もいなかった。
Despite having thought that it must be crowded since it was afternoon, (surprisingly) not a single
person was there.
2. このレストランは安いと思いきや、会計は 5 千円以上だった!
Thought this restaurant would be cheap but (surprisingly) the bill was over 5,000 yen!
6.10.2
Using 「〜がてら」 to do two things at one time
Vocabulary
1. 散歩【さん・ぽ】- walk, stroll
2. 作る【つく・る】(u-verb) - to make
3. タバコ - tobacco; cigarettes
4. 買う【か・う】(u-verb) - to buy
5. ⾏く【い・く】(u-verb) - to go
351
6.10. OTHERS
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6. 博物館【はく・ぶつ・かん】- museum
7. ⾒る【み・る】(ru-verb) - to see
8. お⼟産【お・みやげ】- souvenir
9. つもり - intention, plan
This rather formal and seldom-used grammar is used to indicate that two actions were done at the same
time. The nuance is a bit difference from 「ながら」 in that some or all of the time spent on doing one
action was also used to do another action as an aside. Remember, 「ながら」 is used to describe two
exactly concurrent actions.
The interesting thing about this grammar is that no verb is required. You can just attach it a noun, and
the verb "to do" is inferred. For instance, "while taking a stroll" can simply be expressed as 「散歩がて
ら」. In the case where you want to employ a different verb, you also have the option of attaching 「が
てら」 to the stem similar to the 「ながら」 usage. In addition, the verb or noun that is accompanied by
「がてら」 is the main action while the following action is the one done on the side.
Using 「〜がてら」to do two things at one time
• Attach 「がてら」 to the noun or verb stem of the main action. In case of a noun, the verb 「する」
is inferred.
Examples
.
1. 散歩 → 散歩がてら
2. 作る → 作り → 作りがてら
Examples
1. 散歩がてら、タバコを買いに⾏きました。
While taking a stroll, I also used that time to buy cigarettes.
2. 博物館を⾒がてらに、お⼟産を買うつもりです。
While seeing the museum, I plan to also use that time to buy souvenirs.
6.10.3
Using 「〜あげく (挙句)」 to describe a bad result
Vocabulary
1. 挙句【あげ・く】- in the end (after a long process); at last
2. 喧嘩【けん・か】- quarrel
3. 考える【かんが・える】(ru-verb) - to think
352
CHAPTER 6. ADVANCED TOPICS
6.10. OTHERS
4. 事情【じ・じょう】- circumstances
5. 〜時間【〜じ・かん】- counter for span of hours
6. 掛ける【か・ける】(ru-verb) - to hang; to take (time, money)
7. 説明【せつ・めい】- explanation
8. する (exception) - to do
9. 納得【なっ・とく】- understanding; agreement
10. もらう (u-verb) - to receive
11. 先⽣【せん・せい】- teacher
12. 相談【そう・だん】- consultation
13. 退学【たい・がく】- dropping out of school
14. こと - event, matter
「あげく」 is a grammar used to describe a result, usually negative, that came about after a great deal
of effort. The rule for this grammar is very simple. You modify the verb or noun that was carried out
with 「あげく」 and then describe the final result that came about from that verb or noun. Because this
grammar is used to describe a result from an action already completed, it is used with the past tense of
the verb. 「あげく」 is essentially treated the same as any noun. In other words, you would need the
「の」 particle to modify another noun.
「あげくの果て」 is another stronger version of this grammar.
Using 「〜あげく」to describe a final result
• Attach 「あげく」 to the verb or noun that created the end result (「の」 particle is required for
nouns)
Examples
.
1. けんか → けんかのあげく
2. 考えた → 考えたあげく
Examples
1. 事情を 2 時間かけて説明したあげく、納得してもらえなかった。
(After a great deal of) explaining the circumstances for 2 hours, (in the end), couldn't receive understanding.
2. 先⽣と相談のあげく、退学をしないことにした。
(After much) consulting with teacher, (in the end), decided on not dropping out of school.
353